A TALE OF TWO CITIES
A STORY OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION
<br />
By Charles Dickens
<br /> <br />
Contents
|
|
| —- |
|
CHAPTER I. The Period
|
|
CHAPTER II. The Mail
|
|
CHAPTER III. The Night Shadows
|
|
CHAPTER IV. The Preparation
|
|
CHAPTER V. The Wine-shop
|
|
CHAPTER VI. The Shoemaker
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. Five Years Later
|
|
CHAPTER II. A Sight
|
|
CHAPTER III. A Disappointment
|
|
CHAPTER IV. Congratulatory
|
|
CHAPTER V. The Jackal
|
|
CHAPTER VI. Hundreds of People
|
|
CHAPTER VII. Monseigneur in Town
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. Monseigneur in the Country
|
|
CHAPTER IX. The Gorgon’s Head
|
|
CHAPTER X. Two Promises
|
|
CHAPTER XI. A Companion Picture
|
|
CHAPTER XII. The Fellow of Delicacy
|
|
CHAPTER XIII. The Fellow of No Delicacy
|
|
CHAPTER XIV. The Honest Tradesman
|
|
CHAPTER XV. Knitting
|
|
CHAPTER XVI. Still Knitting
|
|
CHAPTER XVII. One Night
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII. Nine Days
|
|
CHAPTER XIX. An Opinion
|
|
CHAPTER XX. A Plea
|
|
CHAPTER XXI. Echoing Footsteps
|
|
CHAPTER XXII. The Sea Still Rises
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII. Fire Rises
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV. Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. In Secret
|
|
CHAPTER II. The Grindstone
|
|
CHAPTER III. The Shadow
|
|
CHAPTER IV. Calm in Storm
|
|
CHAPTER V. The Wood-Sawyer
|
|
CHAPTER VI. Triumph
|
|
CHAPTER VII. A Knock at the Door
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. A Hand at Cards
|
|
CHAPTER IX. The Game Made
|
|
CHAPTER X. The Substance of the Shadow
|
|
CHAPTER XI. Dusk
|
|
CHAPTER XII. Darkness
|
|
CHAPTER XIII. Fifty-two
|
|
CHAPTER XIV. The Knitting Done
|
|
CHAPTER XV. The Footsteps Die Out For Ever
|
Book the First—Recalled to Life
CHAPTER I.<br />The Period
It was the best of times, it was the worst of times, it was the age of
wisdom, it was the age of foolishness, it was the epoch of belief, it was
the epoch of incredulity, it was the season of Light, it was the season
of Darkness, it was the spring of hope, it was the winter of despair, we
had everything before us, we had nothing before us, we were all going
direct to Heaven, we were all going direct the other way—in short,
the period was so far like the present period, that some of its noisiest
authorities insisted on its being received, for good or for evil, in the
superlative degree of comparison only.
<br />
There were a king with a large jaw and a queen with a plain face, on the
throne of England; there were a king with a large jaw and a queen with a
fair face, on the throne of France. In both countries it was clearer than
crystal to the lords of the State preserves of loaves and fishes, that
things in general were settled for ever.
<br />
It was the year of Our Lord one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five.
Spiritual revelations were conceded to England at that favoured period, as
at this. Mrs. Southcott had recently attained her five-and-twentieth
blessed birthday, of whom a prophetic private in the Life Guards had
heralded the sublime appearance by announcing that arrangements were made
for the swallowing up of London and Westminster. Even the Cock-lane ghost
had been laid only a round dozen of years, after rapping out its messages,
as the spirits of this very year last past (supernaturally deficient in
originality) rapped out theirs. Mere messages in the earthly order of
events had lately come to the English Crown and People, from a congress of
British subjects in America: which, strange to relate, have proved more
important to the human race than any communications yet received through
any of the chickens of the Cock-lane brood.
<br />
France, less favoured on the whole as to matters spiritual than her sister
of the shield and trident, rolled with exceeding smoothness down hill,
making paper money and spending it. Under the guidance of her Christian
pastors, she entertained herself, besides, with such humane achievements
as sentencing a youth to have his hands cut off, his tongue torn out with
pincers, and his body burned alive, because he had not kneeled down in the
rain to do honour to a dirty procession of monks which passed within his
view, at a distance of some fifty or sixty yards. It is likely enough
that, rooted in the woods of France and Norway, there were growing trees,
when that sufferer was put to death, already marked by the Woodman, Fate,
to come down and be sawn into boards, to make a certain movable framework
with a sack and a knife in it, terrible in history. It is likely enough
that in the rough outhouses of some tillers of the heavy lands adjacent to
Paris, there were sheltered from the weather that very day, rude carts,
bespattered with rustic mire, snuffed about by pigs, and roosted in by
poultry, which the Farmer, Death, had already set apart to be his tumbrils
of the Revolution. But that Woodman and that Farmer, though they work
unceasingly, work silently, and no one heard them as they went about with
muffled tread: the rather, forasmuch as to entertain any suspicion that
they were awake, was to be atheistical and traitorous.
<br />
In England, there was scarcely an amount of order and protection to
justify much national boasting. Daring burglaries by armed men, and
highway robberies, took place in the capital itself every night; families
were publicly cautioned not to go out of town without removing their
furniture to upholsterers’ warehouses for security; the highwayman in the
dark was a City tradesman in the light, and, being recognised and
challenged by his fellow-tradesman whom he stopped in his character of
“the Captain,” gallantly shot him through the head and rode away; the mail
was waylaid by seven robbers, and the guard shot three dead, and then got
shot dead himself by the other four, “in consequence of the failure of his
ammunition:” after which the mail was robbed in peace; that magnificent
potentate, the Lord Mayor of London, was made to stand and deliver on
Turnham Green, by one highwayman, who despoiled the illustrious creature
in sight of all his retinue; prisoners in London gaols fought battles with
their turnkeys, and the majesty of the law fired blunderbusses in among
them, loaded with rounds of shot and ball; thieves snipped off diamond
crosses from the necks of noble lords at Court drawing-rooms; musketeers
went into St. Giles’s, to search for contraband goods, and the mob fired
on the musketeers, and the musketeers fired on the mob, and nobody thought
any of these occurrences much out of the common way. In the midst of them,
the hangman, ever busy and ever worse than useless, was in constant
requisition; now, stringing up long rows of miscellaneous criminals; now,
hanging a housebreaker on Saturday who had been taken on Tuesday; now,
burning people in the hand at Newgate by the dozen, and now burning
pamphlets at the door of Westminster Hall; to-day, taking the life of an
atrocious murderer, and to-morrow of a wretched pilferer who had robbed a
farmer’s boy of sixpence.
<br />
All these things, and a thousand like them, came to pass in and close upon
the dear old year one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five. Environed
by them, while the Woodman and the Farmer worked unheeded, those two of
the large jaws, and those other two of the plain and the fair faces, trod
with stir enough, and carried their divine rights with a high hand. Thus
did the year one thousand seven hundred and seventy-five conduct their
Greatnesses, and myriads of small creatures—the creatures of this
chronicle among the rest—along the roads that lay before them.
CHAPTER II.<br />The Mail
It was the Dover road that lay, on a Friday night late in November, before
the first of the persons with whom this history has business. The Dover
road lay, as to him, beyond the Dover mail, as it lumbered up Shooter’s
Hill. He walked up hill in the mire by the side of the mail, as the rest
of the passengers did; not because they had the least relish for walking
exercise, under the circumstances, but because the hill, and the harness,
and the mud, and the mail, were all so heavy, that the horses had three
times already come to a stop, besides once drawing the coach across the
road, with the mutinous intent of taking it back to Blackheath. Reins and
whip and coachman and guard, however, in combination, had read that
article of war which forbade a purpose otherwise strongly in favour of the
argument, that some brute animals are endued with Reason; and the team had
capitulated and returned to their duty.
With drooping heads and tremulous tails, they mashed their way through the
thick mud, floundering and stumbling between whiles, as if they were
falling to pieces at the larger joints. As often as the driver rested them
and brought them to a stand, with a wary “Wo-ho! so-ho-then!” the near
leader violently shook his head and everything upon it—like an
unusually emphatic horse, denying that the coach could be got up the hill.
Whenever the leader made this rattle, the passenger started, as a nervous
passenger might, and was disturbed in mind.
There was a steaming mist in all the hollows, and it had roamed in its
forlornness up the hill, like an evil spirit, seeking rest and finding
none. A clammy and intensely cold mist, it made its slow way through the
air in ripples that visibly followed and overspread one another, as the
waves of an unwholesome sea might do. It was dense enough to shut out
everything from the light of the coach-lamps but these its own workings,
and a few yards of road; and the reek of the labouring horses steamed into
it, as if they had made it all.
Two other passengers, besides the one, were plodding up the hill by the
side of the mail. All three were wrapped to the cheekbones and over the
ears, and wore jack-boots. Not one of the three could have said, from
anything he saw, what either of the other two was like; and each was
hidden under almost as many wrappers from the eyes of the mind, as from
the eyes of the body, of his two companions. In those days, travellers
were very shy of being confidential on a short notice, for anybody on the
road might be a robber or in league with robbers. As to the latter, when
every posting-house and ale-house could produce somebody in “the
Captain’s” pay, ranging from the landlord to the lowest stable
non-descript, it was the likeliest thing upon the cards. So the guard of
the Dover mail thought to himself, that Friday night in November, one
thousand seven hundred and seventy-five, lumbering up Shooter’s Hill, as
he stood on his own particular perch behind the mail, beating his feet,
and keeping an eye and a hand on the arm-chest before him, where a loaded
blunderbuss lay at the top of six or eight loaded horse-pistols, deposited
on a substratum of cutlass.
The Dover mail was in its usual genial position that the guard suspected
the passengers, the passengers suspected one another and the guard, they
all suspected everybody else, and the coachman was sure of nothing but the
horses; as to which cattle he could with a clear conscience have taken his
oath on the two Testaments that they were not fit for the journey.
“Wo-ho!” said the coachman. “So, then! One more pull and you’re at the top
and be damned to you, for I have had trouble enough to get you to it!—Joe!”
“Halloa!” the guard replied.
“What o’clock do you make it, Joe?”
“Ten minutes, good, past eleven.”
“My blood!” ejaculated the vexed coachman, “and not atop of Shooter’s yet!
Tst! Yah! Get on with you!”
The emphatic horse, cut short by the whip in a most decided negative, made
a decided scramble for it, and the three other horses followed suit. Once
more, the Dover mail struggled on, with the jack-boots of its passengers
squashing along by its side. They had stopped when the coach stopped, and
they kept close company with it. If any one of the three had had the
hardihood to propose to another to walk on a little ahead into the mist
and darkness, he would have put himself in a fair way of getting shot
instantly as a highwayman.
The last burst carried the mail to the summit of the hill. The horses
stopped to breathe again, and the guard got down to skid the wheel for the
descent, and open the coach-door to let the passengers in.
“Tst! Joe!” cried the coachman in a warning voice, looking down from his
box.
“What do you say, Tom?”
They both listened.
“I say a horse at a canter coming up, Joe.”
“ say a horse at a gallop, Tom,” returned the guard, leaving his
hold of the door, and mounting nimbly to his place. “Gentlemen! In the
king’s name, all of you!”
With this hurried adjuration, he cocked his blunderbuss, and stood on the
offensive.
The passenger booked by this history, was on the coach-step, getting in;
the two other passengers were close behind him, and about to follow. He
remained on the step, half in the coach and half out of; they remained in
the road below him. They all looked from the coachman to the guard, and
from the guard to the coachman, and listened. The coachman looked back and
the guard looked back, and even the emphatic leader pricked up his ears
and looked back, without contradicting.
The stillness consequent on the cessation of the rumbling and labouring of
the coach, added to the stillness of the night, made it very quiet indeed.
The panting of the horses communicated a tremulous motion to the coach, as
if it were in a state of agitation. The hearts of the passengers beat loud
enough perhaps to be heard; but at any rate, the quiet pause was audibly
expressive of people out of breath, and holding the breath, and having the
pulses quickened by expectation.
The sound of a horse at a gallop came fast and furiously up the hill.
“So-ho!” the guard sang out, as loud as he could roar. “Yo there! Stand! I
shall fire!”
The pace was suddenly checked, and, with much splashing and floundering, a
man’s voice called from the mist, “Is that the Dover mail?”
“Never you mind what it is!” the guard retorted. “What are you?”
“ that the Dover mail?”
“Why do you want to know?”
“I want a passenger, if it is.”
“What passenger?”
“Mr. Jarvis Lorry.”
Our booked passenger showed in a moment that it was his name. The guard,
the coachman, and the two other passengers eyed him distrustfully.
“Keep where you are,” the guard called to the voice in the mist, “because,
if I should make a mistake, it could never be set right in your lifetime.
Gentleman of the name of Lorry answer straight.”
“What is the matter?” asked the passenger, then, with mildly quavering
speech. “Who wants me? Is it Jerry?”
(“I don’t like Jerry’s voice, if it is Jerry,” growled the guard to
himself. “He’s hoarser than suits me, is Jerry.”)
“Yes, Mr. Lorry.”
“What is the matter?”
“A despatch sent after you from over yonder. T. and Co.”
“I know this messenger, guard,” said Mr. Lorry, getting down into the road—assisted
from behind more swiftly than politely by the other two passengers, who
immediately scrambled into the coach, shut the door, and pulled up the
window. “He may come close; there’s nothing wrong.”
“I hope there ain’t, but I can’t make so ’Nation sure of that,” said the
guard, in gruff soliloquy. “Hallo you!”
“Well! And hallo you!” said Jerry, more hoarsely than before.
“Come on at a footpace! d’ye mind me? And if you’ve got holsters to that
saddle o’ yourn, don’t let me see your hand go nigh ’em. For I’m a devil
at a quick mistake, and when I make one it takes the form of Lead. So now
let’s look at you.”
<br />
The figures of a horse and rider came slowly through the eddying mist, and
came to the side of the mail, where the passenger stood. The rider
stooped, and, casting up his eyes at the guard, handed the passenger a
small folded paper. The rider’s horse was blown, and both horse and rider
were covered with mud, from the hoofs of the horse to the hat of the man.
<br />
“Guard!” said the passenger, in a tone of quiet business confidence.
<br />
The watchful guard, with his right hand at the stock of his raised
blunderbuss, his left at the barrel, and his eye on the horseman, answered
curtly, “Sir.”
<br />
“There is nothing to apprehend. I belong to Tellson’s Bank. You must know
Tellson’s Bank in London. I am going to Paris on business. A crown to
drink. I may read this?”
<br />
“If so be as you’re quick, sir.”
<br />
He opened it in the light of the coach-lamp on that side, and read—first
to himself and then aloud: “‘Wait at Dover for Mam’selle.’ It’s not long,
you see, guard. Jerry, say that my answer was, .”
<br />
Jerry started in his saddle. “That’s a Blazing strange answer, too,” said
he, at his hoarsest.
<br />
“Take that message back, and they will know that I received this, as well
as if I wrote. Make the best of your way. Good night.”
<br />
With those words the passenger opened the coach-door and got in; not at
all assisted by his fellow-passengers, who had expeditiously secreted
their watches and purses in their boots, and were now making a general
pretence of being asleep. With no more definite purpose than to escape the
hazard of originating any other kind of action.
<br />
The coach lumbered on again, with heavier wreaths of mist closing round it
as it began the descent. The guard soon replaced his blunderbuss in his
arm-chest, and, having looked to the rest of its contents, and having
looked to the supplementary pistols that he wore in his belt, looked to a
smaller chest beneath his seat, in which there were a few smith’s tools, a
couple of torches, and a tinder-box. For he was furnished with that
completeness that if the coach-lamps had been blown and stormed out, which
did occasionally happen, he had only to shut himself up inside, keep the
flint and steel sparks well off the straw, and get a light with tolerable
safety and ease (if he were lucky) in five minutes.
<br />
“Tom!” softly over the coach roof.
<br />
“Hallo, Joe.”
<br />
“Did you hear the message?”
<br />
“I did, Joe.”
<br />
“What did you make of it, Tom?”
<br />
“Nothing at all, Joe.”
<br />
“That’s a coincidence, too,” the guard mused, “for I made the same of it
myself.”
<br />
Jerry, left alone in the mist and darkness, dismounted meanwhile, not only
to ease his spent horse, but to wipe the mud from his face, and shake the
wet out of his hat-brim, which might be capable of holding about half a
gallon. After standing with the bridle over his heavily-splashed arm,
until the wheels of the mail were no longer within hearing and the night
was quite still again, he turned to walk down the hill.
<br />
“After that there gallop from Temple Bar, old lady, I won’t trust your
fore-legs till I get you on the level,” said this hoarse messenger,
glancing at his mare. “‘Recalled to life.’ That’s a Blazing strange
message. Much of that wouldn’t do for you, Jerry! I say, Jerry! You’d be
in a Blazing bad way, if recalling to life was to come into fashion,
Jerry!”
CHAPTER III.<br />The Night Shadows
A wonderful fact to reflect upon, that every human creature is constituted
to be that profound secret and mystery to every other. A solemn
consideration, when I enter a great city by night, that every one of those
darkly clustered houses encloses its own secret; that every room in every
one of them encloses its own secret; that every beating heart in the
hundreds of thousands of breasts there, is, in some of its imaginings, a
secret to the heart nearest it! Something of the awfulness, even of Death
itself, is referable to this. No more can I turn the leaves of this dear
book that I loved, and vainly hope in time to read it all. No more can I
look into the depths of this unfathomable water, wherein, as momentary
lights glanced into it, I have had glimpses of buried treasure and other
things submerged. It was appointed that the book should shut with a
spring, for ever and for ever, when I had read but a page. It was
appointed that the water should be locked in an eternal frost, when the
light was playing on its surface, and I stood in ignorance on the shore.
My friend is dead, my neighbour is dead, my love, the darling of my soul,
is dead; it is the inexorable consolidation and perpetuation of the secret
that was always in that individuality, and which I shall carry in mine to
my life’s end. In any of the burial-places of this city through which I
pass, is there a sleeper more inscrutable than its busy inhabitants are,
in their innermost personality, to me, or than I am to them?
As to this, his natural and not to be alienated inheritance, the messenger
on horseback had exactly the same possessions as the King, the first
Minister of State, or the richest merchant in London. So with the three
passengers shut up in the narrow compass of one lumbering old mail coach;
they were mysteries to one another, as complete as if each had been in his
own coach and six, or his own coach and sixty, with the breadth of a
county between him and the next.
The messenger rode back at an easy trot, stopping pretty often at
ale-houses by the way to drink, but evincing a tendency to keep his own
counsel, and to keep his hat cocked over his eyes. He had eyes that
assorted very well with that decoration, being of a surface black, with no
depth in the colour or form, and much too near together—as if they
were afraid of being found out in something, singly, if they kept too far
apart. They had a sinister expression, under an old cocked-hat like a
three-cornered spittoon, and over a great muffler for the chin and throat,
which descended nearly to the wearer’s knees. When he stopped for drink,
he moved this muffler with his left hand, only while he poured his liquor
in with his right; as soon as that was done, he muffled again.
“No, Jerry, no!” said the messenger, harping on one theme as he rode. “It
wouldn’t do for you, Jerry. Jerry, you honest tradesman, it wouldn’t suit
line of business! Recalled—! Bust me if I don’t think
he’d been a drinking!”
His message perplexed his mind to that degree that he was fain, several
times, to take off his hat to scratch his head. Except on the crown, which
was raggedly bald, he had stiff, black hair, standing jaggedly all over
it, and growing down hill almost to his broad, blunt nose. It was so like
Smith’s work, so much more like the top of a strongly spiked wall than a
head of hair, that the best of players at leap-frog might have declined
him, as the most dangerous man in the world to go over.
While he trotted back with the message he was to deliver to the night
watchman in his box at the door of Tellson’s Bank, by Temple Bar, who was
to deliver it to greater authorities within, the shadows of the night took
such shapes to him as arose out of the message, and took such shapes to
the mare as arose out of private topics of uneasiness. They
seemed to be numerous, for she shied at every shadow on the road.
What time, the mail-coach lumbered, jolted, rattled, and bumped upon its
tedious way, with its three fellow-inscrutables inside. To whom, likewise,
the shadows of the night revealed themselves, in the forms their dozing
eyes and wandering thoughts suggested.
Tellson’s Bank had a run upon it in the mail. As the bank passenger—with
an arm drawn through the leathern strap, which did what lay in it to keep
him from pounding against the next passenger, and driving him into his
corner, whenever the coach got a special jolt—nodded in his place,
with half-shut eyes, the little coach-windows, and the coach-lamp dimly
gleaming through them, and the bulky bundle of opposite passenger, became
the bank, and did a great stroke of business. The rattle of the harness
was the chink of money, and more drafts were honoured in five minutes than
even Tellson’s, with all its foreign and home connection, ever paid in
thrice the time. Then the strong-rooms underground, at Tellson’s, with
such of their valuable stores and secrets as were known to the passenger
(and it was not a little that he knew about them), opened before him, and
he went in among them with the great keys and the feebly-burning candle,
and found them safe, and strong, and sound, and still, just as he had last
seen them.
But, though the bank was almost always with him, and though the coach (in
a confused way, like the presence of pain under an opiate) was always with
him, there was another current of impression that never ceased to run, all
through the night. He was on his way to dig some one out of a grave.
Now, which of the multitude of faces that showed themselves before him was
the true face of the buried person, the shadows of the night did not
indicate; but they were all the faces of a man of five-and-forty by years,
and they differed principally in the passions they expressed, and in the
ghastliness of their worn and wasted state. Pride, contempt, defiance,
stubbornness, submission, lamentation, succeeded one another; so did
varieties of sunken cheek, cadaverous colour, emaciated hands and figures.
But the face was in the main one face, and every head was prematurely
white. A hundred times the dozing passenger inquired of this spectre:
“Buried how long?”
The answer was always the same: “Almost eighteen years.”
“You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?”
“Long ago.”
“You know that you are recalled to life?”
“They tell me so.”
“I hope you care to live?”
“I can’t say.”
“Shall I show her to you? Will you come and see her?”
The answers to this question were various and contradictory. Sometimes the
broken reply was, “Wait! It would kill me if I saw her too soon.”
Sometimes, it was given in a tender rain of tears, and then it was, “Take
me to her.” Sometimes it was staring and bewildered, and then it was, “I
don’t know her. I don’t understand.”
After such imaginary discourse, the passenger in his fancy would dig, and
dig, dig—now with a spade, now with a great key, now with his hands—to
dig this wretched creature out. Got out at last, with earth hanging about
his face and hair, he would suddenly fan away to dust. The passenger would
then start to himself, and lower the window, to get the reality of mist
and rain on his cheek.
Yet even when his eyes were opened on the mist and rain, on the moving
patch of light from the lamps, and the hedge at the roadside retreating by
jerks, the night shadows outside the coach would fall into the train of
the night shadows within. The real Banking-house by Temple Bar, the real
business of the past day, the real strong rooms, the real express sent
after him, and the real message returned, would all be there. Out of the
midst of them, the ghostly face would rise, and he would accost it again.
“Buried how long?”
“Almost eighteen years.”
“I hope you care to live?”
“I can’t say.”
Dig—dig—dig—until an impatient movement from one of the
two passengers would admonish him to pull up the window, draw his arm
securely through the leathern strap, and speculate upon the two slumbering
forms, until his mind lost its hold of them, and they again slid away into
the bank and the grave.
“Buried how long?”
“Almost eighteen years.”
“You had abandoned all hope of being dug out?”
“Long ago.”
The words were still in his hearing as just spoken—distinctly in his
hearing as ever spoken words had been in his life—when the weary
passenger started to the consciousness of daylight, and found that the
shadows of the night were gone.
He lowered the window, and looked out at the rising sun. There was a ridge
of ploughed land, with a plough upon it where it had been left last night
when the horses were unyoked; beyond, a quiet coppice-wood, in which many
leaves of burning red and golden yellow still remained upon the trees.
Though the earth was cold and wet, the sky was clear, and the sun rose
bright, placid, and beautiful.
“Eighteen years!” said the passenger, looking at the sun. “Gracious
Creator of day! To be buried alive for eighteen years!”
CHAPTER IV.<br />The Preparation
When the mail got successfully to Dover, in the course of the forenoon,
the head drawer at the Royal George Hotel opened the coach-door as his
custom was. He did it with some flourish of ceremony, for a mail journey
from London in winter was an achievement to congratulate an adventurous
traveller upon.
By that time, there was only one adventurous traveller left be
congratulated: for the two others had been set down at their respective
roadside destinations. The mildewy inside of the coach, with its damp and
dirty straw, its disagreeable smell, and its obscurity, was rather like a
larger dog-kennel. Mr. Lorry, the passenger, shaking himself out of it in
chains of straw, a tangle of shaggy wrapper, flapping hat, and muddy legs,
was rather like a larger sort of dog.
“There will be a packet to Calais, tomorrow, drawer?”
“Yes, sir, if the weather holds and the wind sets tolerable fair. The tide
will serve pretty nicely at about two in the afternoon, sir. Bed, sir?”
“I shall not go to bed till night; but I want a bedroom, and a barber.”
“And then breakfast, sir? Yes, sir. That way, sir, if you please. Show
Concord! Gentleman’s valise and hot water to Concord. Pull off gentleman’s
boots in Concord. (You will find a fine sea-coal fire, sir.) Fetch barber
to Concord. Stir about there, now, for Concord!”
The Concord bed-chamber being always assigned to a passenger by the mail,
and passengers by the mail being always heavily wrapped up from head to
foot, the room had the odd interest for the establishment of the Royal
George, that although but one kind of man was seen to go into it, all
kinds and varieties of men came out of it. Consequently, another drawer,
and two porters, and several maids and the landlady, were all loitering by
accident at various points of the road between the Concord and the
coffee-room, when a gentleman of sixty, formally dressed in a brown suit
of clothes, pretty well worn, but very well kept, with large square cuffs
and large flaps to the pockets, passed along on his way to his breakfast.
The coffee-room had no other occupant, that forenoon, than the gentleman
in brown. His breakfast-table was drawn before the fire, and as he sat,
with its light shining on him, waiting for the meal, he sat so still, that
he might have been sitting for his portrait.
Very orderly and methodical he looked, with a hand on each knee, and a
loud watch ticking a sonorous sermon under his flapped waist-coat, as
though it pitted its gravity and longevity against the levity and
evanescence of the brisk fire. He had a good leg, and was a little vain of
it, for his brown stockings fitted sleek and close, and were of a fine
texture; his shoes and buckles, too, though plain, were trim. He wore an
odd little sleek crisp flaxen wig, setting very close to his head: which
wig, it is to be presumed, was made of hair, but which looked far more as
though it were spun from filaments of silk or glass. His linen, though not
of a fineness in accordance with his stockings, was as white as the tops
of the waves that broke upon the neighbouring beach, or the specks of sail
that glinted in the sunlight far at sea. A face habitually suppressed and
quieted, was still lighted up under the quaint wig by a pair of moist
bright eyes that it must have cost their owner, in years gone by, some
pains to drill to the composed and reserved expression of Tellson’s Bank.
He had a healthy colour in his cheeks, and his face, though lined, bore
few traces of anxiety. But, perhaps the confidential bachelor clerks in
Tellson’s Bank were principally occupied with the cares of other people;
and perhaps second-hand cares, like second-hand clothes, come easily off
and on.
Completing his resemblance to a man who was sitting for his portrait, Mr.
Lorry dropped off to sleep. The arrival of his breakfast roused him, and
he said to the drawer, as he moved his chair to it:
“I wish accommodation prepared for a young lady who may come here at any
time to-day. She may ask for Mr. Jarvis Lorry, or she may only ask for a
gentleman from Tellson’s Bank. Please to let me know.”
“Yes, sir. Tellson’s Bank in London, sir?”
“Yes.”
“Yes, sir. We have oftentimes the honour to entertain your gentlemen in
their travelling backwards and forwards betwixt London and Paris, sir. A
vast deal of travelling, sir, in Tellson and Company’s House.”
“Yes. We are quite a French House, as well as an English one.”
“Yes, sir. Not much in the habit of such travelling yourself, I think,
sir?”
“Not of late years. It is fifteen years since we—since I—came
last from France.”
“Indeed, sir? That was before my time here, sir. Before our people’s time
here, sir. The George was in other hands at that time, sir.”
“I believe so.”
“But I would hold a pretty wager, sir, that a House like Tellson and
Company was flourishing, a matter of fifty, not to speak of fifteen years
ago?”
“You might treble that, and say a hundred and fifty, yet not be far from
the truth.”
“Indeed, sir!”
Rounding his mouth and both his eyes, as he stepped backward from the
table, the waiter shifted his napkin from his right arm to his left,
dropped into a comfortable attitude, and stood surveying the guest while
he ate and drank, as from an observatory or watchtower. According to the
immemorial usage of waiters in all ages.
When Mr. Lorry had finished his breakfast, he went out for a stroll on the
beach. The little narrow, crooked town of Dover hid itself away from the
beach, and ran its head into the chalk cliffs, like a marine ostrich. The
beach was a desert of heaps of sea and stones tumbling wildly about, and
the sea did what it liked, and what it liked was destruction. It thundered
at the town, and thundered at the cliffs, and brought the coast down,
madly. The air among the houses was of so strong a piscatory flavour that
one might have supposed sick fish went up to be dipped in it, as sick
people went down to be dipped in the sea. A little fishing was done in the
port, and a quantity of strolling about by night, and looking seaward:
particularly at those times when the tide made, and was near flood. Small
tradesmen, who did no business whatever, sometimes unaccountably realised
large fortunes, and it was remarkable that nobody in the neighbourhood
could endure a lamplighter.
As the day declined into the afternoon, and the air, which had been at
intervals clear enough to allow the French coast to be seen, became again
charged with mist and vapour, Mr. Lorry’s thoughts seemed to cloud too.
When it was dark, and he sat before the coffee-room fire, awaiting his
dinner as he had awaited his breakfast, his mind was busily digging,
digging, digging, in the live red coals.
A bottle of good claret after dinner does a digger in the red coals no
harm, otherwise than as it has a tendency to throw him out of work. Mr.
Lorry had been idle a long time, and had just poured out his last glassful
of wine with as complete an appearance of satisfaction as is ever to be
found in an elderly gentleman of a fresh complexion who has got to the end
of a bottle, when a rattling of wheels came up the narrow street, and
rumbled into the inn-yard.
He set down his glass untouched. “This is Mam’selle!” said he.
In a very few minutes the waiter came in to announce that Miss Manette had
arrived from London, and would be happy to see the gentleman from
Tellson’s.
“So soon?”
Miss Manette had taken some refreshment on the road, and required none
then, and was extremely anxious to see the gentleman from Tellson’s
immediately, if it suited his pleasure and convenience.
The gentleman from Tellson’s had nothing left for it but to empty his
glass with an air of stolid desperation, settle his odd little flaxen wig
at the ears, and follow the waiter to Miss Manette’s apartment. It was a
large, dark room, furnished in a funereal manner with black horsehair, and
loaded with heavy dark tables. These had been oiled and oiled, until the
two tall candles on the table in the middle of the room were gloomily
reflected on every leaf; as if were buried, in deep graves of
black mahogany, and no light to speak of could be expected from them until
they were dug out.
The obscurity was so difficult to penetrate that Mr. Lorry, picking his
way over the well-worn Turkey carpet, supposed Miss Manette to be, for the
moment, in some adjacent room, until, having got past the two tall
candles, he saw standing to receive him by the table between them and the
fire, a young lady of not more than seventeen, in a riding-cloak, and
still holding her straw travelling-hat by its ribbon in her hand. As his
eyes rested on a short, slight, pretty figure, a quantity of golden hair,
a pair of blue eyes that met his own with an inquiring look, and a
forehead with a singular capacity (remembering how young and smooth it
was), of rifting and knitting itself into an expression that was not quite
one of perplexity, or wonder, or alarm, or merely of a bright fixed
attention, though it included all the four expressions—as his eyes
rested on these things, a sudden vivid likeness passed before him, of a
child whom he had held in his arms on the passage across that very
Channel, one cold time, when the hail drifted heavily and the sea ran
high. The likeness passed away, like a breath along the surface of the
gaunt pier-glass behind her, on the frame of which, a hospital procession
of negro cupids, several headless and all cripples, were offering black
baskets of Dead Sea fruit to black divinities of the feminine gender—and
he made his formal bow to Miss Manette.
“Pray take a seat, sir.” In a very clear and pleasant young voice; a
little foreign in its accent, but a very little indeed.
“I kiss your hand, miss,” said Mr. Lorry, with the manners of an earlier
date, as he made his formal bow again, and took his seat.
“I received a letter from the Bank, sir, yesterday, informing me that some
intelligence—or discovery—”
“The word is not material, miss; either word will do.”
“—respecting the small property of my poor father, whom I never saw—so
long dead—”
Mr. Lorry moved in his chair, and cast a troubled look towards the
hospital procession of negro cupids. As if had any help for
anybody in their absurd baskets!
“—rendered it necessary that I should go to Paris, there to
communicate with a gentleman of the Bank, so good as to be despatched to
Paris for the purpose.”
“Myself.”
“As I was prepared to hear, sir.”
She curtseyed to him (young ladies made curtseys in those days), with a
pretty desire to convey to him that she felt how much older and wiser he
was than she. He made her another bow.
“I replied to the Bank, sir, that as it was considered necessary, by those
who know, and who are so kind as to advise me, that I should go to France,
and that as I am an orphan and have no friend who could go with me, I
should esteem it highly if I might be permitted to place myself, during
the journey, under that worthy gentleman’s protection. The gentleman had
left London, but I think a messenger was sent after him to beg the favour
of his waiting for me here.”
“I was happy,” said Mr. Lorry, “to be entrusted with the charge. I shall
be more happy to execute it.”
“Sir, I thank you indeed. I thank you very gratefully. It was told me by
the Bank that the gentleman would explain to me the details of the
business, and that I must prepare myself to find them of a surprising
nature. I have done my best to prepare myself, and I naturally have a
strong and eager interest to know what they are.”
“Naturally,” said Mr. Lorry. “Yes—I—”
After a pause, he added, again settling the crisp flaxen wig at the ears,
“It is very difficult to begin.”
He did not begin, but, in his indecision, met her glance. The young
forehead lifted itself into that singular expression—but it was
pretty and characteristic, besides being singular—and she raised her
hand, as if with an involuntary action she caught at, or stayed some
passing shadow.
“Are you quite a stranger to me, sir?”
“Am I not?” Mr. Lorry opened his hands, and extended them outwards with an
argumentative smile.
Between the eyebrows and just over the little feminine nose, the line of
which was as delicate and fine as it was possible to be, the expression
deepened itself as she took her seat thoughtfully in the chair by which
she had hitherto remained standing. He watched her as she mused, and the
moment she raised her eyes again, went on:
“In your adopted country, I presume, I cannot do better than address you
as a young English lady, Miss Manette?”
“If you please, sir.”
“Miss Manette, I am a man of business. I have a business charge to acquit
myself of. In your reception of it, don’t heed me any more than if I was a
speaking machine—truly, I am not much else. I will, with your leave,
relate to you, miss, the story of one of our customers.”
“Story!”
He seemed wilfully to mistake the word she had repeated, when he added, in
a hurry, “Yes, customers; in the banking business we usually call our
connection our customers. He was a French gentleman; a scientific
gentleman; a man of great acquirements—a Doctor.”
“Not of Beauvais?”
“Why, yes, of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the gentleman
was of Beauvais. Like Monsieur Manette, your father, the gentleman was of
repute in Paris. I had the honour of knowing him there. Our relations were
business relations, but confidential. I was at that time in our French
House, and had been—oh! twenty years.”
“At that time—I may ask, at what time, sir?”
“I speak, miss, of twenty years ago. He married—an English lady—and
I was one of the trustees. His affairs, like the affairs of many other
French gentlemen and French families, were entirely in Tellson’s hands. In
a similar way I am, or I have been, trustee of one kind or other for
scores of our customers. These are mere business relations, miss; there is
no friendship in them, no particular interest, nothing like sentiment. I
have passed from one to another, in the course of my business life, just
as I pass from one of our customers to another in the course of my
business day; in short, I have no feelings; I am a mere machine. To go on—”
“But this is my father’s story, sir; and I begin to think”—the
curiously roughened forehead was very intent upon him—“that when I
was left an orphan through my mother’s surviving my father only two years,
it was you who brought me to England. I am almost sure it was you.”
Mr. Lorry took the hesitating little hand that confidingly advanced to
take his, and he put it with some ceremony to his lips. He then conducted
the young lady straightway to her chair again, and, holding the chair-back
with his left hand, and using his right by turns to rub his chin, pull his
wig at the ears, or point what he said, stood looking down into her face
while she sat looking up into his.
“Miss Manette, it I. And you will see how truly I spoke of
myself just now, in saying I had no feelings, and that all the relations I
hold with my fellow-creatures are mere business relations, when you
reflect that I have never seen you since. No; you have been the ward of
Tellson’s House since, and I have been busy with the other business of
Tellson’s House since. Feelings! I have no time for them, no chance of
them. I pass my whole life, miss, in turning an immense pecuniary Mangle.”
After this odd description of his daily routine of employment, Mr. Lorry
flattened his flaxen wig upon his head with both hands (which was most
unnecessary, for nothing could be flatter than its shining surface was
before), and resumed his former attitude.
“So far, miss (as you have remarked), this is the story of your regretted
father. Now comes the difference. If your father had not died when he did—Don’t
be frightened! How you start!”
She did, indeed, start. And she caught his wrist with both her hands.
“Pray,” said Mr. Lorry, in a soothing tone, bringing his left hand from
the back of the chair to lay it on the supplicatory fingers that clasped
him in so violent a tremble: “pray control your agitation—a matter
of business. As I was saying—”
Her look so discomposed him that he stopped, wandered, and began anew:
“As I was saying; if Monsieur Manette had not died; if he had suddenly and
silently disappeared; if he had been spirited away; if it had not been
difficult to guess to what dreadful place, though no art could trace him;
if he had an enemy in some compatriot who could exercise a privilege that
I in my own time have known the boldest people afraid to speak of in a
whisper, across the water there; for instance, the privilege of filling up
blank forms for the consignment of any one to the oblivion of a prison for
any length of time; if his wife had implored the king, the queen, the
court, the clergy, for any tidings of him, and all quite in vain;—then
the history of your father would have been the history of this unfortunate
gentleman, the Doctor of Beauvais.”
“I entreat you to tell me more, sir.”
“I will. I am going to. You can bear it?”
“I can bear anything but the uncertainty you leave me in at this moment.”
“You speak collectedly, and you— collected. That’s good!”
(Though his manner was less satisfied than his words.) “A matter of
business. Regard it as a matter of business—business that must be
done. Now if this doctor’s wife, though a lady of great courage and
spirit, had suffered so intensely from this cause before her little child
was born—”
“The little child was a daughter, sir.”
“A daughter. A-a-matter of business—don’t be distressed. Miss, if
the poor lady had suffered so intensely before her little child was born,
that she came to the determination of sparing the poor child the
inheritance of any part of the agony she had known the pains of, by
rearing her in the belief that her father was dead—No, don’t kneel!
In Heaven’s name why should you kneel to me!”
“For the truth. O dear, good, compassionate sir, for the truth!”
“A—a matter of business. You confuse me, and how can I transact
business if I am confused? Let us be clear-headed. If you could kindly
mention now, for instance, what nine times ninepence are, or how many
shillings in twenty guineas, it would be so encouraging. I should be so
much more at my ease about your state of mind.”
Without directly answering to this appeal, she sat so still when he had
very gently raised her, and the hands that had not ceased to clasp his
wrists were so much more steady than they had been, that she communicated
some reassurance to Mr. Jarvis Lorry.
“That’s right, that’s right. Courage! Business! You have business before
you; useful business. Miss Manette, your mother took this course with you.
And when she died—I believe broken-hearted—having never
slackened her unavailing search for your father, she left you, at two
years old, to grow to be blooming, beautiful, and happy, without the dark
cloud upon you of living in uncertainty whether your father soon wore his
heart out in prison, or wasted there through many lingering years.”
As he said the words he looked down, with an admiring pity, on the flowing
golden hair; as if he pictured to himself that it might have been already
tinged with grey.
“You know that your parents had no great possession, and that what they
had was secured to your mother and to you. There has been no new
discovery, of money, or of any other property; but—”
He felt his wrist held closer, and he stopped. The expression in the
forehead, which had so particularly attracted his notice, and which was
now immovable, had deepened into one of pain and horror.
“But he has been—been found. He is alive. Greatly changed, it is too
probable; almost a wreck, it is possible; though we will hope the best.
Still, alive. Your father has been taken to the house of an old servant in
Paris, and we are going there: I, to identify him if I can: you, to
restore him to life, love, duty, rest, comfort.”
A shiver ran through her frame, and from it through his. She said, in a
low, distinct, awe-stricken voice, as if she were saying it in a dream,
“I am going to see his Ghost! It will be his Ghost—not him!”
Mr. Lorry quietly chafed the hands that held his arm. “There, there,
there! See now, see now! The best and the worst are known to you, now. You
are well on your way to the poor wronged gentleman, and, with a fair sea
voyage, and a fair land journey, you will be soon at his dear side.”
She repeated in the same tone, sunk to a whisper, “I have been free, I
have been happy, yet his Ghost has never haunted me!”
“Only one thing more,” said Mr. Lorry, laying stress upon it as a
wholesome means of enforcing her attention: “he has been found under
another name; his own, long forgotten or long concealed. It would be worse
than useless now to inquire which; worse than useless to seek to know
whether he has been for years overlooked, or always designedly held
prisoner. It would be worse than useless now to make any inquiries,
because it would be dangerous. Better not to mention the subject, anywhere
or in any way, and to remove him—for a while at all events—out
of France. Even I, safe as an Englishman, and even Tellson’s, important as
they are to French credit, avoid all naming of the matter. I carry about
me, not a scrap of writing openly referring to it. This is a secret
service altogether. My credentials, entries, and memoranda, are all
comprehended in the one line, ‘Recalled to Life;’ which may mean anything.
But what is the matter! She doesn’t notice a word! Miss Manette!”
Perfectly still and silent, and not even fallen back in her chair, she sat
under his hand, utterly insensible; with her eyes open and fixed upon him,
and with that last expression looking as if it were carved or branded into
her forehead. So close was her hold upon his arm, that he feared to detach
himself lest he should hurt her; therefore he called out loudly for
assistance without moving.
A wild-looking woman, whom even in his agitation, Mr. Lorry observed to be
all of a red colour, and to have red hair, and to be dressed in some
extraordinary tight-fitting fashion, and to have on her head a most
wonderful bonnet like a Grenadier wooden measure, and good measure too, or
a great Stilton cheese, came running into the room in advance of the inn
servants, and soon settled the question of his detachment from the poor
young lady, by laying a brawny hand upon his chest, and sending him flying
back against the nearest wall.
(“I really think this must be a man!” was Mr. Lorry’s breathless
reflection, simultaneously with his coming against the wall.)
“Why, look at you all!” bawled this figure, addressing the inn servants.
“Why don’t you go and fetch things, instead of standing there staring at
me? I am not so much to look at, am I? Why don’t you go and fetch things?
I’ll let you know, if you don’t bring smelling-salts, cold water, and
vinegar, quick, I will.”
There was an immediate dispersal for these restoratives, and she softly
laid the patient on a sofa, and tended her with great skill and
gentleness: calling her “my precious!” and “my bird!” and spreading her
golden hair aside over her shoulders with great pride and care.
“And you in brown!” she said, indignantly turning to Mr. Lorry; “couldn’t
you tell her what you had to tell her, without frightening her to death?
Look at her, with her pretty pale face and her cold hands. Do you call
being a Banker?”
Mr. Lorry was so exceedingly disconcerted by a question so hard to answer,
that he could only look on, at a distance, with much feebler sympathy and
humility, while the strong woman, having banished the inn servants under
the mysterious penalty of “letting them know” something not mentioned if
they stayed there, staring, recovered her charge by a regular series of
gradations, and coaxed her to lay her drooping head upon her shoulder.
“I hope she will do well now,” said Mr. Lorry.
“No thanks to you in brown, if she does. My darling pretty!”
“I hope,” said Mr. Lorry, after another pause of feeble sympathy and
humility, “that you accompany Miss Manette to France?”
“A likely thing, too!” replied the strong woman. “If it was ever intended
that I should go across salt water, do you suppose Providence would have
cast my lot in an island?”
This being another question hard to answer, Mr. Jarvis Lorry withdrew to
consider it.
CHAPTER V.<br />The Wine-shop
A large cask of wine had been dropped and broken, in the street. The
accident had happened in getting it out of a cart; the cask had tumbled
out with a run, the hoops had burst, and it lay on the stones just outside
the door of the wine-shop, shattered like a walnut-shell.
All the people within reach had suspended their business, or their
idleness, to run to the spot and drink the wine. The rough, irregular
stones of the street, pointing every way, and designed, one might have
thought, expressly to lame all living creatures that approached them, had
dammed it into little pools; these were surrounded, each by its own
jostling group or crowd, according to its size. Some men kneeled down,
made scoops of their two hands joined, and sipped, or tried to help women,
who bent over their shoulders, to sip, before the wine had all run out
between their fingers. Others, men and women, dipped in the puddles with
little mugs of mutilated earthenware, or even with handkerchiefs from
women’s heads, which were squeezed dry into infants’ mouths; others made
small mud-embankments, to stem the wine as it ran; others, directed by
lookers-on up at high windows, darted here and there, to cut off little
streams of wine that started away in new directions; others devoted
themselves to the sodden and lee-dyed pieces of the cask, licking, and
even champing the moister wine-rotted fragments with eager relish. There
was no drainage to carry off the wine, and not only did it all get taken
up, but so much mud got taken up along with it, that there might have been
a scavenger in the street, if anybody acquainted with it could have
believed in such a miraculous presence.
A shrill sound of laughter and of amused voices—voices of men,
women, and children—resounded in the street while this wine game
lasted. There was little roughness in the sport, and much playfulness.
There was a special companionship in it, an observable inclination on the
part of every one to join some other one, which led, especially among the
luckier or lighter-hearted, to frolicsome embraces, drinking of healths,
shaking of hands, and even joining of hands and dancing, a dozen together.
When the wine was gone, and the places where it had been most abundant
were raked into a gridiron-pattern by fingers, these demonstrations
ceased, as suddenly as they had broken out. The man who had left his saw
sticking in the firewood he was cutting, set it in motion again; the women
who had left on a door-step the little pot of hot ashes, at which she had
been trying to soften the pain in her own starved fingers and toes, or in
those of her child, returned to it; men with bare arms, matted locks, and
cadaverous faces, who had emerged into the winter light from cellars,
moved away, to descend again; and a gloom gathered on the scene that
appeared more natural to it than sunshine.
The wine was red wine, and had stained the ground of the narrow street in
the suburb of Saint Antoine, in Paris, where it was spilled. It had
stained many hands, too, and many faces, and many naked feet, and many
wooden shoes. The hands of the man who sawed the wood, left red marks on
the billets; and the forehead of the woman who nursed her baby, was
stained with the stain of the old rag she wound about her head again.
Those who had been greedy with the staves of the cask, had acquired a
tigerish smear about the mouth; and one tall joker so besmirched, his head
more out of a long squalid bag of a nightcap than in it, scrawled upon a
wall with his finger dipped in muddy wine-lees—.
The time was to come, when that wine too would be spilled on the
street-stones, and when the stain of it would be red upon many there.
And now that the cloud settled on Saint Antoine, which a momentary gleam
had driven from his sacred countenance, the darkness of it was heavy—cold,
dirt, sickness, ignorance, and want, were the lords in waiting on the
saintly presence—nobles of great power all of them; but, most
especially the last. Samples of a people that had undergone a terrible
grinding and regrinding in the mill, and certainly not in the fabulous
mill which ground old people young, shivered at every corner, passed in
and out at every doorway, looked from every window, fluttered in every
vestige of a garment that the wind shook. The mill which had worked them
down, was the mill that grinds young people old; the children had ancient
faces and grave voices; and upon them, and upon the grown faces, and
ploughed into every furrow of age and coming up afresh, was the sigh,
Hunger. It was prevalent everywhere. Hunger was pushed out of the tall
houses, in the wretched clothing that hung upon poles and lines; Hunger
was patched into them with straw and rag and wood and paper; Hunger was
repeated in every fragment of the small modicum of firewood that the man
sawed off; Hunger stared down from the smokeless chimneys, and started up
from the filthy street that had no offal, among its refuse, of anything to
eat. Hunger was the inscription on the baker’s shelves, written in every
small loaf of his scanty stock of bad bread; at the sausage-shop, in every
dead-dog preparation that was offered for sale. Hunger rattled its dry
bones among the roasting chestnuts in the turned cylinder; Hunger was
shred into atomics in every farthing porringer of husky chips of potato,
fried with some reluctant drops of oil.
Its abiding place was in all things fitted to it. A narrow winding street,
full of offence and stench, with other narrow winding streets diverging,
all peopled by rags and nightcaps, and all smelling of rags and nightcaps,
and all visible things with a brooding look upon them that looked ill. In
the hunted air of the people there was yet some wild-beast thought of the
possibility of turning at bay. Depressed and slinking though they were,
eyes of fire were not wanting among them; nor compressed lips, white with
what they suppressed; nor foreheads knitted into the likeness of the
gallows-rope they mused about enduring, or inflicting. The trade signs
(and they were almost as many as the shops) were, all, grim illustrations
of Want. The butcher and the porkman painted up, only the leanest scrags
of meat; the baker, the coarsest of meagre loaves. The people rudely
pictured as drinking in the wine-shops, croaked over their scanty measures
of thin wine and beer, and were gloweringly confidential together. Nothing
was represented in a flourishing condition, save tools and weapons; but,
the cutler’s knives and axes were sharp and bright, the smith’s hammers
were heavy, and the gunmaker’s stock was murderous. The crippling stones
of the pavement, with their many little reservoirs of mud and water, had
no footways, but broke off abruptly at the doors. The kennel, to make
amends, ran down the middle of the street—when it ran at all: which
was only after heavy rains, and then it ran, by many eccentric fits, into
the houses. Across the streets, at wide intervals, one clumsy lamp was
slung by a rope and pulley; at night, when the lamplighter had let these
down, and lighted, and hoisted them again, a feeble grove of dim wicks
swung in a sickly manner overhead, as if they were at sea. Indeed they
were at sea, and the ship and crew were in peril of tempest.
For, the time was to come, when the gaunt scarecrows of that region should
have watched the lamplighter, in their idleness and hunger, so long, as to
conceive the idea of improving on his method, and hauling up men by those
ropes and pulleys, to flare upon the darkness of their condition. But, the
time was not come yet; and every wind that blew over France shook the rags
of the scarecrows in vain, for the birds, fine of song and feather, took
no warning.
The wine-shop was a corner shop, better than most others in its appearance
and degree, and the master of the wine-shop had stood outside it, in a
yellow waistcoat and green breeches, looking on at the struggle for the
lost wine. “It’s not my affair,” said he, with a final shrug of the
shoulders. “The people from the market did it. Let them bring another.”
There, his eyes happening to catch the tall joker writing up his joke, he
called to him across the way:
“Say, then, my Gaspard, what do you do there?”
The fellow pointed to his joke with immense significance, as is often the
way with his tribe. It missed its mark, and completely failed, as is often
the way with his tribe too.
“What now? Are you a subject for the mad hospital?” said the wine-shop
keeper, crossing the road, and obliterating the jest with a handful of
mud, picked up for the purpose, and smeared over it. “Why do you write in
the public streets? Is there—tell me thou—is there no other
place to write such words in?”
In his expostulation he dropped his cleaner hand (perhaps accidentally,
perhaps not) upon the joker’s heart. The joker rapped it with his own,
took a nimble spring upward, and came down in a fantastic dancing
attitude, with one of his stained shoes jerked off his foot into his hand,
and held out. A joker of an extremely, not to say wolfishly practical
character, he looked, under those circumstances.
“Put it on, put it on,” said the other. “Call wine, wine; and finish
there.” With that advice, he wiped his soiled hand upon the joker’s dress,
such as it was—quite deliberately, as having dirtied the hand on his
account; and then recrossed the road and entered the wine-shop.
This wine-shop keeper was a bull-necked, martial-looking man of thirty,
and he should have been of a hot temperament, for, although it was a
bitter day, he wore no coat, but carried one slung over his shoulder. His
shirt-sleeves were rolled up, too, and his brown arms were bare to the
elbows. Neither did he wear anything more on his head than his own
crisply-curling short dark hair. He was a dark man altogether, with good
eyes and a good bold breadth between them. Good-humoured looking on the
whole, but implacable-looking, too; evidently a man of a strong resolution
and a set purpose; a man not desirable to be met, rushing down a narrow
pass with a gulf on either side, for nothing would turn the man.
Madame Defarge, his wife, sat in the shop behind the counter as he came
in. Madame Defarge was a stout woman of about his own age, with a watchful
eye that seldom seemed to look at anything, a large hand heavily ringed, a
steady face, strong features, and great composure of manner. There was a
character about Madame Defarge, from which one might have predicated that
she did not often make mistakes against herself in any of the reckonings
over which she presided. Madame Defarge being sensitive to cold, was
wrapped in fur, and had a quantity of bright shawl twined about her head,
though not to the concealment of her large earrings. Her knitting was
before her, but she had laid it down to pick her teeth with a toothpick.
Thus engaged, with her right elbow supported by her left hand, Madame
Defarge said nothing when her lord came in, but coughed just one grain of
cough. This, in combination with the lifting of her darkly defined
eyebrows over her toothpick by the breadth of a line, suggested to her
husband that he would do well to look round the shop among the customers,
for any new customer who had dropped in while he stepped over the way.
The wine-shop keeper accordingly rolled his eyes about, until they rested
upon an elderly gentleman and a young lady, who were seated in a corner.
Other company were there: two playing cards, two playing dominoes, three
standing by the counter lengthening out a short supply of wine. As he
passed behind the counter, he took notice that the elderly gentleman said
in a look to the young lady, “This is our man.”
“What the devil do do in that galley there?” said Monsieur
Defarge to himself; “I don’t know you.”
But, he feigned not to notice the two strangers, and fell into discourse
with the triumvirate of customers who were drinking at the counter.
“How goes it, Jacques?” said one of these three to Monsieur Defarge. “Is
all the spilt wine swallowed?”
“Every drop, Jacques,” answered Monsieur Defarge.
When this interchange of Christian name was effected, Madame Defarge,
picking her teeth with her toothpick, coughed another grain of cough, and
raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
“It is not often,” said the second of the three, addressing Monsieur
Defarge, “that many of these miserable beasts know the taste of wine, or
of anything but black bread and death. Is it not so, Jacques?”
“It is so, Jacques,” Monsieur Defarge returned.
At this second interchange of the Christian name, Madame Defarge, still
using her toothpick with profound composure, coughed another grain of
cough, and raised her eyebrows by the breadth of another line.
The last of the three now said his say, as he put down his empty drinking
vessel and smacked his lips.
“Ah! So much the worse! A bitter taste it is that such poor cattle always
have in their mouths, and hard lives they live, Jacques. Am I right,
Jacques?”
“You are right, Jacques,” was the response of Monsieur Defarge.
This third interchange of the Christian name was completed at the moment
when Madame Defarge put her toothpick by, kept her eyebrows up, and
slightly rustled in her seat.
“Hold then! True!” muttered her husband. “Gentlemen—my wife!”
The three customers pulled off their hats to Madame Defarge, with three
flourishes. She acknowledged their homage by bending her head, and giving
them a quick look. Then she glanced in a casual manner round the
wine-shop, took up her knitting with great apparent calmness and repose of
spirit, and became absorbed in it.
“Gentlemen,” said her husband, who had kept his bright eye observantly
upon her, “good day. The chamber, furnished bachelor-fashion, that you
wished to see, and were inquiring for when I stepped out, is on the fifth
floor. The doorway of the staircase gives on the little courtyard close to
the left here,” pointing with his hand, “near to the window of my
establishment. But, now that I remember, one of you has already been
there, and can show the way. Gentlemen, adieu!”
They paid for their wine, and left the place. The eyes of Monsieur Defarge
were studying his wife at her knitting when the elderly gentleman advanced
from his corner, and begged the favour of a word.
“Willingly, sir,” said Monsieur Defarge, and quietly stepped with him to
the door.
Their conference was very short, but very decided. Almost at the first
word, Monsieur Defarge started and became deeply attentive. It had not
lasted a minute, when he nodded and went out. The gentleman then beckoned
to the young lady, and they, too, went out. Madame Defarge knitted with
nimble fingers and steady eyebrows, and saw nothing.
Mr. Jarvis Lorry and Miss Manette, emerging from the wine-shop thus,
joined Monsieur Defarge in the doorway to which he had directed his own
company just before. It opened from a stinking little black courtyard, and
was the general public entrance to a great pile of houses, inhabited by a
great number of people. In the gloomy tile-paved entry to the gloomy
tile-paved staircase, Monsieur Defarge bent down on one knee to the child
of his old master, and put her hand to his lips. It was a gentle action,
but not at all gently done; a very remarkable transformation had come over
him in a few seconds. He had no good-humour in his face, nor any openness
of aspect left, but had become a secret, angry, dangerous man.
“It is very high; it is a little difficult. Better to begin slowly.” Thus,
Monsieur Defarge, in a stern voice, to Mr. Lorry, as they began ascending
the stairs.
“Is he alone?” the latter whispered.
“Alone! God help him, who should be with him!” said the other, in the same
low voice.
“Is he always alone, then?”
“Yes.”
“Of his own desire?”
“Of his own necessity. As he was, when I first saw him after they found me
and demanded to know if I would take him, and, at my peril be discreet—as
he was then, so he is now.”
“He is greatly changed?”
“Changed!”
The keeper of the wine-shop stopped to strike the wall with his hand, and
mutter a tremendous curse. No direct answer could have been half so
forcible. Mr. Lorry’s spirits grew heavier and heavier, as he and his two
companions ascended higher and higher.
Such a staircase, with its accessories, in the older and more crowded
parts of Paris, would be bad enough now; but, at that time, it was vile
indeed to unaccustomed and unhardened senses. Every little habitation
within the great foul nest of one high building—that is to say, the
room or rooms within every door that opened on the general staircase—left
its own heap of refuse on its own landing, besides flinging other refuse
from its own windows. The uncontrollable and hopeless mass of
decomposition so engendered, would have polluted the air, even if poverty
and deprivation had not loaded it with their intangible impurities; the
two bad sources combined made it almost insupportable. Through such an
atmosphere, by a steep dark shaft of dirt and poison, the way lay.
Yielding to his own disturbance of mind, and to his young companion’s
agitation, which became greater every instant, Mr. Jarvis Lorry twice
stopped to rest. Each of these stoppages was made at a doleful grating, by
which any languishing good airs that were left uncorrupted, seemed to
escape, and all spoilt and sickly vapours seemed to crawl in. Through the
rusted bars, tastes, rather than glimpses, were caught of the jumbled
neighbourhood; and nothing within range, nearer or lower than the summits
of the two great towers of Notre-Dame, had any promise on it of healthy
life or wholesome aspirations.
At last, the top of the staircase was gained, and they stopped for the
third time. There was yet an upper staircase, of a steeper inclination and
of contracted dimensions, to be ascended, before the garret story was
reached. The keeper of the wine-shop, always going a little in advance,
and always going on the side which Mr. Lorry took, as though he dreaded to
be asked any question by the young lady, turned himself about here, and,
carefully feeling in the pockets of the coat he carried over his shoulder,
took out a key.
“The door is locked then, my friend?” said Mr. Lorry, surprised.
“Ay. Yes,” was the grim reply of Monsieur Defarge.
“You think it necessary to keep the unfortunate gentleman so retired?”
“I think it necessary to turn the key.” Monsieur Defarge whispered it
closer in his ear, and frowned heavily.
“Why?”
“Why! Because he has lived so long, locked up, that he would be frightened—rave—tear
himself to pieces—die—come to I know not what harm—if
his door was left open.”
“Is it possible!” exclaimed Mr. Lorry.
“Is it possible!” repeated Defarge, bitterly. “Yes. And a beautiful world
we live in, when it possible, and when many other such things
are possible, and not only possible, but done—done, see you!—under
that sky there, every day. Long live the Devil. Let us go on.”
This dialogue had been held in so very low a whisper, that not a word of
it had reached the young lady’s ears. But, by this time she trembled under
such strong emotion, and her face expressed such deep anxiety, and, above
all, such dread and terror, that Mr. Lorry felt it incumbent on him to
speak a word or two of reassurance.
“Courage, dear miss! Courage! Business! The worst will be over in a
moment; it is but passing the room-door, and the worst is over. Then, all
the good you bring to him, all the relief, all the happiness you bring to
him, begin. Let our good friend here, assist you on that side. That’s
well, friend Defarge. Come, now. Business, business!”
They went up slowly and softly. The staircase was short, and they were
soon at the top. There, as it had an abrupt turn in it, they came all at
once in sight of three men, whose heads were bent down close together at
the side of a door, and who were intently looking into the room to which
the door belonged, through some chinks or holes in the wall. On hearing
footsteps close at hand, these three turned, and rose, and showed
themselves to be the three of one name who had been drinking in the
wine-shop.
“I forgot them in the surprise of your visit,” explained Monsieur Defarge.
“Leave us, good boys; we have business here.”
The three glided by, and went silently down.
There appearing to be no other door on that floor, and the keeper of the
wine-shop going straight to this one when they were left alone, Mr. Lorry
asked him in a whisper, with a little anger:
“Do you make a show of Monsieur Manette?”
“I show him, in the way you have seen, to a chosen few.”
“Is that well?”
“ think it is well.”
“Who are the few? How do you choose them?”
“I choose them as real men, of my name—Jacques is my name—to
whom the sight is likely to do good. Enough; you are English; that is
another thing. Stay there, if you please, a little moment.”
With an admonitory gesture to keep them back, he stooped, and looked in
through the crevice in the wall. Soon raising his head again, he struck
twice or thrice upon the door—evidently with no other object than to
make a noise there. With the same intention, he drew the key across it,
three or four times, before he put it clumsily into the lock, and turned
it as heavily as he could.
The door slowly opened inward under his hand, and he looked into the room
and said something. A faint voice answered something. Little more than a
single syllable could have been spoken on either side.
He looked back over his shoulder, and beckoned them to enter. Mr. Lorry
got his arm securely round the daughter’s waist, and held her; for he felt
that she was sinking.
“A-a-a-business, business!” he urged, with a moisture that was not of
business shining on his cheek. “Come in, come in!”
“I am afraid of it,” she answered, shuddering.
“Of it? What?”
“I mean of him. Of my father.”
Rendered in a manner desperate, by her state and by the beckoning of their
conductor, he drew over his neck the arm that shook upon his shoulder,
lifted her a little, and hurried her into the room. He sat her down just
within the door, and held her, clinging to him.
Defarge drew out the key, closed the door, locked it on the inside, took
out the key again, and held it in his hand. All this he did, methodically,
and with as loud and harsh an accompaniment of noise as he could make.
Finally, he walked across the room with a measured tread to where the
window was. He stopped there, and faced round.
The garret, built to be a depository for firewood and the like, was dim
and dark: for, the window of dormer shape, was in truth a door in the
roof, with a little crane over it for the hoisting up of stores from the
street: unglazed, and closing up the middle in two pieces, like any other
door of French construction. To exclude the cold, one half of this door
was fast closed, and the other was opened but a very little way. Such a
scanty portion of light was admitted through these means, that it was
difficult, on first coming in, to see anything; and long habit alone could
have slowly formed in any one, the ability to do any work requiring nicety
in such obscurity. Yet, work of that kind was being done in the garret;
for, with his back towards the door, and his face towards the window where
the keeper of the wine-shop stood looking at him, a white-haired man sat
on a low bench, stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.
CHAPTER VI.<br />The Shoemaker
Good day!” said Monsieur Defarge, looking down at the white head that
bent low over the shoemaking.
It was raised for a moment, and a very faint voice responded to the
salutation, as if it were at a distance:
“Good day!”
“You are still hard at work, I see?”
After a long silence, the head was lifted for another moment, and the
voice replied, “Yes—I am working.” This time, a pair of haggard eyes
had looked at the questioner, before the face had dropped again.
The faintness of the voice was pitiable and dreadful. It was not the
faintness of physical weakness, though confinement and hard fare no doubt
had their part in it. Its deplorable peculiarity was, that it was the
faintness of solitude and disuse. It was like the last feeble echo of a
sound made long and long ago. So entirely had it lost the life and
resonance of the human voice, that it affected the senses like a once
beautiful colour faded away into a poor weak stain. So sunken and
suppressed it was, that it was like a voice underground. So expressive it
was, of a hopeless and lost creature, that a famished traveller, wearied
out by lonely wandering in a wilderness, would have remembered home and
friends in such a tone before lying down to die.
Some minutes of silent work had passed: and the haggard eyes had looked up
again: not with any interest or curiosity, but with a dull mechanical
perception, beforehand, that the spot where the only visitor they were
aware of had stood, was not yet empty.
“I want,” said Defarge, who had not removed his gaze from the shoemaker,
“to let in a little more light here. You can bear a little more?”
The shoemaker stopped his work; looked with a vacant air of listening, at
the floor on one side of him; then similarly, at the floor on the other
side of him; then, upward at the speaker.
“What did you say?”
“You can bear a little more light?”
“I must bear it, if you let it in.” (Laying the palest shadow of a stress
upon the second word.)
The opened half-door was opened a little further, and secured at that
angle for the time. A broad ray of light fell into the garret, and showed
the workman with an unfinished shoe upon his lap, pausing in his labour.
His few common tools and various scraps of leather were at his feet and on
his bench. He had a white beard, raggedly cut, but not very long, a hollow
face, and exceedingly bright eyes. The hollowness and thinness of his face
would have caused them to look large, under his yet dark eyebrows and his
confused white hair, though they had been really otherwise; but, they were
naturally large, and looked unnaturally so. His yellow rags of shirt lay
open at the throat, and showed his body to be withered and worn. He, and
his old canvas frock, and his loose stockings, and all his poor tatters of
clothes, had, in a long seclusion from direct light and air, faded down to
such a dull uniformity of parchment-yellow, that it would have been hard
to say which was which.
He had put up a hand between his eyes and the light, and the very bones of
it seemed transparent. So he sat, with a steadfastly vacant gaze, pausing
in his work. He never looked at the figure before him, without first
looking down on this side of himself, then on that, as if he had lost the
habit of associating place with sound; he never spoke, without first
wandering in this manner, and forgetting to speak.
“Are you going to finish that pair of shoes to-day?” asked Defarge,
motioning to Mr. Lorry to come forward.
“What did you say?”
“Do you mean to finish that pair of shoes to-day?”
“I can’t say that I mean to. I suppose so. I don’t know.”
But, the question reminded him of his work, and he bent over it again.
Mr. Lorry came silently forward, leaving the daughter by the door. When he
had stood, for a minute or two, by the side of Defarge, the shoemaker
looked up. He showed no surprise at seeing another figure, but the
unsteady fingers of one of his hands strayed to his lips as he looked at
it (his lips and his nails were of the same pale lead-colour), and then
the hand dropped to his work, and he once more bent over the shoe. The
look and the action had occupied but an instant.
“You have a visitor, you see,” said Monsieur Defarge.
“What did you say?”
“Here is a visitor.”
The shoemaker looked up as before, but without removing a hand from his
work.
“Come!” said Defarge. “Here is monsieur, who knows a well-made shoe when
he sees one. Show him that shoe you are working at. Take it, monsieur.”
Mr. Lorry took it in his hand.
“Tell monsieur what kind of shoe it is, and the maker’s name.”
There was a longer pause than usual, before the shoemaker replied:
“I forget what it was you asked me. What did you say?”
“I said, couldn’t you describe the kind of shoe, for monsieur’s
information?”
“It is a lady’s shoe. It is a young lady’s walking-shoe. It is in the
present mode. I never saw the mode. I have had a pattern in my hand.” He
glanced at the shoe with some little passing touch of pride.
“And the maker’s name?” said Defarge.
Now that he had no work to hold, he laid the knuckles of the right hand in
the hollow of the left, and then the knuckles of the left hand in the
hollow of the right, and then passed a hand across his bearded chin, and
so on in regular changes, without a moment’s intermission. The task of
recalling him from the vagrancy into which he always sank when he had
spoken, was like recalling some very weak person from a swoon, or
endeavouring, in the hope of some disclosure, to stay the spirit of a
fast-dying man.
“Did you ask me for my name?”
“Assuredly I did.”
“One Hundred and Five, North Tower.”
“Is that all?”
“One Hundred and Five, North Tower.”
With a weary sound that was not a sigh, nor a groan, he bent to work
again, until the silence was again broken.
“You are not a shoemaker by trade?” said Mr. Lorry, looking steadfastly at
him.
His haggard eyes turned to Defarge as if he would have transferred the
question to him: but as no help came from that quarter, they turned back
on the questioner when they had sought the ground.
“I am not a shoemaker by trade? No, I was not a shoemaker by trade. I-I
learnt it here. I taught myself. I asked leave to—”
He lapsed away, even for minutes, ringing those measured changes on his
hands the whole time. His eyes came slowly back, at last, to the face from
which they had wandered; when they rested on it, he started, and resumed,
in the manner of a sleeper that moment awake, reverting to a subject of
last night.
“I asked leave to teach myself, and I got it with much difficulty after a
long while, and I have made shoes ever since.”
As he held out his hand for the shoe that had been taken from him, Mr.
Lorry said, still looking steadfastly in his face:
“Monsieur Manette, do you remember nothing of me?”
The shoe dropped to the ground, and he sat looking fixedly at the
questioner.
“Monsieur Manette”; Mr. Lorry laid his hand upon Defarge’s arm; “do you
remember nothing of this man? Look at him. Look at me. Is there no old
banker, no old business, no old servant, no old time, rising in your mind,
Monsieur Manette?”
As the captive of many years sat looking fixedly, by turns, at Mr. Lorry
and at Defarge, some long obliterated marks of an actively intent
intelligence in the middle of the forehead, gradually forced themselves
through the black mist that had fallen on him. They were overclouded
again, they were fainter, they were gone; but they had been there. And so
exactly was the expression repeated on the fair young face of her who had
crept along the wall to a point where she could see him, and where she now
stood looking at him, with hands which at first had been only raised in
frightened compassion, if not even to keep him off and shut out the sight
of him, but which were now extending towards him, trembling with eagerness
to lay the spectral face upon her warm young breast, and love it back to
life and hope—so exactly was the expression repeated (though in
stronger characters) on her fair young face, that it looked as though it
had passed like a moving light, from him to her.
Darkness had fallen on him in its place. He looked at the two, less and
less attentively, and his eyes in gloomy abstraction sought the ground and
looked about him in the old way. Finally, with a deep long sigh, he took
the shoe up, and resumed his work.
“Have you recognised him, monsieur?” asked Defarge in a whisper.
“Yes; for a moment. At first I thought it quite hopeless, but I have
unquestionably seen, for a single moment, the face that I once knew so
well. Hush! Let us draw further back. Hush!”
She had moved from the wall of the garret, very near to the bench on which
he sat. There was something awful in his unconsciousness of the figure
that could have put out its hand and touched him as he stooped over his
labour.
Not a word was spoken, not a sound was made. She stood, like a spirit,
beside him, and he bent over his work.
It happened, at length, that he had occasion to change the instrument in
his hand, for his shoemaker’s knife. It lay on that side of him which was
not the side on which she stood. He had taken it up, and was stooping to
work again, when his eyes caught the skirt of her dress. He raised them,
and saw her face. The two spectators started forward, but she stayed them
with a motion of her hand. She had no fear of his striking at her with the
knife, though they had.
He stared at her with a fearful look, and after a while his lips began to
form some words, though no sound proceeded from them. By degrees, in the
pauses of his quick and laboured breathing, he was heard to say:
“What is this?”
With the tears streaming down her face, she put her two hands to her lips,
and kissed them to him; then clasped them on her breast, as if she laid
his ruined head there.
“You are not the gaoler’s daughter?”
She sighed “No.”
“Who are you?”
Not yet trusting the tones of her voice, she sat down on the bench beside
him. He recoiled, but she laid her hand upon his arm. A strange thrill
struck him when she did so, and visibly passed over his frame; he laid the
knife down softly, as he sat staring at her.
Her golden hair, which she wore in long curls, had been hurriedly pushed
aside, and fell down over her neck. Advancing his hand by little and
little, he took it up and looked at it. In the midst of the action he went
astray, and, with another deep sigh, fell to work at his shoemaking.
But not for long. Releasing his arm, she laid her hand upon his shoulder.
After looking doubtfully at it, two or three times, as if to be sure that
it was really there, he laid down his work, put his hand to his neck, and
took off a blackened string with a scrap of folded rag attached to it. He
opened this, carefully, on his knee, and it contained a very little
quantity of hair: not more than one or two long golden hairs, which he
had, in some old day, wound off upon his finger.
<br />
He took her hair into his hand again, and looked closely at it. “It is the
same. How can it be! When was it! How was it!”
<br />
As the concentrated expression returned to his forehead, he seemed to
become conscious that it was in hers too. He turned her full to the light,
and looked at her.
<br />
“She had laid her head upon my shoulder, that night when I was summoned
out—she had a fear of my going, though I had none—and when I
was brought to the North Tower they found these upon my sleeve. ‘You will
leave me them? They can never help me to escape in the body, though they
may in the spirit.’ Those were the words I said. I remember them very
well.”
<br />
He formed this speech with his lips many times before he could utter it.
But when he did find spoken words for it, they came to him coherently,
though slowly.
<br />
“How was this?—?”
<br />
Once more, the two spectators started, as he turned upon her with a
frightful suddenness. But she sat perfectly still in his grasp, and only
said, in a low voice, “I entreat you, good gentlemen, do not come near us,
do not speak, do not move!”
<br />
“Hark!” he exclaimed. “Whose voice was that?”
<br />
His hands released her as he uttered this cry, and went up to his white
hair, which they tore in a frenzy. It died out, as everything but his
shoemaking did die out of him, and he refolded his little packet and tried
to secure it in his breast; but he still looked at her, and gloomily shook
his head.
<br />
“No, no, no; you are too young, too blooming. It can’t be. See what the
prisoner is. These are not the hands she knew, this is not the face she
knew, this is not a voice she ever heard. No, no. She was—and He was—before
the slow years of the North Tower—ages ago. What is your name, my
gentle angel?”
<br />
Hailing his softened tone and manner, his daughter fell upon her knees
before him, with her appealing hands upon his breast.
<br />
“O, sir, at another time you shall know my name, and who my mother was,
and who my father, and how I never knew their hard, hard history. But I
cannot tell you at this time, and I cannot tell you here. All that I may
tell you, here and now, is, that I pray to you to touch me and to bless
me. Kiss me, kiss me! O my dear, my dear!”
<br />
His cold white head mingled with her radiant hair, which warmed and
lighted it as though it were the light of Freedom shining on him.
<br />
“If you hear in my voice—I don’t know that it is so, but I hope it
is—if you hear in my voice any resemblance to a voice that once was
sweet music in your ears, weep for it, weep for it! If you touch, in
touching my hair, anything that recalls a beloved head that lay on your
breast when you were young and free, weep for it, weep for it! If, when I
hint to you of a Home that is before us, where I will be true to you with
all my duty and with all my faithful service, I bring back the remembrance
of a Home long desolate, while your poor heart pined away, weep for it,
weep for it!”
<br />
She held him closer round the neck, and rocked him on her breast like a
child.
<br />
“If, when I tell you, dearest dear, that your agony is over, and that I
have come here to take you from it, and that we go to England to be at
peace and at rest, I cause you to think of your useful life laid waste,
and of our native France so wicked to you, weep for it, weep for it! And
if, when I shall tell you of my name, and of my father who is living, and
of my mother who is dead, you learn that I have to kneel to my honoured
father, and implore his pardon for having never for his sake striven all
day and lain awake and wept all night, because the love of my poor mother
hid his torture from me, weep for it, weep for it! Weep for her, then, and
for me! Good gentlemen, thank God! I feel his sacred tears upon my face,
and his sobs strike against my heart. O, see! Thank God for us, thank
God!”
<br />
He had sunk in her arms, and his face dropped on her breast: a sight so
touching, yet so terrible in the tremendous wrong and suffering which had
gone before it, that the two beholders covered their faces.
<br />
When the quiet of the garret had been long undisturbed, and his heaving
breast and shaken form had long yielded to the calm that must follow all
storms—emblem to humanity, of the rest and silence into which the
storm called Life must hush at last—they came forward to raise the
father and daughter from the ground. He had gradually dropped to the
floor, and lay there in a lethargy, worn out. She had nestled down with
him, that his head might lie upon her arm; and her hair drooping over him
curtained him from the light.
<br />
“If, without disturbing him,” she said, raising her hand to Mr. Lorry as
he stooped over them, after repeated blowings of his nose, “all could be
arranged for our leaving Paris at once, so that, from the very door, he
could be taken away—”
<br />
“But, consider. Is he fit for the journey?” asked Mr. Lorry.
<br />
“More fit for that, I think, than to remain in this city, so dreadful to
him.”
<br />
“It is true,” said Defarge, who was kneeling to look on and hear. “More
than that; Monsieur Manette is, for all reasons, best out of France. Say,
shall I hire a carriage and post-horses?”
<br />
“That’s business,” said Mr. Lorry, resuming on the shortest notice his
methodical manners; “and if business is to be done, I had better do it.”
<br />
“Then be so kind,” urged Miss Manette, “as to leave us here. You see how
composed he has become, and you cannot be afraid to leave him with me now.
Why should you be? If you will lock the door to secure us from
interruption, I do not doubt that you will find him, when you come back,
as quiet as you leave him. In any case, I will take care of him until you
return, and then we will remove him straight.”
<br />
Both Mr. Lorry and Defarge were rather disinclined to this course, and in
favour of one of them remaining. But, as there were not only carriage and
horses to be seen to, but travelling papers; and as time pressed, for the
day was drawing to an end, it came at last to their hastily dividing the
business that was necessary to be done, and hurrying away to do it.
<br />
Then, as the darkness closed in, the daughter laid her head down on the
hard ground close at the father’s side, and watched him. The darkness
deepened and deepened, and they both lay quiet, until a light gleamed
through the chinks in the wall.
<br />
Mr. Lorry and Monsieur Defarge had made all ready for the journey, and had
brought with them, besides travelling cloaks and wrappers, bread and meat,
wine, and hot coffee. Monsieur Defarge put this provender, and the lamp he
carried, on the shoemaker’s bench (there was nothing else in the garret
but a pallet bed), and he and Mr. Lorry roused the captive, and assisted
him to his feet.
<br />
No human intelligence could have read the mysteries of his mind, in the
scared blank wonder of his face. Whether he knew what had happened,
whether he recollected what they had said to him, whether he knew that he
was free, were questions which no sagacity could have solved. They tried
speaking to him; but, he was so confused, and so very slow to answer, that
they took fright at his bewilderment, and agreed for the time to tamper
with him no more. He had a wild, lost manner of occasionally clasping his
head in his hands, that had not been seen in him before; yet, he had some
pleasure in the mere sound of his daughter’s voice, and invariably turned
to it when she spoke.
<br />
In the submissive way of one long accustomed to obey under coercion, he
ate and drank what they gave him to eat and drink, and put on the cloak
and other wrappings, that they gave him to wear. He readily responded to
his daughter’s drawing her arm through his, and took—and kept—her
hand in both his own.
<br />
They began to descend; Monsieur Defarge going first with the lamp, Mr.
Lorry closing the little procession. They had not traversed many steps of
the long main staircase when he stopped, and stared at the roof and round
at the walls.
<br />
“You remember the place, my father? You remember coming up here?”
<br />
“What did you say?”
<br />
But, before she could repeat the question, he murmured an answer as if she
had repeated it.
<br />
“Remember? No, I don’t remember. It was so very long ago.”
<br />
That he had no recollection whatever of his having been brought from his
prison to that house, was apparent to them. They heard him mutter, “One
Hundred and Five, North Tower;” and when he looked about him, it evidently
was for the strong fortress-walls which had long encompassed him. On their
reaching the courtyard he instinctively altered his tread, as being in
expectation of a drawbridge; and when there was no drawbridge, and he saw
the carriage waiting in the open street, he dropped his daughter’s hand
and clasped his head again.
<br />
No crowd was about the door; no people were discernible at any of the many
windows; not even a chance passerby was in the street. An unnatural
silence and desertion reigned there. Only one soul was to be seen, and
that was Madame Defarge—who leaned against the door-post, knitting,
and saw nothing.
<br />
The prisoner had got into a coach, and his daughter had followed him, when
Mr. Lorry’s feet were arrested on the step by his asking, miserably, for
his shoemaking tools and the unfinished shoes. Madame Defarge immediately
called to her husband that she would get them, and went, knitting, out of
the lamplight, through the courtyard. She quickly brought them down and
handed them in;—and immediately afterwards leaned against the
door-post, knitting, and saw nothing.
<br />
Defarge got upon the box, and gave the word “To the Barrier!” The
postilion cracked his whip, and they clattered away under the feeble
over-swinging lamps.
<br />
Under the over-swinging lamps—swinging ever brighter in the better
streets, and ever dimmer in the worse—and by lighted shops, gay
crowds, illuminated coffee-houses, and theatre-doors, to one of the city
gates. Soldiers with lanterns, at the guard-house there. “Your papers,
travellers!” “See here then, Monsieur the Officer,” said Defarge, getting
down, and taking him gravely apart, “these are the papers of monsieur
inside, with the white head. They were consigned to me, with him, at the—”
He dropped his voice, there was a flutter among the military lanterns, and
one of them being handed into the coach by an arm in uniform, the eyes
connected with the arm looked, not an every day or an every night look, at
monsieur with the white head. “It is well. Forward!” from the uniform.
“Adieu!” from Defarge. And so, under a short grove of feebler and feebler
over-swinging lamps, out under the great grove of stars.
<br />
Beneath that arch of unmoved and eternal lights; some, so remote from this
little earth that the learned tell us it is doubtful whether their rays
have even yet discovered it, as a point in space where anything is
suffered or done: the shadows of the night were broad and black. All
through the cold and restless interval, until dawn, they once more
whispered in the ears of Mr. Jarvis Lorry—sitting opposite the
buried man who had been dug out, and wondering what subtle powers were for
ever lost to him, and what were capable of restoration—the old
inquiry:
<br />
“I hope you care to be recalled to life?”
<br />
And the old answer:
<br />
“I can’t say.”
<br />
The end of the first book.
Book the Second—the Golden Thread
CHAPTER I.<br />Five Years Later
Tellson’s Bank by Temple Bar was an old-fashioned place, even in the year
one thousand seven hundred and eighty. It was very small, very dark, very
ugly, very incommodious. It was an old-fashioned place, moreover, in the
moral attribute that the partners in the House were proud of its
smallness, proud of its darkness, proud of its ugliness, proud of its
incommodiousness. They were even boastful of its eminence in those
particulars, and were fired by an express conviction that, if it were less
objectionable, it would be less respectable. This was no passive belief,
but an active weapon which they flashed at more convenient places of
business. Tellson’s (they said) wanted no elbow-room, Tellson’s wanted no
light, Tellson’s wanted no embellishment. Noakes and Co.’s might, or
Snooks Brothers’ might; but Tellson’s, thank Heaven—!
Any one of these partners would have disinherited his son on the question
of rebuilding Tellson’s. In this respect the House was much on a par with
the Country; which did very often disinherit its sons for suggesting
improvements in laws and customs that had long been highly objectionable,
but were only the more respectable.
Thus it had come to pass, that Tellson’s was the triumphant perfection of
inconvenience. After bursting open a door of idiotic obstinacy with a weak
rattle in its throat, you fell into Tellson’s down two steps, and came to
your senses in a miserable little shop, with two little counters, where
the oldest of men made your cheque shake as if the wind rustled it, while
they examined the signature by the dingiest of windows, which were always
under a shower-bath of mud from Fleet-street, and which were made the
dingier by their own iron bars proper, and the heavy shadow of Temple Bar.
If your business necessitated your seeing “the House,” you were put into a
species of Condemned Hold at the back, where you meditated on a misspent
life, until the House came with its hands in its pockets, and you could
hardly blink at it in the dismal twilight. Your money came out of, or went
into, wormy old wooden drawers, particles of which flew up your nose and
down your throat when they were opened and shut. Your bank-notes had a
musty odour, as if they were fast decomposing into rags again. Your plate
was stowed away among the neighbouring cesspools, and evil communications
corrupted its good polish in a day or two. Your deeds got into
extemporised strong-rooms made of kitchens and sculleries, and fretted all
the fat out of their parchments into the banking-house air. Your lighter
boxes of family papers went up-stairs into a Barmecide room, that always
had a great dining-table in it and never had a dinner, and where, even in
the year one thousand seven hundred and eighty, the first letters written
to you by your old love, or by your little children, were but newly
released from the horror of being ogled through the windows, by the heads
exposed on Temple Bar with an insensate brutality and ferocity worthy of
Abyssinia or Ashantee.
But indeed, at that time, putting to death was a recipe much in vogue with
all trades and professions, and not least of all with Tellson’s. Death is
Nature’s remedy for all things, and why not Legislation’s? Accordingly,
the forger was put to Death; the utterer of a bad note was put to Death;
the unlawful opener of a letter was put to Death; the purloiner of forty
shillings and sixpence was put to Death; the holder of a horse at
Tellson’s door, who made off with it, was put to Death; the coiner of a
bad shilling was put to Death; the sounders of three-fourths of the notes
in the whole gamut of Crime, were put to Death. Not that it did the least
good in the way of prevention—it might almost have been worth
remarking that the fact was exactly the reverse—but, it cleared off
(as to this world) the trouble of each particular case, and left nothing
else connected with it to be looked after. Thus, Tellson’s, in its day,
like greater places of business, its contemporaries, had taken so many
lives, that, if the heads laid low before it had been ranged on Temple Bar
instead of being privately disposed of, they would probably have excluded
what little light the ground floor had, in a rather significant manner.
Cramped in all kinds of dim cupboards and hutches at Tellson’s, the oldest
of men carried on the business gravely. When they took a young man into
Tellson’s London house, they hid him somewhere till he was old. They kept
him in a dark place, like a cheese, until he had the full Tellson flavour
and blue-mould upon him. Then only was he permitted to be seen,
spectacularly poring over large books, and casting his breeches and
gaiters into the general weight of the establishment.
Outside Tellson’s—never by any means in it, unless called in—was
an odd-job-man, an occasional porter and messenger, who served as the live
sign of the house. He was never absent during business hours, unless upon
an errand, and then he was represented by his son: a grisly urchin of
twelve, who was his express image. People understood that Tellson’s, in a
stately way, tolerated the odd-job-man. The house had always tolerated
some person in that capacity, and time and tide had drifted this person to
the post. His surname was Cruncher, and on the youthful occasion of his
renouncing by proxy the works of darkness, in the easterly parish church
of Hounsditch, he had received the added appellation of Jerry.
The scene was Mr. Cruncher’s private lodging in Hanging-sword-alley,
Whitefriars: the time, half-past seven of the clock on a windy March
morning, Anno Domini seventeen hundred and eighty. (Mr. Cruncher himself
always spoke of the year of our Lord as Anna Dominoes: apparently under
the impression that the Christian era dated from the invention of a
popular game, by a lady who had bestowed her name upon it.)
Mr. Cruncher’s apartments were not in a savoury neighbourhood, and were
but two in number, even if a closet with a single pane of glass in it
might be counted as one. But they were very decently kept. Early as it
was, on the windy March morning, the room in which he lay abed was already
scrubbed throughout; and between the cups and saucers arranged for
breakfast, and the lumbering deal table, a very clean white cloth was
spread.
Mr. Cruncher reposed under a patchwork counterpane, like a Harlequin at
home. At first, he slept heavily, but, by degrees, began to roll and surge
in bed, until he rose above the surface, with his spiky hair looking as if
it must tear the sheets to ribbons. At which juncture, he exclaimed, in a
voice of dire exasperation:
“Bust me, if she ain’t at it agin!”
A woman of orderly and industrious appearance rose from her knees in a
corner, with sufficient haste and trepidation to show that she was the
person referred to.
“What!” said Mr. Cruncher, looking out of bed for a boot. “You’re at it
agin, are you?”
After hailing the morn with this second salutation, he threw a boot at the
woman as a third. It was a very muddy boot, and may introduce the odd
circumstance connected with Mr. Cruncher’s domestic economy, that, whereas
he often came home after banking hours with clean boots, he often got up
next morning to find the same boots covered with clay.
“What,” said Mr. Cruncher, varying his apostrophe after missing his mark—“what
are you up to, Aggerawayter?”
“I was only saying my prayers.”
“Saying your prayers! You’re a nice woman! What do you mean by flopping
yourself down and praying agin me?”
“I was not praying against you; I was praying for you.”
“You weren’t. And if you were, I won’t be took the liberty with. Here!
your mother’s a nice woman, young Jerry, going a praying agin your
father’s prosperity. You’ve got a dutiful mother, you have, my son. You’ve
got a religious mother, you have, my boy: going and flopping herself down,
and praying that the bread-and-butter may be snatched out of the mouth of
her only child.”
Master Cruncher (who was in his shirt) took this very ill, and, turning to
his mother, strongly deprecated any praying away of his personal board.
“And what do you suppose, you conceited female,” said Mr. Cruncher, with
unconscious inconsistency, “that the worth of prayers may be?
Name the price that you put prayers at!”
“They only come from the heart, Jerry. They are worth no more than that.”
“Worth no more than that,” repeated Mr. Cruncher. “They ain’t worth much,
then. Whether or no, I won’t be prayed agin, I tell you. I can’t afford
it. I’m not a going to be made unlucky by sneaking. If you
must go flopping yourself down, flop in favour of your husband and child,
and not in opposition to ’em. If I had had any but a unnat’ral wife, and
this poor boy had had any but a unnat’ral mother, I might have made some
money last week instead of being counter-prayed and countermined and
religiously circumwented into the worst of luck. B-u-u-ust me!” said Mr.
Cruncher, who all this time had been putting on his clothes, “if I ain’t,
what with piety and one blowed thing and another, been choused this last
week into as bad luck as ever a poor devil of a honest tradesman met with!
Young Jerry, dress yourself, my boy, and while I clean my boots keep a eye
upon your mother now and then, and if you see any signs of more flopping,
give me a call. For, I tell you,” here he addressed his wife once more, “I
won’t be gone agin, in this manner. I am as rickety as a hackney-coach,
I’m as sleepy as laudanum, my lines is strained to that degree that I
shouldn’t know, if it wasn’t for the pain in ’em, which was me and which
somebody else, yet I’m none the better for it in pocket; and it’s my
suspicion that you’ve been at it from morning to night to prevent me from
being the better for it in pocket, and I won’t put up with it,
Aggerawayter, and what do you say now!”
Growling, in addition, such phrases as “Ah! yes! You’re religious, too.
You wouldn’t put yourself in opposition to the interests of your husband
and child, would you? Not you!” and throwing off other sarcastic sparks
from the whirling grindstone of his indignation, Mr. Cruncher betook
himself to his boot-cleaning and his general preparation for business. In
the meantime, his son, whose head was garnished with tenderer spikes, and
whose young eyes stood close by one another, as his father’s did, kept the
required watch upon his mother. He greatly disturbed that poor woman at
intervals, by darting out of his sleeping closet, where he made his
toilet, with a suppressed cry of “You are going to flop, mother. —Halloa,
father!” and, after raising this fictitious alarm, darting in again with
an undutiful grin.
Mr. Cruncher’s temper was not at all improved when he came to his
breakfast. He resented Mrs. Cruncher’s saying grace with particular
animosity.
“Now, Aggerawayter! What are you up to? At it again?”
His wife explained that she had merely “asked a blessing.”
“Don’t do it!” said Mr. Crunches looking about, as if he rather expected
to see the loaf disappear under the efficacy of his wife’s petitions. “I
ain’t a going to be blest out of house and home. I won’t have my wittles
blest off my table. Keep still!”
Exceedingly red-eyed and grim, as if he had been up all night at a party
which had taken anything but a convivial turn, Jerry Cruncher worried his
breakfast rather than ate it, growling over it like any four-footed inmate
of a menagerie. Towards nine o’clock he smoothed his ruffled aspect, and,
presenting as respectable and business-like an exterior as he could
overlay his natural self with, issued forth to the occupation of the day.
It could scarcely be called a trade, in spite of his favourite description
of himself as “a honest tradesman.” His stock consisted of a wooden stool,
made out of a broken-backed chair cut down, which stool, young Jerry,
walking at his father’s side, carried every morning to beneath the
banking-house window that was nearest Temple Bar: where, with the addition
of the first handful of straw that could be gleaned from any passing
vehicle to keep the cold and wet from the odd-job-man’s feet, it formed
the encampment for the day. On this post of his, Mr. Cruncher was as well
known to Fleet-street and the Temple, as the Bar itself,—and was
almost as in-looking.
Encamped at a quarter before nine, in good time to touch his
three-cornered hat to the oldest of men as they passed in to Tellson’s,
Jerry took up his station on this windy March morning, with young Jerry
standing by him, when not engaged in making forays through the Bar, to
inflict bodily and mental injuries of an acute description on passing boys
who were small enough for his amiable purpose. Father and son, extremely
like each other, looking silently on at the morning traffic in
Fleet-street, with their two heads as near to one another as the two eyes
of each were, bore a considerable resemblance to a pair of monkeys. The
resemblance was not lessened by the accidental circumstance, that the
mature Jerry bit and spat out straw, while the twinkling eyes of the
youthful Jerry were as restlessly watchful of him as of everything else in
Fleet-street.
The head of one of the regular indoor messengers attached to Tellson’s
establishment was put through the door, and the word was given:
“Porter wanted!”
“Hooray, father! Here’s an early job to begin with!”
Having thus given his parent God speed, young Jerry seated himself on the
stool, entered on his reversionary interest in the straw his father had
been chewing, and cogitated.
“Al-ways rusty! His fingers is al-ways rusty!” muttered young Jerry.
“Where does my father get all that iron rust from? He don’t get no iron
rust here!”
CHAPTER II.<br />A Sight
You know the Old Bailey well, no doubt?” said one of the oldest of clerks
to Jerry the messenger.
“Ye-es, sir,” returned Jerry, in something of a dogged manner. “I
know the Bailey.”
“Just so. And you know Mr. Lorry.”
“I know Mr. Lorry, sir, much better than I know the Bailey. Much better,”
said Jerry, not unlike a reluctant witness at the establishment in
question, “than I, as a honest tradesman, wish to know the Bailey.”
“Very well. Find the door where the witnesses go in, and show the
door-keeper this note for Mr. Lorry. He will then let you in.”
“Into the court, sir?”
“Into the court.”
Mr. Cruncher’s eyes seemed to get a little closer to one another, and to
interchange the inquiry, “What do you think of this?”
“Am I to wait in the court, sir?” he asked, as the result of that
conference.
“I am going to tell you. The door-keeper will pass the note to Mr. Lorry,
and do you make any gesture that will attract Mr. Lorry’s attention, and
show him where you stand. Then what you have to do, is, to remain there
until he wants you.”
“Is that all, sir?”
“That’s all. He wishes to have a messenger at hand. This is to tell him
you are there.”
As the ancient clerk deliberately folded and superscribed the note, Mr.
Cruncher, after surveying him in silence until he came to the
blotting-paper stage, remarked:
“I suppose they’ll be trying Forgeries this morning?”
“Treason!”
“That’s quartering,” said Jerry. “Barbarous!”
“It is the law,” remarked the ancient clerk, turning his surprised
spectacles upon him. “It is the law.”
“It’s hard in the law to spile a man, I think. It’s hard enough to kill
him, but it’s wery hard to spile him, sir.”
“Not at all,” retained the ancient clerk. “Speak well of the law. Take
care of your chest and voice, my good friend, and leave the law to take
care of itself. I give you that advice.”
“It’s the damp, sir, what settles on my chest and voice,” said Jerry. “I
leave you to judge what a damp way of earning a living mine is.”
“Well, well,” said the old clerk; “we all have our various ways of gaining
a livelihood. Some of us have damp ways, and some of us have dry ways.
Here is the letter. Go along.”
Jerry took the letter, and, remarking to himself with less internal
deference than he made an outward show of, “You are a lean old one, too,”
made his bow, informed his son, in passing, of his destination, and went
his way.
They hanged at Tyburn, in those days, so the street outside Newgate had
not obtained one infamous notoriety that has since attached to it. But,
the gaol was a vile place, in which most kinds of debauchery and villainy
were practised, and where dire diseases were bred, that came into court
with the prisoners, and sometimes rushed straight from the dock at my Lord
Chief Justice himself, and pulled him off the bench. It had more than once
happened, that the Judge in the black cap pronounced his own doom as
certainly as the prisoner’s, and even died before him. For the rest, the
Old Bailey was famous as a kind of deadly inn-yard, from which pale
travellers set out continually, in carts and coaches, on a violent passage
into the other world: traversing some two miles and a half of public
street and road, and shaming few good citizens, if any. So powerful is
use, and so desirable to be good use in the beginning. It was famous, too,
for the pillory, a wise old institution, that inflicted a punishment of
which no one could foresee the extent; also, for the whipping-post,
another dear old institution, very humanising and softening to behold in
action; also, for extensive transactions in blood-money, another fragment
of ancestral wisdom, systematically leading to the most frightful
mercenary crimes that could be committed under Heaven. Altogether, the Old
Bailey, at that date, was a choice illustration of the precept, that
“Whatever is is right;” an aphorism that would be as final as it is lazy,
did it not include the troublesome consequence, that nothing that ever
was, was wrong.
Making his way through the tainted crowd, dispersed up and down this
hideous scene of action, with the skill of a man accustomed to make his
way quietly, the messenger found out the door he sought, and handed in his
letter through a trap in it. For, people then paid to see the play at the
Old Bailey, just as they paid to see the play in Bedlam—only the
former entertainment was much the dearer. Therefore, all the Old Bailey
doors were well guarded—except, indeed, the social doors by which
the criminals got there, and those were always left wide open.
After some delay and demur, the door grudgingly turned on its hinges a
very little way, and allowed Mr. Jerry Cruncher to squeeze himself into
court.
“What’s on?” he asked, in a whisper, of the man he found himself next to.
“Nothing yet.”
“What’s coming on?”
“The Treason case.”
“The quartering one, eh?”
“Ah!” returned the man, with a relish; “he’ll be drawn on a hurdle to be
half hanged, and then he’ll be taken down and sliced before his own face,
and then his inside will be taken out and burnt while he looks on, and
then his head will be chopped off, and he’ll be cut into quarters. That’s
the sentence.”
“If he’s found Guilty, you mean to say?” Jerry added, by way of proviso.
“Oh! they’ll find him guilty,” said the other. “Don’t you be afraid of
that.”
Mr. Cruncher’s attention was here diverted to the door-keeper, whom he saw
making his way to Mr. Lorry, with the note in his hand. Mr. Lorry sat at a
table, among the gentlemen in wigs: not far from a wigged gentleman, the
prisoner’s counsel, who had a great bundle of papers before him: and
nearly opposite another wigged gentleman with his hands in his pockets,
whose whole attention, when Mr. Cruncher looked at him then or afterwards,
seemed to be concentrated on the ceiling of the court. After some gruff
coughing and rubbing of his chin and signing with his hand, Jerry
attracted the notice of Mr. Lorry, who had stood up to look for him, and
who quietly nodded and sat down again.
“What’s got to do with the case?” asked the man he had spoken
with.
“Blest if I know,” said Jerry.
“What have got to do with it, then, if a person may inquire?”
“Blest if I know that either,” said Jerry.
The entrance of the Judge, and a consequent great stir and settling down
in the court, stopped the dialogue. Presently, the dock became the central
point of interest. Two gaolers, who had been standing there, went out, and
the prisoner was brought in, and put to the bar.
Everybody present, except the one wigged gentleman who looked at the
ceiling, stared at him. All the human breath in the place, rolled at him,
like a sea, or a wind, or a fire. Eager faces strained round pillars and
corners, to get a sight of him; spectators in back rows stood up, not to
miss a hair of him; people on the floor of the court, laid their hands on
the shoulders of the people before them, to help themselves, at anybody’s
cost, to a view of him—stood a-tiptoe, got upon ledges, stood upon
next to nothing, to see every inch of him. Conspicuous among these latter,
like an animated bit of the spiked wall of Newgate, Jerry stood: aiming at
the prisoner the beery breath of a whet he had taken as he came along, and
discharging it to mingle with the waves of other beer, and gin, and tea,
and coffee, and what not, that flowed at him, and already broke upon the
great windows behind him in an impure mist and rain.
The object of all this staring and blaring, was a young man of about
five-and-twenty, well-grown and well-looking, with a sunburnt cheek and a
dark eye. His condition was that of a young gentleman. He was plainly
dressed in black, or very dark grey, and his hair, which was long and
dark, was gathered in a ribbon at the back of his neck; more to be out of
his way than for ornament. As an emotion of the mind will express itself
through any covering of the body, so the paleness which his situation
engendered came through the brown upon his cheek, showing the soul to be
stronger than the sun. He was otherwise quite self-possessed, bowed to the
Judge, and stood quiet.
The sort of interest with which this man was stared and breathed at, was
not a sort that elevated humanity. Had he stood in peril of a less
horrible sentence—had there been a chance of any one of its savage
details being spared—by just so much would he have lost in his
fascination. The form that was to be doomed to be so shamefully mangled,
was the sight; the immortal creature that was to be so butchered and torn
asunder, yielded the sensation. Whatever gloss the various spectators put
upon the interest, according to their several arts and powers of
self-deceit, the interest was, at the root of it, Ogreish.
Silence in the court! Charles Darnay had yesterday pleaded Not Guilty to
an indictment denouncing him (with infinite jingle and jangle) for that he
was a false traitor to our serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth,
prince, our Lord the King, by reason of his having, on divers occasions,
and by divers means and ways, assisted Lewis, the French King, in his wars
against our said serene, illustrious, excellent, and so forth; that was to
say, by coming and going, between the dominions of our said serene,
illustrious, excellent, and so forth, and those of the said French Lewis,
and wickedly, falsely, traitorously, and otherwise evil-adverbiously,
revealing to the said French Lewis what forces our said serene,
illustrious, excellent, and so forth, had in preparation to send to Canada
and North America. This much, Jerry, with his head becoming more and more
spiky as the law terms bristled it, made out with huge satisfaction, and
so arrived circuitously at the understanding that the aforesaid, and over
and over again aforesaid, Charles Darnay, stood there before him upon his
trial; that the jury were swearing in; and that Mr. Attorney-General was
making ready to speak.
The accused, who was (and who knew he was) being mentally hanged,
beheaded, and quartered, by everybody there, neither flinched from the
situation, nor assumed any theatrical air in it. He was quiet and
attentive; watched the opening proceedings with a grave interest; and
stood with his hands resting on the slab of wood before him, so
composedly, that they had not displaced a leaf of the herbs with which it
was strewn. The court was all bestrewn with herbs and sprinkled with
vinegar, as a precaution against gaol air and gaol fever.
Over the prisoner’s head there was a mirror, to throw the light down upon
him. Crowds of the wicked and the wretched had been reflected in it, and
had passed from its surface and this earth’s together. Haunted in a most
ghastly manner that abominable place would have been, if the glass could
ever have rendered back its reflections, as the ocean is one day to give
up its dead. Some passing thought of the infamy and disgrace for which it
had been reserved, may have struck the prisoner’s mind. Be that as it may,
a change in his position making him conscious of a bar of light across his
face, he looked up; and when he saw the glass his face flushed, and his
right hand pushed the herbs away.
It happened, that the action turned his face to that side of the court
which was on his left. About on a level with his eyes, there sat, in that
corner of the Judge’s bench, two persons upon whom his look immediately
rested; so immediately, and so much to the changing of his aspect, that
all the eyes that were turned upon him, turned to them.
The spectators saw in the two figures, a young lady of little more than
twenty, and a gentleman who was evidently her father; a man of a very
remarkable appearance in respect of the absolute whiteness of his hair,
and a certain indescribable intensity of face: not of an active kind, but
pondering and self-communing. When this expression was upon him, he looked
as if he were old; but when it was stirred and broken up—as it was
now, in a moment, on his speaking to his daughter—he became a
handsome man, not past the prime of life.
His daughter had one of her hands drawn through his arm, as she sat by
him, and the other pressed upon it. She had drawn close to him, in her
dread of the scene, and in her pity for the prisoner. Her forehead had
been strikingly expressive of an engrossing terror and compassion that saw
nothing but the peril of the accused. This had been so very noticeable, so
very powerfully and naturally shown, that starers who had had no pity for
him were touched by her; and the whisper went about, “Who are they?”
Jerry, the messenger, who had made his own observations, in his own
manner, and who had been sucking the rust off his fingers in his
absorption, stretched his neck to hear who they were. The crowd about him
had pressed and passed the inquiry on to the nearest attendant, and from
him it had been more slowly pressed and passed back; at last it got to
Jerry:
“Witnesses.”
“For which side?”
“Against.”
“Against what side?”
“The prisoner’s.”
The Judge, whose eyes had gone in the general direction, recalled them,
leaned back in his seat, and looked steadily at the man whose life was in
his hand, as Mr. Attorney-General rose to spin the rope, grind the axe,
and hammer the nails into the scaffold.
CHAPTER III.<br />A Disappointment
Mr. Attorney-General had to inform the jury, that the prisoner before
them, though young in years, was old in the treasonable practices which
claimed the forfeit of his life. That this correspondence with the public
enemy was not a correspondence of to-day, or of yesterday, or even of last
year, or of the year before. That, it was certain the prisoner had, for
longer than that, been in the habit of passing and repassing between
France and England, on secret business of which he could give no honest
account. That, if it were in the nature of traitorous ways to thrive
(which happily it never was), the real wickedness and guilt of his
business might have remained undiscovered. That Providence, however, had
put it into the heart of a person who was beyond fear and beyond reproach,
to ferret out the nature of the prisoner’s schemes, and, struck with
horror, to disclose them to his Majesty’s Chief Secretary of State and
most honourable Privy Council. That, this patriot would be produced before
them. That, his position and attitude were, on the whole, sublime. That,
he had been the prisoner’s friend, but, at once in an auspicious and an
evil hour detecting his infamy, had resolved to immolate the traitor he
could no longer cherish in his bosom, on the sacred altar of his country.
That, if statues were decreed in Britain, as in ancient Greece and Rome,
to public benefactors, this shining citizen would assuredly have had one.
That, as they were not so decreed, he probably would not have one. That,
Virtue, as had been observed by the poets (in many passages which he well
knew the jury would have, word for word, at the tips of their tongues;
whereat the jury’s countenances displayed a guilty consciousness that they
knew nothing about the passages), was in a manner contagious; more
especially the bright virtue known as patriotism, or love of country.
That, the lofty example of this immaculate and unimpeachable witness for
the Crown, to refer to whom however unworthily was an honour, had
communicated itself to the prisoner’s servant, and had engendered in him a
holy determination to examine his master’s table-drawers and pockets, and
secrete his papers. That, he (Mr. Attorney-General) was prepared to hear
some disparagement attempted of this admirable servant; but that, in a
general way, he preferred him to his (Mr. Attorney-General’s) brothers and
sisters, and honoured him more than his (Mr. Attorney-General’s) father
and mother. That, he called with confidence on the jury to come and do
likewise. That, the evidence of these two witnesses, coupled with the
documents of their discovering that would be produced, would show the
prisoner to have been furnished with lists of his Majesty’s forces, and of
their disposition and preparation, both by sea and land, and would leave
no doubt that he had habitually conveyed such information to a hostile
power. That, these lists could not be proved to be in the prisoner’s
handwriting; but that it was all the same; that, indeed, it was rather the
better for the prosecution, as showing the prisoner to be artful in his
precautions. That, the proof would go back five years, and would show the
prisoner already engaged in these pernicious missions, within a few weeks
before the date of the very first action fought between the British troops
and the Americans. That, for these reasons, the jury, being a loyal jury
(as he knew they were), and being a responsible jury (as knew
they were), must positively find the prisoner Guilty, and make an end of
him, whether they liked it or not. That, they never could lay their heads
upon their pillows; that, they never could tolerate the idea of their
wives laying their heads upon their pillows; that, they never could endure
the notion of their children laying their heads upon their pillows; in
short, that there never more could be, for them or theirs, any laying of
heads upon pillows at all, unless the prisoner’s head was taken off. That
head Mr. Attorney-General concluded by demanding of them, in the name of
everything he could think of with a round turn in it, and on the faith of
his solemn asseveration that he already considered the prisoner as good as
dead and gone.
When the Attorney-General ceased, a buzz arose in the court as if a cloud
of great blue-flies were swarming about the prisoner, in anticipation of
what he was soon to become. When toned down again, the unimpeachable
patriot appeared in the witness-box.
Mr. Solicitor-General then, following his leader’s lead, examined the
patriot: John Barsad, gentleman, by name. The story of his pure soul was
exactly what Mr. Attorney-General had described it to be—perhaps, if
it had a fault, a little too exactly. Having released his noble bosom of
its burden, he would have modestly withdrawn himself, but that the wigged
gentleman with the papers before him, sitting not far from Mr. Lorry,
begged to ask him a few questions. The wigged gentleman sitting opposite,
still looking at the ceiling of the court.
Had he ever been a spy himself? No, he scorned the base insinuation. What
did he live upon? His property. Where was his property? He didn’t
precisely remember where it was. What was it? No business of anybody’s.
Had he inherited it? Yes, he had. From whom? Distant relation. Very
distant? Rather. Ever been in prison? Certainly not. Never in a debtors’
prison? Didn’t see what that had to do with it. Never in a debtors’
prison?—Come, once again. Never? Yes. How many times? Two or three
times. Not five or six? Perhaps. Of what profession? Gentleman. Ever been
kicked? Might have been. Frequently? No. Ever kicked downstairs? Decidedly
not; once received a kick on the top of a staircase, and fell downstairs
of his own accord. Kicked on that occasion for cheating at dice? Something
to that effect was said by the intoxicated liar who committed the assault,
but it was not true. Swear it was not true? Positively. Ever live by
cheating at play? Never. Ever live by play? Not more than other gentlemen
do. Ever borrow money of the prisoner? Yes. Ever pay him? No. Was not this
intimacy with the prisoner, in reality a very slight one, forced upon the
prisoner in coaches, inns, and packets? No. Sure he saw the prisoner with
these lists? Certain. Knew no more about the lists? No. Had not procured
them himself, for instance? No. Expect to get anything by this evidence?
No. Not in regular government pay and employment, to lay traps? Oh dear
no. Or to do anything? Oh dear no. Swear that? Over and over again. No
motives but motives of sheer patriotism? None whatever.
The virtuous servant, Roger Cly, swore his way through the case at a great
rate. He had taken service with the prisoner, in good faith and
simplicity, four years ago. He had asked the prisoner, aboard the Calais
packet, if he wanted a handy fellow, and the prisoner had engaged him. He
had not asked the prisoner to take the handy fellow as an act of charity—never
thought of such a thing. He began to have suspicions of the prisoner, and
to keep an eye upon him, soon afterwards. In arranging his clothes, while
travelling, he had seen similar lists to these in the prisoner’s pockets,
over and over again. He had taken these lists from the drawer of the
prisoner’s desk. He had not put them there first. He had seen the prisoner
show these identical lists to French gentlemen at Calais, and similar
lists to French gentlemen, both at Calais and Boulogne. He loved his
country, and couldn’t bear it, and had given information. He had never
been suspected of stealing a silver tea-pot; he had been maligned
respecting a mustard-pot, but it turned out to be only a plated one. He
had known the last witness seven or eight years; that was merely a
coincidence. He didn’t call it a particularly curious coincidence; most
coincidences were curious. Neither did he call it a curious coincidence
that true patriotism was only motive too. He was a true Briton,
and hoped there were many like him.
The blue-flies buzzed again, and Mr. Attorney-General called Mr. Jarvis
Lorry.
“Mr. Jarvis Lorry, are you a clerk in Tellson’s bank?”
“I am.”
“On a certain Friday night in November one thousand seven hundred and
seventy-five, did business occasion you to travel between London and Dover
by the mail?”
“It did.”
“Were there any other passengers in the mail?”
“Two.”
“Did they alight on the road in the course of the night?”
“They did.”
“Mr. Lorry, look upon the prisoner. Was he one of those two passengers?”
“I cannot undertake to say that he was.”
“Does he resemble either of these two passengers?”
“Both were so wrapped up, and the night was so dark, and we were all so
reserved, that I cannot undertake to say even that.”
“Mr. Lorry, look again upon the prisoner. Supposing him wrapped up as
those two passengers were, is there anything in his bulk and stature to
render it unlikely that he was one of them?”
“No.”
“You will not swear, Mr. Lorry, that he was not one of them?”
“No.”
“So at least you say he may have been one of them?”
“Yes. Except that I remember them both to have been—like myself—timorous
of highwaymen, and the prisoner has not a timorous air.”
“Did you ever see a counterfeit of timidity, Mr. Lorry?”
“I certainly have seen that.”
“Mr. Lorry, look once more upon the prisoner. Have you seen him, to your
certain knowledge, before?”
“I have.”
“When?”
“I was returning from France a few days afterwards, and, at Calais, the
prisoner came on board the packet-ship in which I returned, and made the
voyage with me.”
“At what hour did he come on board?”
“At a little after midnight.”
“In the dead of the night. Was he the only passenger who came on board at
that untimely hour?”
“He happened to be the only one.”
“Never mind about ‘happening,’ Mr. Lorry. He was the only passenger who
came on board in the dead of the night?”
“He was.”
“Were you travelling alone, Mr. Lorry, or with any companion?”
“With two companions. A gentleman and lady. They are here.”
“They are here. Had you any conversation with the prisoner?”
“Hardly any. The weather was stormy, and the passage long and rough, and I
lay on a sofa, almost from shore to shore.”
“Miss Manette!”
The young lady, to whom all eyes had been turned before, and were now
turned again, stood up where she had sat. Her father rose with her, and
kept her hand drawn through his arm.
“Miss Manette, look upon the prisoner.”
To be confronted with such pity, and such earnest youth and beauty, was
far more trying to the accused than to be confronted with all the crowd.
Standing, as it were, apart with her on the edge of his grave, not all the
staring curiosity that looked on, could, for the moment, nerve him to
remain quite still. His hurried right hand parcelled out the herbs before
him into imaginary beds of flowers in a garden; and his efforts to control
and steady his breathing shook the lips from which the colour rushed to
his heart. The buzz of the great flies was loud again.
“Miss Manette, have you seen the prisoner before?”
“Yes, sir.”
“Where?”
“On board of the packet-ship just now referred to, sir, and on the same
occasion.”
“You are the young lady just now referred to?”
“O! most unhappily, I am!”
The plaintive tone of her compassion merged into the less musical voice of
the Judge, as he said something fiercely: “Answer the questions put to
you, and make no remark upon them.”
“Miss Manette, had you any conversation with the prisoner on that passage
across the Channel?”
“Yes, sir.”
“Recall it.”
In the midst of a profound stillness, she faintly began: “When the
gentleman came on board—”
“Do you mean the prisoner?” inquired the Judge, knitting his brows.
“Yes, my Lord.”
“Then say the prisoner.”
“When the prisoner came on board, he noticed that my father,” turning her
eyes lovingly to him as he stood beside her, “was much fatigued and in a
very weak state of health. My father was so reduced that I was afraid to
take him out of the air, and I had made a bed for him on the deck near the
cabin steps, and I sat on the deck at his side to take care of him. There
were no other passengers that night, but we four. The prisoner was so good
as to beg permission to advise me how I could shelter my father from the
wind and weather, better than I had done. I had not known how to do it
well, not understanding how the wind would set when we were out of the
harbour. He did it for me. He expressed great gentleness and kindness for
my father’s state, and I am sure he felt it. That was the manner of our
beginning to speak together.”
“Let me interrupt you for a moment. Had he come on board alone?”
“No.”
“How many were with him?”
“Two French gentlemen.”
“Had they conferred together?”
“They had conferred together until the last moment, when it was necessary
for the French gentlemen to be landed in their boat.”
“Had any papers been handed about among them, similar to these lists?”
“Some papers had been handed about among them, but I don’t know what
papers.”
“Like these in shape and size?”
“Possibly, but indeed I don’t know, although they stood whispering very
near to me: because they stood at the top of the cabin steps to have the
light of the lamp that was hanging there; it was a dull lamp, and they
spoke very low, and I did not hear what they said, and saw only that they
looked at papers.”
“Now, to the prisoner’s conversation, Miss Manette.”
“The prisoner was as open in his confidence with me—which arose out
of my helpless situation—as he was kind, and good, and useful to my
father. I hope,” bursting into tears, “I may not repay him by doing him
harm to-day.”
Buzzing from the blue-flies.
“Miss Manette, if the prisoner does not perfectly understand that you give
the evidence which it is your duty to give—which you must give—and
which you cannot escape from giving—with great unwillingness, he is
the only person present in that condition. Please to go on.”
“He told me that he was travelling on business of a delicate and difficult
nature, which might get people into trouble, and that he was therefore
travelling under an assumed name. He said that this business had, within a
few days, taken him to France, and might, at intervals, take him backwards
and forwards between France and England for a long time to come.”
“Did he say anything about America, Miss Manette? Be particular.”
“He tried to explain to me how that quarrel had arisen, and he said that,
so far as he could judge, it was a wrong and foolish one on England’s
part. He added, in a jesting way, that perhaps George Washington might
gain almost as great a name in history as George the Third. But there was
no harm in his way of saying this: it was said laughingly, and to beguile
the time.”
Any strongly marked expression of face on the part of a chief actor in a
scene of great interest to whom many eyes are directed, will be
unconsciously imitated by the spectators. Her forehead was painfully
anxious and intent as she gave this evidence, and, in the pauses when she
stopped for the Judge to write it down, watched its effect upon the
counsel for and against. Among the lookers-on there was the same
expression in all quarters of the court; insomuch, that a great majority
of the foreheads there, might have been mirrors reflecting the witness,
when the Judge looked up from his notes to glare at that tremendous heresy
about George Washington.
Mr. Attorney-General now signified to my Lord, that he deemed it
necessary, as a matter of precaution and form, to call the young lady’s
father, Doctor Manette. Who was called accordingly.
“Doctor Manette, look upon the prisoner. Have you ever seen him before?”
“Once. When he called at my lodgings in London. Some three years, or three
years and a half ago.”
“Can you identify him as your fellow-passenger on board the packet, or
speak to his conversation with your daughter?”
“Sir, I can do neither.”
“Is there any particular and special reason for your being unable to do
either?”
He answered, in a low voice, “There is.”
“Has it been your misfortune to undergo a long imprisonment, without
trial, or even accusation, in your native country, Doctor Manette?”
He answered, in a tone that went to every heart, “A long imprisonment.”
<br />
“Were you newly released on the occasion in question?”
<br />
“They tell me so.”
<br />
“Have you no remembrance of the occasion?”
<br />
“None. My mind is a blank, from some time—I cannot even say what
time—when I employed myself, in my captivity, in making shoes, to
the time when I found myself living in London with my dear daughter here.
She had become familiar to me, when a gracious God restored my faculties;
but, I am quite unable even to say how she had become familiar. I have no
remembrance of the process.”
<br />
Mr. Attorney-General sat down, and the father and daughter sat down
together.
<br />
A singular circumstance then arose in the case. The object in hand being
to show that the prisoner went down, with some fellow-plotter untracked,
in the Dover mail on that Friday night in November five years ago, and got
out of the mail in the night, as a blind, at a place where he did not
remain, but from which he travelled back some dozen miles or more, to a
garrison and dockyard, and there collected information; a witness was
called to identify him as having been at the precise time required, in the
coffee-room of an hotel in that garrison-and-dockyard town, waiting for
another person. The prisoner’s counsel was cross-examining this witness
with no result, except that he had never seen the prisoner on any other
occasion, when the wigged gentleman who had all this time been looking at
the ceiling of the court, wrote a word or two on a little piece of paper,
screwed it up, and tossed it to him. Opening this piece of paper in the
next pause, the counsel looked with great attention and curiosity at the
prisoner.
<br />
“You say again you are quite sure that it was the prisoner?”
<br />
The witness was quite sure.
<br />
“Did you ever see anybody very like the prisoner?”
<br />
Not so like (the witness said) as that he could be mistaken.
<br />
“Look well upon that gentleman, my learned friend there,” pointing to him
who had tossed the paper over, “and then look well upon the prisoner. How
say you? Are they very like each other?”
<br />
Allowing for my learned friend’s appearance being careless and slovenly if
not debauched, they were sufficiently like each other to surprise, not
only the witness, but everybody present, when they were thus brought into
comparison. My Lord being prayed to bid my learned friend lay aside his
wig, and giving no very gracious consent, the likeness became much more
remarkable. My Lord inquired of Mr. Stryver (the prisoner’s counsel),
whether they were next to try Mr. Carton (name of my learned friend) for
treason? But, Mr. Stryver replied to my Lord, no; but he would ask the
witness to tell him whether what happened once, might happen twice;
whether he would have been so confident if he had seen this illustration
of his rashness sooner, whether he would be so confident, having seen it;
and more. The upshot of which, was, to smash this witness like a crockery
vessel, and shiver his part of the case to useless lumber.
<br />
Mr. Cruncher had by this time taken quite a lunch of rust off his fingers
in his following of the evidence. He had now to attend while Mr. Stryver
fitted the prisoner’s case on the jury, like a compact suit of clothes;
showing them how the patriot, Barsad, was a hired spy and traitor, an
unblushing trafficker in blood, and one of the greatest scoundrels upon
earth since accursed Judas—which he certainly did look rather like.
How the virtuous servant, Cly, was his friend and partner, and was worthy
to be; how the watchful eyes of those forgers and false swearers had
rested on the prisoner as a victim, because some family affairs in France,
he being of French extraction, did require his making those passages
across the Channel—though what those affairs were, a consideration
for others who were near and dear to him, forbade him, even for his life,
to disclose. How the evidence that had been warped and wrested from the
young lady, whose anguish in giving it they had witnessed, came to
nothing, involving the mere little innocent gallantries and politenesses
likely to pass between any young gentleman and young lady so thrown
together;—with the exception of that reference to George Washington,
which was altogether too extravagant and impossible to be regarded in any
other light than as a monstrous joke. How it would be a weakness in the
government to break down in this attempt to practise for popularity on the
lowest national antipathies and fears, and therefore Mr. Attorney-General
had made the most of it; how, nevertheless, it rested upon nothing, save
that vile and infamous character of evidence too often disfiguring such
cases, and of which the State Trials of this country were full. But, there
my Lord interposed (with as grave a face as if it had not been true),
saying that he could not sit upon that Bench and suffer those allusions.
<br />
Mr. Stryver then called his few witnesses, and Mr. Cruncher had next to
attend while Mr. Attorney-General turned the whole suit of clothes Mr.
Stryver had fitted on the jury, inside out; showing how Barsad and Cly
were even a hundred times better than he had thought them, and the
prisoner a hundred times worse. Lastly, came my Lord himself, turning the
suit of clothes, now inside out, now outside in, but on the whole
decidedly trimming and shaping them into grave-clothes for the prisoner.
<br />
And now, the jury turned to consider, and the great flies swarmed again.
<br />
Mr. Carton, who had so long sat looking at the ceiling of the court,
changed neither his place nor his attitude, even in this excitement. While
his learned friend, Mr. Stryver, massing his papers before him, whispered
with those who sat near, and from time to time glanced anxiously at the
jury; while all the spectators moved more or less, and grouped themselves
anew; while even my Lord himself arose from his seat, and slowly paced up
and down his platform, not unattended by a suspicion in the minds of the
audience that his state was feverish; this one man sat leaning back, with
his torn gown half off him, his untidy wig put on just as it had happened
to light on his head after its removal, his hands in his pockets, and his
eyes on the ceiling as they had been all day. Something especially
reckless in his demeanour, not only gave him a disreputable look, but so
diminished the strong resemblance he undoubtedly bore to the prisoner
(which his momentary earnestness, when they were compared together, had
strengthened), that many of the lookers-on, taking note of him now, said
to one another they would hardly have thought the two were so alike. Mr.
Cruncher made the observation to his next neighbour, and added, “I’d hold
half a guinea that don’t get no law-work to do. Don’t look like
the sort of one to get any, do he?”
<br />
Yet, this Mr. Carton took in more of the details of the scene than he
appeared to take in; for now, when Miss Manette’s head dropped upon her
father’s breast, he was the first to see it, and to say audibly: “Officer!
look to that young lady. Help the gentleman to take her out. Don’t you see
she will fall!”
<br />
There was much commiseration for her as she was removed, and much sympathy
with her father. It had evidently been a great distress to him, to have
the days of his imprisonment recalled. He had shown strong internal
agitation when he was questioned, and that pondering or brooding look
which made him old, had been upon him, like a heavy cloud, ever since. As
he passed out, the jury, who had turned back and paused a moment, spoke,
through their foreman.
<br />
They were not agreed, and wished to retire. My Lord (perhaps with George
Washington on his mind) showed some surprise that they were not agreed,
but signified his pleasure that they should retire under watch and ward,
and retired himself. The trial had lasted all day, and the lamps in the
court were now being lighted. It began to be rumoured that the jury would
be out a long while. The spectators dropped off to get refreshment, and
the prisoner withdrew to the back of the dock, and sat down.
<br />
Mr. Lorry, who had gone out when the young lady and her father went out,
now reappeared, and beckoned to Jerry: who, in the slackened interest,
could easily get near him.
<br />
“Jerry, if you wish to take something to eat, you can. But, keep in the
way. You will be sure to hear when the jury come in. Don’t be a moment
behind them, for I want you to take the verdict back to the bank. You are
the quickest messenger I know, and will get to Temple Bar long before I
can.”
<br />
Jerry had just enough forehead to knuckle, and he knuckled it in
acknowledgment of this communication and a shilling. Mr. Carton came up at
the moment, and touched Mr. Lorry on the arm.
<br />
“How is the young lady?”
<br />
“She is greatly distressed; but her father is comforting her, and she
feels the better for being out of court.”
<br />
“I’ll tell the prisoner so. It won’t do for a respectable bank gentleman
like you, to be seen speaking to him publicly, you know.”
<br />
Mr. Lorry reddened as if he were conscious of having debated the point in
his mind, and Mr. Carton made his way to the outside of the bar. The way
out of court lay in that direction, and Jerry followed him, all eyes,
ears, and spikes.
<br />
“Mr. Darnay!”
<br />
The prisoner came forward directly.
<br />
“You will naturally be anxious to hear of the witness, Miss Manette. She
will do very well. You have seen the worst of her agitation.”
<br />
“I am deeply sorry to have been the cause of it. Could you tell her so for
me, with my fervent acknowledgments?”
<br />
“Yes, I could. I will, if you ask it.”
<br />
Mr. Carton’s manner was so careless as to be almost insolent. He stood,
half turned from the prisoner, lounging with his elbow against the bar.
<br />
“I do ask it. Accept my cordial thanks.”
<br />
“What,” said Carton, still only half turned towards him, “do you expect,
Mr. Darnay?”
<br />
“The worst.”
<br />
“It’s the wisest thing to expect, and the likeliest. But I think their
withdrawing is in your favour.”
<br />
Loitering on the way out of court not being allowed, Jerry heard no more:
but left them—so like each other in feature, so unlike each other in
manner—standing side by side, both reflected in the glass above
them.
<br />
An hour and a half limped heavily away in the thief-and-rascal crowded
passages below, even though assisted off with mutton pies and ale. The
hoarse messenger, uncomfortably seated on a form after taking that
refection, had dropped into a doze, when a loud murmur and a rapid tide of
people setting up the stairs that led to the court, carried him along with
them.
<br />
“Jerry! Jerry!” Mr. Lorry was already calling at the door when he got
there.
<br />
“Here, sir! It’s a fight to get back again. Here I am, sir!”
<br />
Mr. Lorry handed him a paper through the throng. “Quick! Have you got it?”
<br />
“Yes, sir.”
<br />
Hastily written on the paper was the word “.”
<br />
“If you had sent the message, ‘Recalled to Life,’ again,” muttered Jerry,
as he turned, “I should have known what you meant, this time.”
<br />
He had no opportunity of saying, or so much as thinking, anything else,
until he was clear of the Old Bailey; for, the crowd came pouring out with
a vehemence that nearly took him off his legs, and a loud buzz swept into
the street as if the baffled blue-flies were dispersing in search of other
carrion.
CHAPTER IV.<br />Congratulatory
From the dimly-lighted passages of the court, the last sediment of the
human stew that had been boiling there all day, was straining off, when
Doctor Manette, Lucie Manette, his daughter, Mr. Lorry, the solicitor for
the defence, and its counsel, Mr. Stryver, stood gathered round Mr.
Charles Darnay—just released—congratulating him on his escape
from death.
It would have been difficult by a far brighter light, to recognise in
Doctor Manette, intellectual of face and upright of bearing, the shoemaker
of the garret in Paris. Yet, no one could have looked at him twice,
without looking again: even though the opportunity of observation had not
extended to the mournful cadence of his low grave voice, and to the
abstraction that overclouded him fitfully, without any apparent reason.
While one external cause, and that a reference to his long lingering
agony, would always—as on the trial—evoke this condition from
the depths of his soul, it was also in its nature to arise of itself, and
to draw a gloom over him, as incomprehensible to those unacquainted with
his story as if they had seen the shadow of the actual Bastille thrown
upon him by a summer sun, when the substance was three hundred miles away.
Only his daughter had the power of charming this black brooding from his
mind. She was the golden thread that united him to a Past beyond his
misery, and to a Present beyond his misery: and the sound of her voice,
the light of her face, the touch of her hand, had a strong beneficial
influence with him almost always. Not absolutely always, for she could
recall some occasions on which her power had failed; but they were few and
slight, and she believed them over.
Mr. Darnay had kissed her hand fervently and gratefully, and had turned to
Mr. Stryver, whom he warmly thanked. Mr. Stryver, a man of little more
than thirty, but looking twenty years older than he was, stout, loud, red,
bluff, and free from any drawback of delicacy, had a pushing way of
shouldering himself (morally and physically) into companies and
conversations, that argued well for his shouldering his way up in life.
He still had his wig and gown on, and he said, squaring himself at his
late client to that degree that he squeezed the innocent Mr. Lorry clean
out of the group: “I am glad to have brought you off with honour, Mr.
Darnay. It was an infamous prosecution, grossly infamous; but not the less
likely to succeed on that account.”
“You have laid me under an obligation to you for life—in two
senses,” said his late client, taking his hand.
“I have done my best for you, Mr. Darnay; and my best is as good as
another man’s, I believe.”
It clearly being incumbent on some one to say, “Much better,” Mr. Lorry
said it; perhaps not quite disinterestedly, but with the interested object
of squeezing himself back again.
“You think so?” said Mr. Stryver. “Well! you have been present all day,
and you ought to know. You are a man of business, too.”
“And as such,” quoth Mr. Lorry, whom the counsel learned in the law had
now shouldered back into the group, just as he had previously shouldered
him out of it—“as such I will appeal to Doctor Manette, to break up
this conference and order us all to our homes. Miss Lucie looks ill, Mr.
Darnay has had a terrible day, we are worn out.”
“Speak for yourself, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver; “I have a night’s work to
do yet. Speak for yourself.”
“I speak for myself,” answered Mr. Lorry, “and for Mr. Darnay, and for
Miss Lucie, and—Miss Lucie, do you not think I may speak for us
all?” He asked her the question pointedly, and with a glance at her
father.
His face had become frozen, as it were, in a very curious look at Darnay:
an intent look, deepening into a frown of dislike and distrust, not even
unmixed with fear. With this strange expression on him his thoughts had
wandered away.
“My father,” said Lucie, softly laying her hand on his.
He slowly shook the shadow off, and turned to her.
“Shall we go home, my father?”
With a long breath, he answered “Yes.”
The friends of the acquitted prisoner had dispersed, under the impression—which
he himself had originated—that he would not be released that night.
The lights were nearly all extinguished in the passages, the iron gates
were being closed with a jar and a rattle, and the dismal place was
deserted until to-morrow morning’s interest of gallows, pillory,
whipping-post, and branding-iron, should repeople it. Walking between her
father and Mr. Darnay, Lucie Manette passed into the open air. A
hackney-coach was called, and the father and daughter departed in it.
Mr. Stryver had left them in the passages, to shoulder his way back to the
robing-room. Another person, who had not joined the group, or interchanged
a word with any one of them, but who had been leaning against the wall
where its shadow was darkest, had silently strolled out after the rest,
and had looked on until the coach drove away. He now stepped up to where
Mr. Lorry and Mr. Darnay stood upon the pavement.
“So, Mr. Lorry! Men of business may speak to Mr. Darnay now?”
Nobody had made any acknowledgment of Mr. Carton’s part in the day’s
proceedings; nobody had known of it. He was unrobed, and was none the
better for it in appearance.
“If you knew what a conflict goes on in the business mind, when the
business mind is divided between good-natured impulse and business
appearances, you would be amused, Mr. Darnay.”
Mr. Lorry reddened, and said, warmly, “You have mentioned that before,
sir. We men of business, who serve a House, are not our own masters. We
have to think of the House more than ourselves.”
“ know, know,” rejoined Mr. Carton, carelessly. “Don’t be
nettled, Mr. Lorry. You are as good as another, I have no doubt: better, I
dare say.”
“And indeed, sir,” pursued Mr. Lorry, not minding him, “I really don’t
know what you have to do with the matter. If you’ll excuse me, as very
much your elder, for saying so, I really don’t know that it is your
business.”
“Business! Bless you, have no business,” said Mr. Carton.
“It is a pity you have not, sir.”
“I think so, too.”
“If you had,” pursued Mr. Lorry, “perhaps you would attend to it.”
“Lord love you, no!—I shouldn’t,” said Mr. Carton.
“Well, sir!” cried Mr. Lorry, thoroughly heated by his indifference,
“business is a very good thing, and a very respectable thing. And, sir, if
business imposes its restraints and its silences and impediments, Mr.
Darnay as a young gentleman of generosity knows how to make allowance for
that circumstance. Mr. Darnay, good night, God bless you, sir! I hope you
have been this day preserved for a prosperous and happy life.—Chair
there!”
Perhaps a little angry with himself, as well as with the barrister, Mr.
Lorry bustled into the chair, and was carried off to Tellson’s. Carton,
who smelt of port wine, and did not appear to be quite sober, laughed
then, and turned to Darnay:
“This is a strange chance that throws you and me together. This must be a
strange night to you, standing alone here with your counterpart on these
street stones?”
“I hardly seem yet,” returned Charles Darnay, “to belong to this world
again.”
“I don’t wonder at it; it’s not so long since you were pretty far advanced
on your way to another. You speak faintly.”
“I begin to think I faint.”
“Then why the devil don’t you dine? I dined, myself, while those numskulls
were deliberating which world you should belong to—this, or some
other. Let me show you the nearest tavern to dine well at.”
Drawing his arm through his own, he took him down Ludgate-hill to
Fleet-street, and so, up a covered way, into a tavern. Here, they were
shown into a little room, where Charles Darnay was soon recruiting his
strength with a good plain dinner and good wine: while Carton sat opposite
to him at the same table, with his separate bottle of port before him, and
his fully half-insolent manner upon him.
“Do you feel, yet, that you belong to this terrestrial scheme again, Mr.
Darnay?”
“I am frightfully confused regarding time and place; but I am so far
mended as to feel that.”
“It must be an immense satisfaction!”
He said it bitterly, and filled up his glass again: which was a large one.
“As to me, the greatest desire I have, is to forget that I belong to it.
It has no good in it for me—except wine like this—nor I for
it. So we are not much alike in that particular. Indeed, I begin to think
we are not much alike in any particular, you and I.”
Confused by the emotion of the day, and feeling his being there with this
Double of coarse deportment, to be like a dream, Charles Darnay was at a
loss how to answer; finally, answered not at all.
“Now your dinner is done,” Carton presently said, “why don’t you call a
health, Mr. Darnay; why don’t you give your toast?”
“What health? What toast?”
“Why, it’s on the tip of your tongue. It ought to be, it must be, I’ll
swear it’s there.”
“Miss Manette, then!”
“Miss Manette, then!”
Looking his companion full in the face while he drank the toast, Carton
flung his glass over his shoulder against the wall, where it shivered to
pieces; then, rang the bell, and ordered in another.
“That’s a fair young lady to hand to a coach in the dark, Mr. Darnay!” he
said, filling his new goblet.
A slight frown and a laconic “Yes,” were the answer.
“That’s a fair young lady to be pitied by and wept for by! How does it
feel? Is it worth being tried for one’s life, to be the object of such
sympathy and compassion, Mr. Darnay?”
Again Darnay answered not a word.
“She was mightily pleased to have your message, when I gave it her. Not
that she showed she was pleased, but I suppose she was.”
The allusion served as a timely reminder to Darnay that this disagreeable
companion had, of his own free will, assisted him in the strait of the
day. He turned the dialogue to that point, and thanked him for it.
“I neither want any thanks, nor merit any,” was the careless rejoinder.
“It was nothing to do, in the first place; and I don’t know why I did it,
in the second. Mr. Darnay, let me ask you a question.”
“Willingly, and a small return for your good offices.”
“Do you think I particularly like you?”
“Really, Mr. Carton,” returned the other, oddly disconcerted, “I have not
asked myself the question.”
“But ask yourself the question now.”
“You have acted as if you do; but I don’t think you do.”
“ don’t think I do,” said Carton. “I begin to have a very good
opinion of your understanding.”
“Nevertheless,” pursued Darnay, rising to ring the bell, “there is nothing
in that, I hope, to prevent my calling the reckoning, and our parting
without ill-blood on either side.”
Carton rejoining, “Nothing in life!” Darnay rang. “Do you call the whole
reckoning?” said Carton. On his answering in the affirmative, “Then bring
me another pint of this same wine, drawer, and come and wake me at ten.”
The bill being paid, Charles Darnay rose and wished him good night.
Without returning the wish, Carton rose too, with something of a threat of
defiance in his manner, and said, “A last word, Mr. Darnay: you think I am
drunk?”
“I think you have been drinking, Mr. Carton.”
“Think? You know I have been drinking.”
“Since I must say so, I know it.”
“Then you shall likewise know why. I am a disappointed drudge, sir. I care
for no man on earth, and no man on earth cares for me.”
“Much to be regretted. You might have used your talents better.”
“May be so, Mr. Darnay; may be not. Don’t let your sober face elate you,
however; you don’t know what it may come to. Good night!”
When he was left alone, this strange being took up a candle, went to a
glass that hung against the wall, and surveyed himself minutely in it.
“Do you particularly like the man?” he muttered, at his own image; “why
should you particularly like a man who resembles you? There is nothing in
you to like; you know that. Ah, confound you! What a change you have made
in yourself! A good reason for taking to a man, that he shows you what you
have fallen away from, and what you might have been! Change places with
him, and would you have been looked at by those blue eyes as he was, and
commiserated by that agitated face as he was? Come on, and have it out in
plain words! You hate the fellow.”
He resorted to his pint of wine for consolation, drank it all in a few
minutes, and fell asleep on his arms, with his hair straggling over the
table, and a long winding-sheet in the candle dripping down upon him.
CHAPTER V.<br />The Jackal
Those were drinking days, and most men drank hard. So very great is the
improvement Time has brought about in such habits, that a moderate
statement of the quantity of wine and punch which one man would swallow in
the course of a night, without any detriment to his reputation as a
perfect gentleman, would seem, in these days, a ridiculous exaggeration.
The learned profession of the law was certainly not behind any other
learned profession in its Bacchanalian propensities; neither was Mr.
Stryver, already fast shouldering his way to a large and lucrative
practice, behind his compeers in this particular, any more than in the
drier parts of the legal race.
A favourite at the Old Bailey, and eke at the Sessions, Mr. Stryver had
begun cautiously to hew away the lower staves of the ladder on which he
mounted. Sessions and Old Bailey had now to summon their favourite,
specially, to their longing arms; and shouldering itself towards the
visage of the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of King’s Bench, the florid
countenance of Mr. Stryver might be daily seen, bursting out of the bed of
wigs, like a great sunflower pushing its way at the sun from among a rank
garden-full of flaring companions.
It had once been noted at the Bar, that while Mr. Stryver was a glib man,
and an unscrupulous, and a ready, and a bold, he had not that faculty of
extracting the essence from a heap of statements, which is among the most
striking and necessary of the advocate’s accomplishments. But, a
remarkable improvement came upon him as to this. The more business he got,
the greater his power seemed to grow of getting at its pith and marrow;
and however late at night he sat carousing with Sydney Carton, he always
had his points at his fingers’ ends in the morning.
Sydney Carton, idlest and most unpromising of men, was Stryver’s great
ally. What the two drank together, between Hilary Term and Michaelmas,
might have floated a king’s ship. Stryver never had a case in hand,
anywhere, but Carton was there, with his hands in his pockets, staring at
the ceiling of the court; they went the same Circuit, and even there they
prolonged their usual orgies late into the night, and Carton was rumoured
to be seen at broad day, going home stealthily and unsteadily to his
lodgings, like a dissipated cat. At last, it began to get about, among
such as were interested in the matter, that although Sydney Carton would
never be a lion, he was an amazingly good jackal, and that he rendered
suit and service to Stryver in that humble capacity.
“Ten o’clock, sir,” said the man at the tavern, whom he had charged to
wake him—“ten o’clock, sir.”
“ the matter?”
“Ten o’clock, sir.”
“What do you mean? Ten o’clock at night?”
“Yes, sir. Your honour told me to call you.”
“Oh! I remember. Very well, very well.”
After a few dull efforts to get to sleep again, which the man dexterously
combated by stirring the fire continuously for five minutes, he got up,
tossed his hat on, and walked out. He turned into the Temple, and, having
revived himself by twice pacing the pavements of King’s Bench-walk and
Paper-buildings, turned into the Stryver chambers.
The Stryver clerk, who never assisted at these conferences, had gone home,
and the Stryver principal opened the door. He had his slippers on, and a
loose bed-gown, and his throat was bare for his greater ease. He had that
rather wild, strained, seared marking about the eyes, which may be
observed in all free livers of his class, from the portrait of Jeffries
downward, and which can be traced, under various disguises of Art, through
the portraits of every Drinking Age.
“You are a little late, Memory,” said Stryver.
“About the usual time; it may be a quarter of an hour later.”
They went into a dingy room lined with books and littered with papers,
where there was a blazing fire. A kettle steamed upon the hob, and in the
midst of the wreck of papers a table shone, with plenty of wine upon it,
and brandy, and rum, and sugar, and lemons.
“You have had your bottle, I perceive, Sydney.”
“Two to-night, I think. I have been dining with the day’s client; or
seeing him dine—it’s all one!”
“That was a rare point, Sydney, that you brought to bear upon the
identification. How did you come by it? When did it strike you?”
“I thought he was rather a handsome fellow, and I thought I should have
been much the same sort of fellow, if I had had any luck.”
Mr. Stryver laughed till he shook his precocious paunch.
“You and your luck, Sydney! Get to work, get to work.”
Sullenly enough, the jackal loosened his dress, went into an adjoining
room, and came back with a large jug of cold water, a basin, and a towel
or two. Steeping the towels in the water, and partially wringing them out,
he folded them on his head in a manner hideous to behold, sat down at the
table, and said, “Now I am ready!”
“Not much boiling down to be done to-night, Memory,” said Mr. Stryver,
gaily, as he looked among his papers.
“How much?”
“Only two sets of them.”
“Give me the worst first.”
“There they are, Sydney. Fire away!”
The lion then composed himself on his back on a sofa on one side of the
drinking-table, while the jackal sat at his own paper-bestrewn table
proper, on the other side of it, with the bottles and glasses ready to his
hand. Both resorted to the drinking-table without stint, but each in a
different way; the lion for the most part reclining with his hands in his
waistband, looking at the fire, or occasionally flirting with some lighter
document; the jackal, with knitted brows and intent face, so deep in his
task, that his eyes did not even follow the hand he stretched out for his
glass—which often groped about, for a minute or more, before it
found the glass for his lips. Two or three times, the matter in hand
became so knotty, that the jackal found it imperative on him to get up,
and steep his towels anew. From these pilgrimages to the jug and basin, he
returned with such eccentricities of damp headgear as no words can
describe; which were made the more ludicrous by his anxious gravity.
At length the jackal had got together a compact repast for the lion, and
proceeded to offer it to him. The lion took it with care and caution, made
his selections from it, and his remarks upon it, and the jackal assisted
both. When the repast was fully discussed, the lion put his hands in his
waistband again, and lay down to meditate. The jackal then invigorated
himself with a bumper for his throttle, and a fresh application to his
head, and applied himself to the collection of a second meal; this was
administered to the lion in the same manner, and was not disposed of until
the clocks struck three in the morning.
“And now we have done, Sydney, fill a bumper of punch,” said Mr. Stryver.
The jackal removed the towels from his head, which had been steaming
again, shook himself, yawned, shivered, and complied.
“You were very sound, Sydney, in the matter of those crown witnesses
to-day. Every question told.”
“I always am sound; am I not?”
“I don’t gainsay it. What has roughened your temper? Put some punch to it
and smooth it again.”
With a deprecatory grunt, the jackal again complied.
“The old Sydney Carton of old Shrewsbury School,” said Stryver, nodding
his head over him as he reviewed him in the present and the past, “the old
seesaw Sydney. Up one minute and down the next; now in spirits and now in
despondency!”
“Ah!” returned the other, sighing: “yes! The same Sydney, with the same
luck. Even then, I did exercises for other boys, and seldom did my own.”
“And why not?”
“God knows. It was my way, I suppose.”
He sat, with his hands in his pockets and his legs stretched out before
him, looking at the fire.
“Carton,” said his friend, squaring himself at him with a bullying air, as
if the fire-grate had been the furnace in which sustained endeavour was
forged, and the one delicate thing to be done for the old Sydney Carton of
old Shrewsbury School was to shoulder him into it, “your way is, and
always was, a lame way. You summon no energy and purpose. Look at me.”
“Oh, botheration!” returned Sydney, with a lighter and more good-humoured
laugh, “don’t be moral!”
“How have I done what I have done?” said Stryver; “how do I do what I do?”
“Partly through paying me to help you, I suppose. But it’s not worth your
while to apostrophise me, or the air, about it; what you want to do, you
do. You were always in the front rank, and I was always behind.”
“I had to get into the front rank; I was not born there, was I?”
“I was not present at the ceremony; but my opinion is you were,” said
Carton. At this, he laughed again, and they both laughed.
“Before Shrewsbury, and at Shrewsbury, and ever since Shrewsbury,” pursued
Carton, “you have fallen into your rank, and I have fallen into mine. Even
when we were fellow-students in the Student-Quarter of Paris, picking up
French, and French law, and other French crumbs that we didn’t get much
good of, you were always somewhere, and I was always nowhere.”
“And whose fault was that?”
“Upon my soul, I am not sure that it was not yours. You were always
driving and riving and shouldering and passing, to that restless degree
that I had no chance for my life but in rust and repose. It’s a gloomy
thing, however, to talk about one’s own past, with the day breaking. Turn
me in some other direction before I go.”
“Well then! Pledge me to the pretty witness,” said Stryver, holding up his
glass. “Are you turned in a pleasant direction?”
Apparently not, for he became gloomy again.
“Pretty witness,” he muttered, looking down into his glass. “I have had
enough of witnesses to-day and to-night; who’s your pretty witness?”
“The picturesque doctor’s daughter, Miss Manette.”
“ pretty?”
“Is she not?”
“No.”
“Why, man alive, she was the admiration of the whole Court!”
“Rot the admiration of the whole Court! Who made the Old Bailey a judge of
beauty? She was a golden-haired doll!”
“Do you know, Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, looking at him with sharp eyes,
and slowly drawing a hand across his florid face: “do you know, I rather
thought, at the time, that you sympathised with the golden-haired doll,
and were quick to see what happened to the golden-haired doll?”
“Quick to see what happened! If a girl, doll or no doll, swoons within a
yard or two of a man’s nose, he can see it without a perspective-glass. I
pledge you, but I deny the beauty. And now I’ll have no more drink; I’ll
get to bed.”
When his host followed him out on the staircase with a candle, to light
him down the stairs, the day was coldly looking in through its grimy
windows. When he got out of the house, the air was cold and sad, the dull
sky overcast, the river dark and dim, the whole scene like a lifeless
desert. And wreaths of dust were spinning round and round before the
morning blast, as if the desert-sand had risen far away, and the first
spray of it in its advance had begun to overwhelm the city.
Waste forces within him, and a desert all around, this man stood still on
his way across a silent terrace, and saw for a moment, lying in the
wilderness before him, a mirage of honourable ambition, self-denial, and
perseverance. In the fair city of this vision, there were airy galleries
from which the loves and graces looked upon him, gardens in which the
fruits of life hung ripening, waters of Hope that sparkled in his sight. A
moment, and it was gone. Climbing to a high chamber in a well of houses,
he threw himself down in his clothes on a neglected bed, and its pillow
was wet with wasted tears.
Sadly, sadly, the sun rose; it rose upon no sadder sight than the man of
good abilities and good emotions, incapable of their directed exercise,
incapable of his own help and his own happiness, sensible of the blight on
him, and resigning himself to let it eat him away.
CHAPTER VI.<br />Hundreds of People
The quiet lodgings of Doctor Manette were in a quiet street-corner not far
from Soho-square. On the afternoon of a certain fine Sunday when the waves
of four months had rolled over the trial for treason, and carried it, as
to the public interest and memory, far out to sea, Mr. Jarvis Lorry walked
along the sunny streets from Clerkenwell where he lived, on his way to
dine with the Doctor. After several relapses into business-absorption, Mr.
Lorry had become the Doctor’s friend, and the quiet street-corner was the
sunny part of his life.
On this certain fine Sunday, Mr. Lorry walked towards Soho, early in the
afternoon, for three reasons of habit. Firstly, because, on fine Sundays,
he often walked out, before dinner, with the Doctor and Lucie; secondly,
because, on unfavourable Sundays, he was accustomed to be with them as the
family friend, talking, reading, looking out of window, and generally
getting through the day; thirdly, because he happened to have his own
little shrewd doubts to solve, and knew how the ways of the Doctor’s
household pointed to that time as a likely time for solving them.
A quainter corner than the corner where the Doctor lived, was not to be
found in London. There was no way through it, and the front windows of the
Doctor’s lodgings commanded a pleasant little vista of street that had a
congenial air of retirement on it. There were few buildings then, north of
the Oxford-road, and forest-trees flourished, and wild flowers grew, and
the hawthorn blossomed, in the now vanished fields. As a consequence,
country airs circulated in Soho with vigorous freedom, instead of
languishing into the parish like stray paupers without a settlement; and
there was many a good south wall, not far off, on which the peaches
ripened in their season.
The summer light struck into the corner brilliantly in the earlier part of
the day; but, when the streets grew hot, the corner was in shadow, though
not in shadow so remote but that you could see beyond it into a glare of
brightness. It was a cool spot, staid but cheerful, a wonderful place for
echoes, and a very harbour from the raging streets.
There ought to have been a tranquil bark in such an anchorage, and there
was. The Doctor occupied two floors of a large stiff house, where several
callings purported to be pursued by day, but whereof little was audible
any day, and which was shunned by all of them at night. In a building at
the back, attainable by a courtyard where a plane-tree rustled its green
leaves, church-organs claimed to be made, and silver to be chased, and
likewise gold to be beaten by some mysterious giant who had a golden arm
starting out of the wall of the front hall—as if he had beaten
himself precious, and menaced a similar conversion of all visitors. Very
little of these trades, or of a lonely lodger rumoured to live up-stairs,
or of a dim coach-trimming maker asserted to have a counting-house below,
was ever heard or seen. Occasionally, a stray workman putting his coat on,
traversed the hall, or a stranger peered about there, or a distant clink
was heard across the courtyard, or a thump from the golden giant. These,
however, were only the exceptions required to prove the rule that the
sparrows in the plane-tree behind the house, and the echoes in the corner
before it, had their own way from Sunday morning unto Saturday night.
Doctor Manette received such patients here as his old reputation, and its
revival in the floating whispers of his story, brought him. His scientific
knowledge, and his vigilance and skill in conducting ingenious
experiments, brought him otherwise into moderate request, and he earned as
much as he wanted.
These things were within Mr. Jarvis Lorry’s knowledge, thoughts, and
notice, when he rang the door-bell of the tranquil house in the corner, on
the fine Sunday afternoon.
“Doctor Manette at home?”
Expected home.
“Miss Lucie at home?”
Expected home.
“Miss Pross at home?”
Possibly at home, but of a certainty impossible for handmaid to anticipate
intentions of Miss Pross, as to admission or denial of the fact.
“As I am at home myself,” said Mr. Lorry, “I’ll go upstairs.”
Although the Doctor’s daughter had known nothing of the country of her
birth, she appeared to have innately derived from it that ability to make
much of little means, which is one of its most useful and most agreeable
characteristics. Simple as the furniture was, it was set off by so many
little adornments, of no value but for their taste and fancy, that its
effect was delightful. The disposition of everything in the rooms, from
the largest object to the least; the arrangement of colours, the elegant
variety and contrast obtained by thrift in trifles, by delicate hands,
clear eyes, and good sense; were at once so pleasant in themselves, and so
expressive of their originator, that, as Mr. Lorry stood looking about
him, the very chairs and tables seemed to ask him, with something of that
peculiar expression which he knew so well by this time, whether he
approved?
There were three rooms on a floor, and, the doors by which they
communicated being put open that the air might pass freely through them
all, Mr. Lorry, smilingly observant of that fanciful resemblance which he
detected all around him, walked from one to another. The first was the
best room, and in it were Lucie’s birds, and flowers, and books, and desk,
and work-table, and box of water-colours; the second was the Doctor’s
consulting-room, used also as the dining-room; the third, changingly
speckled by the rustle of the plane-tree in the yard, was the Doctor’s
bedroom, and there, in a corner, stood the disused shoemaker’s bench and
tray of tools, much as it had stood on the fifth floor of the dismal house
by the wine-shop, in the suburb of Saint Antoine in Paris.
“I wonder,” said Mr. Lorry, pausing in his looking about, “that he keeps
that reminder of his sufferings about him!”
“And why wonder at that?” was the abrupt inquiry that made him start.
It proceeded from Miss Pross, the wild red woman, strong of hand, whose
acquaintance he had first made at the Royal George Hotel at Dover, and had
since improved.
“I should have thought—” Mr. Lorry began.
“Pooh! You’d have thought!” said Miss Pross; and Mr. Lorry left off.
“How do you do?” inquired that lady then—sharply, and yet as if to
express that she bore him no malice.
“I am pretty well, I thank you,” answered Mr. Lorry, with meekness; “how
are you?”
“Nothing to boast of,” said Miss Pross.
“Indeed?”
“Ah! indeed!” said Miss Pross. “I am very much put out about my Ladybird.”
“Indeed?”
“For gracious sake say something else besides ‘indeed,’ or you’ll fidget
me to death,” said Miss Pross: whose character (dissociated from stature)
was shortness.
“Really, then?” said Mr. Lorry, as an amendment.
“Really, is bad enough,” returned Miss Pross, “but better. Yes, I am very
much put out.”
“May I ask the cause?”
“I don’t want dozens of people who are not at all worthy of Ladybird, to
come here looking after her,” said Miss Pross.
“ dozens come for that purpose?”
“Hundreds,” said Miss Pross.
It was characteristic of this lady (as of some other people before her
time and since) that whenever her original proposition was questioned, she
exaggerated it.
“Dear me!” said Mr. Lorry, as the safest remark he could think of.
“I have lived with the darling—or the darling has lived with me, and
paid me for it; which she certainly should never have done, you may take
your affidavit, if I could have afforded to keep either myself or her for
nothing—since she was ten years old. And it’s really very hard,”
said Miss Pross.
Not seeing with precision what was very hard, Mr. Lorry shook his head;
using that important part of himself as a sort of fairy cloak that would
fit anything.
“All sorts of people who are not in the least degree worthy of the pet,
are always turning up,” said Miss Pross. “When you began it—”
“ began it, Miss Pross?”
“Didn’t you? Who brought her father to life?”
“Oh! If was beginning it—” said Mr. Lorry.
“It wasn’t ending it, I suppose? I say, when you began it, it was hard
enough; not that I have any fault to find with Doctor Manette, except that
he is not worthy of such a daughter, which is no imputation on him, for it
was not to be expected that anybody should be, under any circumstances.
But it really is doubly and trebly hard to have crowds and multitudes of
people turning up after him (I could have forgiven him), to take
Ladybird’s affections away from me.”
Mr. Lorry knew Miss Pross to be very jealous, but he also knew her by this
time to be, beneath the service of her eccentricity, one of those
unselfish creatures—found only among women—who will, for pure
love and admiration, bind themselves willing slaves, to youth when they
have lost it, to beauty that they never had, to accomplishments that they
were never fortunate enough to gain, to bright hopes that never shone upon
their own sombre lives. He knew enough of the world to know that there is
nothing in it better than the faithful service of the heart; so rendered
and so free from any mercenary taint, he had such an exalted respect for
it, that in the retributive arrangements made by his own mind—we all
make such arrangements, more or less—he stationed Miss Pross much
nearer to the lower Angels than many ladies immeasurably better got up
both by Nature and Art, who had balances at Tellson’s.
“There never was, nor will be, but one man worthy of Ladybird,” said Miss
Pross; “and that was my brother Solomon, if he hadn’t made a mistake in
life.”
Here again: Mr. Lorry’s inquiries into Miss Pross’s personal history had
established the fact that her brother Solomon was a heartless scoundrel
who had stripped her of everything she possessed, as a stake to speculate
with, and had abandoned her in her poverty for evermore, with no touch of
compunction. Miss Pross’s fidelity of belief in Solomon (deducting a mere
trifle for this slight mistake) was quite a serious matter with Mr. Lorry,
and had its weight in his good opinion of her.
“As we happen to be alone for the moment, and are both people of
business,” he said, when they had got back to the drawing-room and had sat
down there in friendly relations, “let me ask you—does the Doctor,
in talking with Lucie, never refer to the shoemaking time, yet?”
“Never.”
“And yet keeps that bench and those tools beside him?”
“Ah!” returned Miss Pross, shaking her head. “But I don’t say he don’t
refer to it within himself.”
“Do you believe that he thinks of it much?”
“I do,” said Miss Pross.
“Do you imagine—” Mr. Lorry had begun, when Miss Pross took him up
short with:
“Never imagine anything. Have no imagination at all.”
“I stand corrected; do you suppose—you go so far as to suppose,
sometimes?”
“Now and then,” said Miss Pross.
“Do you suppose,” Mr. Lorry went on, with a laughing twinkle in his bright
eye, as it looked kindly at her, “that Doctor Manette has any theory of
his own, preserved through all those years, relative to the cause of his
being so oppressed; perhaps, even to the name of his oppressor?”
“I don’t suppose anything about it but what Ladybird tells me.”
“And that is—?”
“That she thinks he has.”
“Now don’t be angry at my asking all these questions; because I am a mere
dull man of business, and you are a woman of business.”
“Dull?” Miss Pross inquired, with placidity.
Rather wishing his modest adjective away, Mr. Lorry replied, “No, no, no.
Surely not. To return to business:—Is it not remarkable that Doctor
Manette, unquestionably innocent of any crime as we are all well assured
he is, should never touch upon that question? I will not say with me,
though he had business relations with me many years ago, and we are now
intimate; I will say with the fair daughter to whom he is so devotedly
attached, and who is so devotedly attached to him? Believe me, Miss Pross,
I don’t approach the topic with you, out of curiosity, but out of zealous
interest.”
“Well! To the best of my understanding, and bad’s the best, you’ll tell
me,” said Miss Pross, softened by the tone of the apology, “he is afraid
of the whole subject.”
“Afraid?”
“It’s plain enough, I should think, why he may be. It’s a dreadful
remembrance. Besides that, his loss of himself grew out of it. Not knowing
how he lost himself, or how he recovered himself, he may never feel
certain of not losing himself again. That alone wouldn’t make the subject
pleasant, I should think.”
It was a profounder remark than Mr. Lorry had looked for. “True,” said he,
“and fearful to reflect upon. Yet, a doubt lurks in my mind, Miss Pross,
whether it is good for Doctor Manette to have that suppression always shut
up within him. Indeed, it is this doubt and the uneasiness it sometimes
causes me that has led me to our present confidence.”
“Can’t be helped,” said Miss Pross, shaking her head. “Touch that string,
and he instantly changes for the worse. Better leave it alone. In short,
must leave it alone, like or no like. Sometimes, he gets up in the dead of
the night, and will be heard, by us overhead there, walking up and down,
walking up and down, in his room. Ladybird has learnt to know then that
his mind is walking up and down, walking up and down, in his old prison.
She hurries to him, and they go on together, walking up and down, walking
up and down, until he is composed. But he never says a word of the true
reason of his restlessness, to her, and she finds it best not to hint at
it to him. In silence they go walking up and down together, walking up and
down together, till her love and company have brought him to himself.”
Notwithstanding Miss Pross’s denial of her own imagination, there was a
perception of the pain of being monotonously haunted by one sad idea, in
her repetition of the phrase, walking up and down, which testified to her
possessing such a thing.
The corner has been mentioned as a wonderful corner for echoes; it had
begun to echo so resoundingly to the tread of coming feet, that it seemed
as though the very mention of that weary pacing to and fro had set it
going.
“Here they are!” said Miss Pross, rising to break up the conference; “and
now we shall have hundreds of people pretty soon!”
It was such a curious corner in its acoustical properties, such a peculiar
Ear of a place, that as Mr. Lorry stood at the open window, looking for
the father and daughter whose steps he heard, he fancied they would never
approach. Not only would the echoes die away, as though the steps had
gone; but, echoes of other steps that never came would be heard in their
stead, and would die away for good when they seemed close at hand.
However, father and daughter did at last appear, and Miss Pross was ready
at the street door to receive them.
Miss Pross was a pleasant sight, albeit wild, and red, and grim, taking
off her darling’s bonnet when she came up-stairs, and touching it up with
the ends of her handkerchief, and blowing the dust off it, and folding her
mantle ready for laying by, and smoothing her rich hair with as much pride
as she could possibly have taken in her own hair if she had been the
vainest and handsomest of women. Her darling was a pleasant sight too,
embracing her and thanking her, and protesting against her taking so much
trouble for her—which last she only dared to do playfully, or Miss
Pross, sorely hurt, would have retired to her own chamber and cried. The
Doctor was a pleasant sight too, looking on at them, and telling Miss
Pross how she spoilt Lucie, in accents and with eyes that had as much
spoiling in them as Miss Pross had, and would have had more if it were
possible. Mr. Lorry was a pleasant sight too, beaming at all this in his
little wig, and thanking his bachelor stars for having lighted him in his
declining years to a Home. But, no Hundreds of people came to see the
sights, and Mr. Lorry looked in vain for the fulfilment of Miss Pross’s
prediction.
Dinner-time, and still no Hundreds of people. In the arrangements of the
little household, Miss Pross took charge of the lower regions, and always
acquitted herself marvellously. Her dinners, of a very modest quality,
were so well cooked and so well served, and so neat in their contrivances,
half English and half French, that nothing could be better. Miss Pross’s
friendship being of the thoroughly practical kind, she had ravaged Soho
and the adjacent provinces, in search of impoverished French, who, tempted
by shillings and half-crowns, would impart culinary mysteries to her. From
these decayed sons and daughters of Gaul, she had acquired such wonderful
arts, that the woman and girl who formed the staff of domestics regarded
her as quite a Sorceress, or Cinderella’s Godmother: who would send out
for a fowl, a rabbit, a vegetable or two from the garden, and change them
into anything she pleased.
On Sundays, Miss Pross dined at the Doctor’s table, but on other days
persisted in taking her meals at unknown periods, either in the lower
regions, or in her own room on the second floor—a blue chamber, to
which no one but her Ladybird ever gained admittance. On this occasion,
Miss Pross, responding to Ladybird’s pleasant face and pleasant efforts to
please her, unbent exceedingly; so the dinner was very pleasant, too.
It was an oppressive day, and, after dinner, Lucie proposed that the wine
should be carried out under the plane-tree, and they should sit there in
the air. As everything turned upon her, and revolved about her, they went
out under the plane-tree, and she carried the wine down for the special
benefit of Mr. Lorry. She had installed herself, some time before, as Mr.
Lorry’s cup-bearer; and while they sat under the plane-tree, talking, she
kept his glass replenished. Mysterious backs and ends of houses peeped at
them as they talked, and the plane-tree whispered to them in its own way
above their heads.
Still, the Hundreds of people did not present themselves. Mr. Darnay
presented himself while they were sitting under the plane-tree, but he was
only One.
Doctor Manette received him kindly, and so did Lucie. But, Miss Pross
suddenly became afflicted with a twitching in the head and body, and
retired into the house. She was not unfrequently the victim of this
disorder, and she called it, in familiar conversation, “a fit of the
jerks.”
The Doctor was in his best condition, and looked specially young. The
resemblance between him and Lucie was very strong at such times, and as
they sat side by side, she leaning on his shoulder, and he resting his arm
on the back of her chair, it was very agreeable to trace the likeness.
He had been talking all day, on many subjects, and with unusual vivacity.
“Pray, Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Darnay, as they sat under the plane-tree—and
he said it in the natural pursuit of the topic in hand, which happened to
be the old buildings of London—“have you seen much of the Tower?”
“Lucie and I have been there; but only casually. We have seen enough of
it, to know that it teems with interest; little more.”
“ have been there, as you remember,” said Darnay, with a smile,
though reddening a little angrily, “in another character, and not in a
character that gives facilities for seeing much of it. They told me a
curious thing when I was there.”
“What was that?” Lucie asked.
“In making some alterations, the workmen came upon an old dungeon, which
had been, for many years, built up and forgotten. Every stone of its inner
wall was covered by inscriptions which had been carved by prisoners—dates,
names, complaints, and prayers. Upon a corner stone in an angle of the
wall, one prisoner, who seemed to have gone to execution, had cut as his
last work, three letters. They were done with some very poor instrument,
and hurriedly, with an unsteady hand. At first, they were read as D. I.
C.; but, on being more carefully examined, the last letter was found to be
G. There was no record or legend of any prisoner with those initials, and
many fruitless guesses were made what the name could have been. At length,
it was suggested that the letters were not initials, but the complete
word, . The floor was examined very carefully under the inscription,
and, in the earth beneath a stone, or tile, or some fragment of paving,
were found the ashes of a paper, mingled with the ashes of a small
leathern case or bag. What the unknown prisoner had written will never be
read, but he had written something, and hidden it away to keep it from the
gaoler.”
“My father,” exclaimed Lucie, “you are ill!”
He had suddenly started up, with his hand to his head. His manner and his
look quite terrified them all.
“No, my dear, not ill. There are large drops of rain falling, and they
made me start. We had better go in.”
He recovered himself almost instantly. Rain was really falling in large
drops, and he showed the back of his hand with rain-drops on it. But, he
said not a single word in reference to the discovery that had been told
of, and, as they went into the house, the business eye of Mr. Lorry either
detected, or fancied it detected, on his face, as it turned towards
Charles Darnay, the same singular look that had been upon it when it
turned towards him in the passages of the Court House.
He recovered himself so quickly, however, that Mr. Lorry had doubts of his
business eye. The arm of the golden giant in the hall was not more steady
than he was, when he stopped under it to remark to them that he was not
yet proof against slight surprises (if he ever would be), and that the
rain had startled him.
Tea-time, and Miss Pross making tea, with another fit of the jerks upon
her, and yet no Hundreds of people. Mr. Carton had lounged in, but he made
only Two.
The night was so very sultry, that although they sat with doors and
windows open, they were overpowered by heat. When the tea-table was done
with, they all moved to one of the windows, and looked out into the heavy
twilight. Lucie sat by her father; Darnay sat beside her; Carton leaned
against a window. The curtains were long and white, and some of the
thunder-gusts that whirled into the corner, caught them up to the ceiling,
and waved them like spectral wings.
“The rain-drops are still falling, large, heavy, and few,” said Doctor
Manette. “It comes slowly.”
“It comes surely,” said Carton.
They spoke low, as people watching and waiting mostly do; as people in a
dark room, watching and waiting for Lightning, always do.
There was a great hurry in the streets of people speeding away to get
shelter before the storm broke; the wonderful corner for echoes resounded
with the echoes of footsteps coming and going, yet not a footstep was
there.
“A multitude of people, and yet a solitude!” said Darnay, when they had
listened for a while.
“Is it not impressive, Mr. Darnay?” asked Lucie. “Sometimes, I have sat
here of an evening, until I have fancied—but even the shade of a
foolish fancy makes me shudder to-night, when all is so black and solemn—”
“Let us shudder too. We may know what it is.”
“It will seem nothing to you. Such whims are only impressive as we
originate them, I think; they are not to be communicated. I have sometimes
sat alone here of an evening, listening, until I have made the echoes out
to be the echoes of all the footsteps that are coming by-and-bye into our
lives.”
“There is a great crowd coming one day into our lives, if that be so,”
Sydney Carton struck in, in his moody way.
The footsteps were incessant, and the hurry of them became more and more
rapid. The corner echoed and re-echoed with the tread of feet; some, as it
seemed, under the windows; some, as it seemed, in the room; some coming,
some going, some breaking off, some stopping altogether; all in the
distant streets, and not one within sight.
“Are all these footsteps destined to come to all of us, Miss Manette, or
are we to divide them among us?”
“I don’t know, Mr. Darnay; I told you it was a foolish fancy, but you
asked for it. When I have yielded myself to it, I have been alone, and
then I have imagined them the footsteps of the people who are to come into
my life, and my father’s.”
“I take them into mine!” said Carton. “ ask no questions and make
no stipulations. There is a great crowd bearing down upon us, Miss
Manette, and I see them—by the Lightning.” He added the last words,
after there had been a vivid flash which had shown him lounging in the
window.
“And I hear them!” he added again, after a peal of thunder. “Here they
come, fast, fierce, and furious!”
It was the rush and roar of rain that he typified, and it stopped him, for
no voice could be heard in it. A memorable storm of thunder and lightning
broke with that sweep of water, and there was not a moment’s interval in
crash, and fire, and rain, until after the moon rose at midnight.
The great bell of Saint Paul’s was striking one in the cleared air, when
Mr. Lorry, escorted by Jerry, high-booted and bearing a lantern, set forth
on his return-passage to Clerkenwell. There were solitary patches of road
on the way between Soho and Clerkenwell, and Mr. Lorry, mindful of
foot-pads, always retained Jerry for this service: though it was usually
performed a good two hours earlier.
“What a night it has been! Almost a night, Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry, “to
bring the dead out of their graves.”
“I never see the night myself, master—nor yet I don’t expect to—what
would do that,” answered Jerry.
“Good night, Mr. Carton,” said the man of business. “Good night, Mr.
Darnay. Shall we ever see such a night again, together!”
Perhaps. Perhaps, see the great crowd of people with its rush and roar,
bearing down upon them, too.
CHAPTER VII.<br />Monseigneur in Town
Monseigneur, one of the great lords in power at the Court, held his
fortnightly reception in his grand hotel in Paris. Monseigneur was in his
inner room, his sanctuary of sanctuaries, the Holiest of Holiests to the
crowd of worshippers in the suite of rooms without. Monseigneur was about
to take his chocolate. Monseigneur could swallow a great many things with
ease, and was by some few sullen minds supposed to be rather rapidly
swallowing France; but, his morning’s chocolate could not so much as get
into the throat of Monseigneur, without the aid of four strong men besides
the Cook.
Yes. It took four men, all four ablaze with gorgeous decoration, and the
Chief of them unable to exist with fewer than two gold watches in his
pocket, emulative of the noble and chaste fashion set by Monseigneur, to
conduct the happy chocolate to Monseigneur’s lips. One lacquey carried the
chocolate-pot into the sacred presence; a second, milled and frothed the
chocolate with the little instrument he bore for that function; a third,
presented the favoured napkin; a fourth (he of the two gold watches),
poured the chocolate out. It was impossible for Monseigneur to dispense
with one of these attendants on the chocolate and hold his high place
under the admiring Heavens. Deep would have been the blot upon his
escutcheon if his chocolate had been ignobly waited on by only three men;
he must have died of two.
Monseigneur had been out at a little supper last night, where the Comedy
and the Grand Opera were charmingly represented. Monseigneur was out at a
little supper most nights, with fascinating company. So polite and so
impressible was Monseigneur, that the Comedy and the Grand Opera had far
more influence with him in the tiresome articles of state affairs and
state secrets, than the needs of all France. A happy circumstance for
France, as the like always is for all countries similarly favoured!—always
was for England (by way of example), in the regretted days of the merry
Stuart who sold it.
Monseigneur had one truly noble idea of general public business, which
was, to let everything go on in its own way; of particular public
business, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea that it must all go
his way—tend to his own power and pocket. Of his pleasures, general
and particular, Monseigneur had the other truly noble idea, that the world
was made for them. The text of his order (altered from the original by
only a pronoun, which is not much) ran: “The earth and the fulness thereof
are mine, saith Monseigneur.”
Yet, Monseigneur had slowly found that vulgar embarrassments crept into
his affairs, both private and public; and he had, as to both classes of
affairs, allied himself perforce with a Farmer-General. As to finances
public, because Monseigneur could not make anything at all of them, and
must consequently let them out to somebody who could; as to finances
private, because Farmer-Generals were rich, and Monseigneur, after
generations of great luxury and expense, was growing poor. Hence
Monseigneur had taken his sister from a convent, while there was yet time
to ward off the impending veil, the cheapest garment she could wear, and
had bestowed her as a prize upon a very rich Farmer-General, poor in
family. Which Farmer-General, carrying an appropriate cane with a golden
apple on the top of it, was now among the company in the outer rooms, much
prostrated before by mankind—always excepting superior mankind of
the blood of Monseigneur, who, his own wife included, looked down upon him
with the loftiest contempt.
A sumptuous man was the Farmer-General. Thirty horses stood in his
stables, twenty-four male domestics sat in his halls, six body-women
waited on his wife. As one who pretended to do nothing but plunder and
forage where he could, the Farmer-General—howsoever his matrimonial
relations conduced to social morality—was at least the greatest
reality among the personages who attended at the hotel of Monseigneur that
day.
For, the rooms, though a beautiful scene to look at, and adorned with
every device of decoration that the taste and skill of the time could
achieve, were, in truth, not a sound business; considered with any
reference to the scarecrows in the rags and nightcaps elsewhere (and not
so far off, either, but that the watching towers of Notre Dame, almost
equidistant from the two extremes, could see them both), they would have
been an exceedingly uncomfortable business—if that could have been
anybody’s business, at the house of Monseigneur. Military officers
destitute of military knowledge; naval officers with no idea of a ship;
civil officers without a notion of affairs; brazen ecclesiastics, of the
worst world worldly, with sensual eyes, loose tongues, and looser lives;
all totally unfit for their several callings, all lying horribly in
pretending to belong to them, but all nearly or remotely of the order of
Monseigneur, and therefore foisted on all public employments from which
anything was to be got; these were to be told off by the score and the
score. People not immediately connected with Monseigneur or the State, yet
equally unconnected with anything that was real, or with lives passed in
travelling by any straight road to any true earthly end, were no less
abundant. Doctors who made great fortunes out of dainty remedies for
imaginary disorders that never existed, smiled upon their courtly patients
in the ante-chambers of Monseigneur. Projectors who had discovered every
kind of remedy for the little evils with which the State was touched,
except the remedy of setting to work in earnest to root out a single sin,
poured their distracting babble into any ears they could lay hold of, at
the reception of Monseigneur. Unbelieving Philosophers who were
remodelling the world with words, and making card-towers of Babel to scale
the skies with, talked with Unbelieving Chemists who had an eye on the
transmutation of metals, at this wonderful gathering accumulated by
Monseigneur. Exquisite gentlemen of the finest breeding, which was at that
remarkable time—and has been since—to be known by its fruits
of indifference to every natural subject of human interest, were in the
most exemplary state of exhaustion, at the hotel of Monseigneur. Such
homes had these various notabilities left behind them in the fine world of
Paris, that the spies among the assembled devotees of Monseigneur—forming
a goodly half of the polite company—would have found it hard to
discover among the angels of that sphere one solitary wife, who, in her
manners and appearance, owned to being a Mother. Indeed, except for the
mere act of bringing a troublesome creature into this world—which
does not go far towards the realisation of the name of mother—there
was no such thing known to the fashion. Peasant women kept the
unfashionable babies close, and brought them up, and charming grandmammas
of sixty dressed and supped as at twenty.
The leprosy of unreality disfigured every human creature in attendance
upon Monseigneur. In the outermost room were half a dozen exceptional
people who had had, for a few years, some vague misgiving in them that
things in general were going rather wrong. As a promising way of setting
them right, half of the half-dozen had become members of a fantastic sect
of Convulsionists, and were even then considering within themselves
whether they should foam, rage, roar, and turn cataleptic on the spot—thereby
setting up a highly intelligible finger-post to the Future, for
Monseigneur’s guidance. Besides these Dervishes, were other three who had
rushed into another sect, which mended matters with a jargon about “the
Centre of Truth:” holding that Man had got out of the Centre of Truth—which
did not need much demonstration—but had not got out of the
Circumference, and that he was to be kept from flying out of the
Circumference, and was even to be shoved back into the Centre, by fasting
and seeing of spirits. Among these, accordingly, much discoursing with
spirits went on—and it did a world of good which never became
manifest.
But, the comfort was, that all the company at the grand hotel of
Monseigneur were perfectly dressed. If the Day of Judgment had only been
ascertained to be a dress day, everybody there would have been eternally
correct. Such frizzling and powdering and sticking up of hair, such
delicate complexions artificially preserved and mended, such gallant
swords to look at, and such delicate honour to the sense of smell, would
surely keep anything going, for ever and ever. The exquisite gentlemen of
the finest breeding wore little pendent trinkets that chinked as they
languidly moved; these golden fetters rang like precious little bells; and
what with that ringing, and with the rustle of silk and brocade and fine
linen, there was a flutter in the air that fanned Saint Antoine and his
devouring hunger far away.
Dress was the one unfailing talisman and charm used for keeping all things
in their places. Everybody was dressed for a Fancy Ball that was never to
leave off. From the Palace of the Tuileries, through Monseigneur and the
whole Court, through the Chambers, the Tribunals of Justice, and all
society (except the scarecrows), the Fancy Ball descended to the Common
Executioner: who, in pursuance of the charm, was required to officiate
“frizzled, powdered, in a gold-laced coat, pumps, and white silk
stockings.” At the gallows and the wheel—the axe was a rarity—Monsieur
Paris, as it was the episcopal mode among his brother Professors of the
provinces, Monsieur Orleans, and the rest, to call him, presided in this
dainty dress. And who among the company at Monseigneur’s reception in that
seventeen hundred and eightieth year of our Lord, could possibly doubt,
that a system rooted in a frizzled hangman, powdered, gold-laced, pumped,
and white-silk stockinged, would see the very stars out!
Monseigneur having eased his four men of their burdens and taken his
chocolate, caused the doors of the Holiest of Holiests to be thrown open,
and issued forth. Then, what submission, what cringing and fawning, what
servility, what abject humiliation! As to bowing down in body and spirit,
nothing in that way was left for Heaven—which may have been one
among other reasons why the worshippers of Monseigneur never troubled it.
Bestowing a word of promise here and a smile there, a whisper on one happy
slave and a wave of the hand on another, Monseigneur affably passed
through his rooms to the remote region of the Circumference of Truth.
There, Monseigneur turned, and came back again, and so in due course of
time got himself shut up in his sanctuary by the chocolate sprites, and
was seen no more.
The show being over, the flutter in the air became quite a little storm,
and the precious little bells went ringing downstairs. There was soon but
one person left of all the crowd, and he, with his hat under his arm and
his snuff-box in his hand, slowly passed among the mirrors on his way out.
“I devote you,” said this person, stopping at the last door on his way,
and turning in the direction of the sanctuary, “to the Devil!”
With that, he shook the snuff from his fingers as if he had shaken the
dust from his feet, and quietly walked downstairs.
He was a man of about sixty, handsomely dressed, haughty in manner, and
with a face like a fine mask. A face of a transparent paleness; every
feature in it clearly defined; one set expression on it. The nose,
beautifully formed otherwise, was very slightly pinched at the top of each
nostril. In those two compressions, or dints, the only little change that
the face ever showed, resided. They persisted in changing colour
sometimes, and they would be occasionally dilated and contracted by
something like a faint pulsation; then, they gave a look of treachery, and
cruelty, to the whole countenance. Examined with attention, its capacity
of helping such a look was to be found in the line of the mouth, and the
lines of the orbits of the eyes, being much too horizontal and thin;
still, in the effect of the face made, it was a handsome face, and a
remarkable one.
Its owner went downstairs into the courtyard, got into his carriage, and
drove away. Not many people had talked with him at the reception; he had
stood in a little space apart, and Monseigneur might have been warmer in
his manner. It appeared, under the circumstances, rather agreeable to him
to see the common people dispersed before his horses, and often barely
escaping from being run down. His man drove as if he were charging an
enemy, and the furious recklessness of the man brought no check into the
face, or to the lips, of the master. The complaint had sometimes made
itself audible, even in that deaf city and dumb age, that, in the narrow
streets without footways, the fierce patrician custom of hard driving
endangered and maimed the mere vulgar in a barbarous manner. But, few
cared enough for that to think of it a second time, and, in this matter,
as in all others, the common wretches were left to get out of their
difficulties as they could.
With a wild rattle and clatter, and an inhuman abandonment of
consideration not easy to be understood in these days, the carriage dashed
through streets and swept round corners, with women screaming before it,
and men clutching each other and clutching children out of its way. At
last, swooping at a street corner by a fountain, one of its wheels came to
a sickening little jolt, and there was a loud cry from a number of voices,
and the horses reared and plunged.
But for the latter inconvenience, the carriage probably would not have
stopped; carriages were often known to drive on, and leave their wounded
behind, and why not? But the frightened valet had got down in a hurry, and
there were twenty hands at the horses’ bridles.
<br />
“What has gone wrong?” said Monsieur, calmly looking out.
<br />
A tall man in a nightcap had caught up a bundle from among the feet of the
horses, and had laid it on the basement of the fountain, and was down in
the mud and wet, howling over it like a wild animal.
<br />
“Pardon, Monsieur the Marquis!” said a ragged and submissive man, “it is a
child.”
<br />
“Why does he make that abominable noise? Is it his child?”
<br />
“Excuse me, Monsieur the Marquis—it is a pity—yes.”
<br />
The fountain was a little removed; for the street opened, where it was,
into a space some ten or twelve yards square. As the tall man suddenly got
up from the ground, and came running at the carriage, Monsieur the Marquis
clapped his hand for an instant on his sword-hilt.
<br />
“Killed!” shrieked the man, in wild desperation, extending both arms at
their length above his head, and staring at him. “Dead!”
<br />
The people closed round, and looked at Monsieur the Marquis. There was
nothing revealed by the many eyes that looked at him but watchfulness and
eagerness; there was no visible menacing or anger. Neither did the people
say anything; after the first cry, they had been silent, and they remained
so. The voice of the submissive man who had spoken, was flat and tame in
its extreme submission. Monsieur the Marquis ran his eyes over them all,
as if they had been mere rats come out of their holes.
<br />
He took out his purse.
<br />
“It is extraordinary to me,” said he, “that you people cannot take care of
yourselves and your children. One or the other of you is for ever in the
way. How do I know what injury you have done my horses. See! Give him
that.”
<br />
He threw out a gold coin for the valet to pick up, and all the heads
craned forward that all the eyes might look down at it as it fell. The
tall man called out again with a most unearthly cry, “Dead!”
<br />
He was arrested by the quick arrival of another man, for whom the rest
made way. On seeing him, the miserable creature fell upon his shoulder,
sobbing and crying, and pointing to the fountain, where some women were
stooping over the motionless bundle, and moving gently about it. They were
as silent, however, as the men.
<br />
“I know all, I know all,” said the last comer. “Be a brave man, my
Gaspard! It is better for the poor little plaything to die so, than to
live. It has died in a moment without pain. Could it have lived an hour as
happily?”
<br />
“You are a philosopher, you there,” said the Marquis, smiling. “How do
they call you?”
<br />
“They call me Defarge.”
<br />
“Of what trade?”
<br />
“Monsieur the Marquis, vendor of wine.”
<br />
“Pick up that, philosopher and vendor of wine,” said the Marquis, throwing
him another gold coin, “and spend it as you will. The horses there; are
they right?”
<br />
Without deigning to look at the assemblage a second time, Monsieur the
Marquis leaned back in his seat, and was just being driven away with the
air of a gentleman who had accidentally broke some common thing, and had
paid for it, and could afford to pay for it; when his ease was suddenly
disturbed by a coin flying into his carriage, and ringing on its floor.
<br />
“Hold!” said Monsieur the Marquis. “Hold the horses! Who threw that?”
<br />
He looked to the spot where Defarge the vendor of wine had stood, a moment
before; but the wretched father was grovelling on his face on the pavement
in that spot, and the figure that stood beside him was the figure of a
dark stout woman, knitting.
<br />
“You dogs!” said the Marquis, but smoothly, and with an unchanged front,
except as to the spots on his nose: “I would ride over any of you very
willingly, and exterminate you from the earth. If I knew which rascal
threw at the carriage, and if that brigand were sufficiently near it, he
should be crushed under the wheels.”
<br />
So cowed was their condition, and so long and hard their experience of
what such a man could do to them, within the law and beyond it, that not a
voice, or a hand, or even an eye was raised. Among the men, not one. But
the woman who stood knitting looked up steadily, and looked the Marquis in
the face. It was not for his dignity to notice it; his contemptuous eyes
passed over her, and over all the other rats; and he leaned back in his
seat again, and gave the word “Go on!”
<br />
He was driven on, and other carriages came whirling by in quick
succession; the Minister, the State-Projector, the Farmer-General, the
Doctor, the Lawyer, the Ecclesiastic, the Grand Opera, the Comedy, the
whole Fancy Ball in a bright continuous flow, came whirling by. The rats
had crept out of their holes to look on, and they remained looking on for
hours; soldiers and police often passing between them and the spectacle,
and making a barrier behind which they slunk, and through which they
peeped. The father had long ago taken up his bundle and bidden himself
away with it, when the women who had tended the bundle while it lay on the
base of the fountain, sat there watching the running of the water and the
rolling of the Fancy Ball—when the one woman who had stood
conspicuous, knitting, still knitted on with the steadfastness of Fate.
The water of the fountain ran, the swift river ran, the day ran into
evening, so much life in the city ran into death according to rule, time
and tide waited for no man, the rats were sleeping close together in their
dark holes again, the Fancy Ball was lighted up at supper, all things ran
their course.
CHAPTER VIII.<br />Monseigneur in the Country
A beautiful landscape, with the corn bright in it, but not abundant.
Patches of poor rye where corn should have been, patches of poor peas and
beans, patches of most coarse vegetable substitutes for wheat. On
inanimate nature, as on the men and women who cultivated it, a prevalent
tendency towards an appearance of vegetating unwillingly—a dejected
disposition to give up, and wither away.
Monsieur the Marquis in his travelling carriage (which might have been
lighter), conducted by four post-horses and two postilions, fagged up a
steep hill. A blush on the countenance of Monsieur the Marquis was no
impeachment of his high breeding; it was not from within; it was
occasioned by an external circumstance beyond his control—the
setting sun.
The sunset struck so brilliantly into the travelling carriage when it
gained the hill-top, that its occupant was steeped in crimson. “It will
die out,” said Monsieur the Marquis, glancing at his hands, “directly.”
In effect, the sun was so low that it dipped at the moment. When the heavy
drag had been adjusted to the wheel, and the carriage slid down hill, with
a cinderous smell, in a cloud of dust, the red glow departed quickly; the
sun and the Marquis going down together, there was no glow left when the
drag was taken off.
But, there remained a broken country, bold and open, a little village at
the bottom of the hill, a broad sweep and rise beyond it, a church-tower,
a windmill, a forest for the chase, and a crag with a fortress on it used
as a prison. Round upon all these darkening objects as the night drew on,
the Marquis looked, with the air of one who was coming near home.
The village had its one poor street, with its poor brewery, poor tannery,
poor tavern, poor stable-yard for relays of post-horses, poor fountain,
all usual poor appointments. It had its poor people too. All its people
were poor, and many of them were sitting at their doors, shredding spare
onions and the like for supper, while many were at the fountain, washing
leaves, and grasses, and any such small yieldings of the earth that could
be eaten. Expressive signs of what made them poor, were not wanting; the
tax for the state, the tax for the church, the tax for the lord, tax local
and tax general, were to be paid here and to be paid there, according to
solemn inscription in the little village, until the wonder was, that there
was any village left unswallowed.
Few children were to be seen, and no dogs. As to the men and women, their
choice on earth was stated in the prospect—Life on the lowest terms
that could sustain it, down in the little village under the mill; or
captivity and Death in the dominant prison on the crag.
Heralded by a courier in advance, and by the cracking of his postilions’
whips, which twined snake-like about their heads in the evening air, as if
he came attended by the Furies, Monsieur the Marquis drew up in his
travelling carriage at the posting-house gate. It was hard by the
fountain, and the peasants suspended their operations to look at him. He
looked at them, and saw in them, without knowing it, the slow sure filing
down of misery-worn face and figure, that was to make the meagreness of
Frenchmen an English superstition which should survive the truth through
the best part of a hundred years.
Monsieur the Marquis cast his eyes over the submissive faces that drooped
before him, as the like of himself had drooped before Monseigneur of the
Court—only the difference was, that these faces drooped merely to
suffer and not to propitiate—when a grizzled mender of the roads
joined the group.
“Bring me hither that fellow!” said the Marquis to the courier.
The fellow was brought, cap in hand, and the other fellows closed round to
look and listen, in the manner of the people at the Paris fountain.
“I passed you on the road?”
“Monseigneur, it is true. I had the honour of being passed on the road.”
“Coming up the hill, and at the top of the hill, both?”
“Monseigneur, it is true.”
“What did you look at, so fixedly?”
“Monseigneur, I looked at the man.”
He stooped a little, and with his tattered blue cap pointed under the
carriage. All his fellows stooped to look under the carriage.
“What man, pig? And why look there?”
“Pardon, Monseigneur; he swung by the chain of the shoe—the drag.”
“Who?” demanded the traveller.
“Monseigneur, the man.”
“May the Devil carry away these idiots! How do you call the man? You know
all the men of this part of the country. Who was he?”
“Your clemency, Monseigneur! He was not of this part of the country. Of
all the days of my life, I never saw him.”
“Swinging by the chain? To be suffocated?”
“With your gracious permission, that was the wonder of it, Monseigneur.
His head hanging over—like this!”
He turned himself sideways to the carriage, and leaned back, with his face
thrown up to the sky, and his head hanging down; then recovered himself,
fumbled with his cap, and made a bow.
“What was he like?”
“Monseigneur, he was whiter than the miller. All covered with dust, white
as a spectre, tall as a spectre!”
The picture produced an immense sensation in the little crowd; but all
eyes, without comparing notes with other eyes, looked at Monsieur the
Marquis. Perhaps, to observe whether he had any spectre on his conscience.
“Truly, you did well,” said the Marquis, felicitously sensible that such
vermin were not to ruffle him, “to see a thief accompanying my carriage,
and not open that great mouth of yours. Bah! Put him aside, Monsieur
Gabelle!”
Monsieur Gabelle was the Postmaster, and some other taxing functionary
united; he had come out with great obsequiousness to assist at this
examination, and had held the examined by the drapery of his arm in an
official manner.
“Bah! Go aside!” said Monsieur Gabelle.
“Lay hands on this stranger if he seeks to lodge in your village to-night,
and be sure that his business is honest, Gabelle.”
“Monseigneur, I am flattered to devote myself to your orders.”
“Did he run away, fellow?—where is that Accursed?”
The accursed was already under the carriage with some half-dozen
particular friends, pointing out the chain with his blue cap. Some
half-dozen other particular friends promptly hauled him out, and presented
him breathless to Monsieur the Marquis.
“Did the man run away, Dolt, when we stopped for the drag?”
“Monseigneur, he precipitated himself over the hill-side, head first, as a
person plunges into the river.”
“See to it, Gabelle. Go on!”
The half-dozen who were peering at the chain were still among the wheels,
like sheep; the wheels turned so suddenly that they were lucky to save
their skins and bones; they had very little else to save, or they might
not have been so fortunate.
The burst with which the carriage started out of the village and up the
rise beyond, was soon checked by the steepness of the hill. Gradually, it
subsided to a foot pace, swinging and lumbering upward among the many
sweet scents of a summer night. The postilions, with a thousand gossamer
gnats circling about them in lieu of the Furies, quietly mended the points
to the lashes of their whips; the valet walked by the horses; the courier
was audible, trotting on ahead into the dull distance.
At the steepest point of the hill there was a little burial-ground, with a
Cross and a new large figure of Our Saviour on it; it was a poor figure in
wood, done by some inexperienced rustic carver, but he had studied the
figure from the life—his own life, maybe—for it was dreadfully
spare and thin.
To this distressful emblem of a great distress that had long been growing
worse, and was not at its worst, a woman was kneeling. She turned her head
as the carriage came up to her, rose quickly, and presented herself at the
carriage-door.
“It is you, Monseigneur! Monseigneur, a petition.”
With an exclamation of impatience, but with his unchangeable face,
Monseigneur looked out.
“How, then! What is it? Always petitions!”
“Monseigneur. For the love of the great God! My husband, the forester.”
“What of your husband, the forester? Always the same with you people. He
cannot pay something?”
“He has paid all, Monseigneur. He is dead.”
“Well! He is quiet. Can I restore him to you?”
“Alas, no, Monseigneur! But he lies yonder, under a little heap of poor
grass.”
“Well?”
“Monseigneur, there are so many little heaps of poor grass?”
“Again, well?”
She looked an old woman, but was young. Her manner was one of passionate
grief; by turns she clasped her veinous and knotted hands together with
wild energy, and laid one of them on the carriage-door—tenderly,
caressingly, as if it had been a human breast, and could be expected to
feel the appealing touch.
“Monseigneur, hear me! Monseigneur, hear my petition! My husband died of
want; so many die of want; so many more will die of want.”
“Again, well? Can I feed them?”
“Monseigneur, the good God knows; but I don’t ask it. My petition is, that
a morsel of stone or wood, with my husband’s name, may be placed over him
to show where he lies. Otherwise, the place will be quickly forgotten, it
will never be found when I am dead of the same malady, I shall be laid
under some other heap of poor grass. Monseigneur, they are so many, they
increase so fast, there is so much want. Monseigneur! Monseigneur!”
The valet had put her away from the door, the carriage had broken into a
brisk trot, the postilions had quickened the pace, she was left far
behind, and Monseigneur, again escorted by the Furies, was rapidly
diminishing the league or two of distance that remained between him and
his chateau.
The sweet scents of the summer night rose all around him, and rose, as the
rain falls, impartially, on the dusty, ragged, and toil-worn group at the
fountain not far away; to whom the mender of roads, with the aid of the
blue cap without which he was nothing, still enlarged upon his man like a
spectre, as long as they could bear it. By degrees, as they could bear no
more, they dropped off one by one, and lights twinkled in little
casements; which lights, as the casements darkened, and more stars came
out, seemed to have shot up into the sky instead of having been
extinguished.
The shadow of a large high-roofed house, and of many over-hanging trees,
was upon Monsieur the Marquis by that time; and the shadow was exchanged
for the light of a flambeau, as his carriage stopped, and the great door
of his chateau was opened to him.
“Monsieur Charles, whom I expect; is he arrived from England?”
“Monseigneur, not yet.”
CHAPTER IX.<br />The Gorgon’s Head
It was a heavy mass of building, that chateau of Monsieur the Marquis,
with a large stone courtyard before it, and two stone sweeps of staircase
meeting in a stone terrace before the principal door. A stony business
altogether, with heavy stone balustrades, and stone urns, and stone
flowers, and stone faces of men, and stone heads of lions, in all
directions. As if the Gorgon’s head had surveyed it, when it was finished,
two centuries ago.
Up the broad flight of shallow steps, Monsieur the Marquis, flambeau
preceded, went from his carriage, sufficiently disturbing the darkness to
elicit loud remonstrance from an owl in the roof of the great pile of
stable building away among the trees. All else was so quiet, that the
flambeau carried up the steps, and the other flambeau held at the great
door, burnt as if they were in a close room of state, instead of being in
the open night-air. Other sound than the owl’s voice there was none, save
the falling of a fountain into its stone basin; for, it was one of those
dark nights that hold their breath by the hour together, and then heave a
long low sigh, and hold their breath again.
The great door clanged behind him, and Monsieur the Marquis crossed a hall
grim with certain old boar-spears, swords, and knives of the chase;
grimmer with certain heavy riding-rods and riding-whips, of which many a
peasant, gone to his benefactor Death, had felt the weight when his lord
was angry.
Avoiding the larger rooms, which were dark and made fast for the night,
Monsieur the Marquis, with his flambeau-bearer going on before, went up
the staircase to a door in a corridor. This thrown open, admitted him to
his own private apartment of three rooms: his bed-chamber and two others.
High vaulted rooms with cool uncarpeted floors, great dogs upon the
hearths for the burning of wood in winter time, and all luxuries befitting
the state of a marquis in a luxurious age and country. The fashion of the
last Louis but one, of the line that was never to break—the
fourteenth Louis—was conspicuous in their rich furniture; but, it
was diversified by many objects that were illustrations of old pages in
the history of France.
A supper-table was laid for two, in the third of the rooms; a round room,
in one of the chateau’s four extinguisher-topped towers. A small lofty
room, with its window wide open, and the wooden jalousie-blinds closed, so
that the dark night only showed in slight horizontal lines of black,
alternating with their broad lines of stone colour.
“My nephew,” said the Marquis, glancing at the supper preparation; “they
said he was not arrived.”
Nor was he; but, he had been expected with Monseigneur.
“Ah! It is not probable he will arrive to-night; nevertheless, leave the
table as it is. I shall be ready in a quarter of an hour.”
In a quarter of an hour Monseigneur was ready, and sat down alone to his
sumptuous and choice supper. His chair was opposite to the window, and he
had taken his soup, and was raising his glass of Bordeaux to his lips,
when he put it down.
“What is that?” he calmly asked, looking with attention at the horizontal
lines of black and stone colour.
“Monseigneur? That?”
“Outside the blinds. Open the blinds.”
It was done.
“Well?”
“Monseigneur, it is nothing. The trees and the night are all that are
here.”
The servant who spoke, had thrown the blinds wide, had looked out into the
vacant darkness, and stood with that blank behind him, looking round for
instructions.
“Good,” said the imperturbable master. “Close them again.”
That was done too, and the Marquis went on with his supper. He was half
way through it, when he again stopped with his glass in his hand, hearing
the sound of wheels. It came on briskly, and came up to the front of the
chateau.
“Ask who is arrived.”
It was the nephew of Monseigneur. He had been some few leagues behind
Monseigneur, early in the afternoon. He had diminished the distance
rapidly, but not so rapidly as to come up with Monseigneur on the road. He
had heard of Monseigneur, at the posting-houses, as being before him.
He was to be told (said Monseigneur) that supper awaited him then and
there, and that he was prayed to come to it. In a little while he came. He
had been known in England as Charles Darnay.
Monseigneur received him in a courtly manner, but they did not shake
hands.
“You left Paris yesterday, sir?” he said to Monseigneur, as he took his
seat at table.
“Yesterday. And you?”
“I come direct.”
“From London?”
“Yes.”
“You have been a long time coming,” said the Marquis, with a smile.
“On the contrary; I come direct.”
“Pardon me! I mean, not a long time on the journey; a long time intending
the journey.”
“I have been detained by”—the nephew stopped a moment in his answer—“various
business.”
“Without doubt,” said the polished uncle.
So long as a servant was present, no other words passed between them. When
coffee had been served and they were alone together, the nephew, looking
at the uncle and meeting the eyes of the face that was like a fine mask,
opened a conversation.
“I have come back, sir, as you anticipate, pursuing the object that took
me away. It carried me into great and unexpected peril; but it is a sacred
object, and if it had carried me to death I hope it would have sustained
me.”
“Not to death,” said the uncle; “it is not necessary to say, to death.”
“I doubt, sir,” returned the nephew, “whether, if it had carried me to the
utmost brink of death, you would have cared to stop me there.”
The deepened marks in the nose, and the lengthening of the fine straight
lines in the cruel face, looked ominous as to that; the uncle made a
graceful gesture of protest, which was so clearly a slight form of good
breeding that it was not reassuring.
“Indeed, sir,” pursued the nephew, “for anything I know, you may have
expressly worked to give a more suspicious appearance to the suspicious
circumstances that surrounded me.”
“No, no, no,” said the uncle, pleasantly.
“But, however that may be,” resumed the nephew, glancing at him with deep
distrust, “I know that your diplomacy would stop me by any means, and
would know no scruple as to means.”
“My friend, I told you so,” said the uncle, with a fine pulsation in the
two marks. “Do me the favour to recall that I told you so, long ago.”
“I recall it.”
“Thank you,” said the Marquis—very sweetly indeed.
His tone lingered in the air, almost like the tone of a musical
instrument.
“In effect, sir,” pursued the nephew, “I believe it to be at once your bad
fortune, and my good fortune, that has kept me out of a prison in France
here.”
“I do not quite understand,” returned the uncle, sipping his coffee. “Dare
I ask you to explain?”
“I believe that if you were not in disgrace with the Court, and had not
been overshadowed by that cloud for years past, a letter de cachet would
have sent me to some fortress indefinitely.”
“It is possible,” said the uncle, with great calmness. “For the honour of
the family, I could even resolve to incommode you to that extent. Pray
excuse me!”
“I perceive that, happily for me, the Reception of the day before
yesterday was, as usual, a cold one,” observed the nephew.
“I would not say happily, my friend,” returned the uncle, with refined
politeness; “I would not be sure of that. A good opportunity for
consideration, surrounded by the advantages of solitude, might influence
your destiny to far greater advantage than you influence it for yourself.
But it is useless to discuss the question. I am, as you say, at a
disadvantage. These little instruments of correction, these gentle aids to
the power and honour of families, these slight favours that might so
incommode you, are only to be obtained now by interest and importunity.
They are sought by so many, and they are granted (comparatively) to so
few! It used not to be so, but France in all such things is changed for
the worse. Our not remote ancestors held the right of life and death over
the surrounding vulgar. From this room, many such dogs have been taken out
to be hanged; in the next room (my bedroom), one fellow, to our knowledge,
was poniarded on the spot for professing some insolent delicacy respecting
his daughter— daughter? We have lost many privileges; a
new philosophy has become the mode; and the assertion of our station, in
these days, might (I do not go so far as to say would, but might) cause us
real inconvenience. All very bad, very bad!”
The Marquis took a gentle little pinch of snuff, and shook his head; as
elegantly despondent as he could becomingly be of a country still
containing himself, that great means of regeneration.
“We have so asserted our station, both in the old time and in the modern
time also,” said the nephew, gloomily, “that I believe our name to be more
detested than any name in France.”
“Let us hope so,” said the uncle. “Detestation of the high is the
involuntary homage of the low.”
“There is not,” pursued the nephew, in his former tone, “a face I can look
at, in all this country round about us, which looks at me with any
deference on it but the dark deference of fear and slavery.”
“A compliment,” said the Marquis, “to the grandeur of the family, merited
by the manner in which the family has sustained its grandeur. Hah!” And he
took another gentle little pinch of snuff, and lightly crossed his legs.
But, when his nephew, leaning an elbow on the table, covered his eyes
thoughtfully and dejectedly with his hand, the fine mask looked at him
sideways with a stronger concentration of keenness, closeness, and
dislike, than was comportable with its wearer’s assumption of
indifference.
“Repression is the only lasting philosophy. The dark deference of fear and
slavery, my friend,” observed the Marquis, “will keep the dogs obedient to
the whip, as long as this roof,” looking up to it, “shuts out the sky.”
That might not be so long as the Marquis supposed. If a picture of the
chateau as it was to be a very few years hence, and of fifty like it as
they too were to be a very few years hence, could have been shown to him
that night, he might have been at a loss to claim his own from the
ghastly, fire-charred, plunder-wrecked rains. As for the roof he vaunted,
he might have found shutting out the sky in a new way—to
wit, for ever, from the eyes of the bodies into which its lead was fired,
out of the barrels of a hundred thousand muskets.
“Meanwhile,” said the Marquis, “I will preserve the honour and repose of
the family, if you will not. But you must be fatigued. Shall we terminate
our conference for the night?”
“A moment more.”
“An hour, if you please.”
“Sir,” said the nephew, “we have done wrong, and are reaping the fruits of
wrong.”
“ have done wrong?” repeated the Marquis, with an inquiring
smile, and delicately pointing, first to his nephew, then to himself.
“Our family; our honourable family, whose honour is of so much account to
both of us, in such different ways. Even in my father’s time, we did a
world of wrong, injuring every human creature who came between us and our
pleasure, whatever it was. Why need I speak of my father’s time, when it
is equally yours? Can I separate my father’s twin-brother, joint
inheritor, and next successor, from himself?”
“Death has done that!” said the Marquis.
“And has left me,” answered the nephew, “bound to a system that is
frightful to me, responsible for it, but powerless in it; seeking to
execute the last request of my dear mother’s lips, and obey the last look
of my dear mother’s eyes, which implored me to have mercy and to redress;
and tortured by seeking assistance and power in vain.”
“Seeking them from me, my nephew,” said the Marquis, touching him on the
breast with his forefinger—they were now standing by the hearth—“you
will for ever seek them in vain, be assured.”
Every fine straight line in the clear whiteness of his face, was cruelly,
craftily, and closely compressed, while he stood looking quietly at his
nephew, with his snuff-box in his hand. Once again he touched him on the
breast, as though his finger were the fine point of a small sword, with
which, in delicate finesse, he ran him through the body, and said,
“My friend, I will die, perpetuating the system under which I have lived.”
When he had said it, he took a culminating pinch of snuff, and put his box
in his pocket.
“Better to be a rational creature,” he added then, after ringing a small
bell on the table, “and accept your natural destiny. But you are lost,
Monsieur Charles, I see.”
“This property and France are lost to me,” said the nephew, sadly; “I
renounce them.”
“Are they both yours to renounce? France may be, but is the property? It
is scarcely worth mentioning; but, is it yet?”
“I had no intention, in the words I used, to claim it yet. If it passed to
me from you, to-morrow—”
“Which I have the vanity to hope is not probable.”
“—or twenty years hence—”
“You do me too much honour,” said the Marquis; “still, I prefer that
supposition.”
“—I would abandon it, and live otherwise and elsewhere. It is little
to relinquish. What is it but a wilderness of misery and ruin!”
“Hah!” said the Marquis, glancing round the luxurious room.
“To the eye it is fair enough, here; but seen in its integrity, under the
sky, and by the daylight, it is a crumbling tower of waste, mismanagement,
extortion, debt, mortgage, oppression, hunger, nakedness, and suffering.”
“Hah!” said the Marquis again, in a well-satisfied manner.
“If it ever becomes mine, it shall be put into some hands better qualified
to free it slowly (if such a thing is possible) from the weight that drags
it down, so that the miserable people who cannot leave it and who have
been long wrung to the last point of endurance, may, in another
generation, suffer less; but it is not for me. There is a curse on it, and
on all this land.”
“And you?” said the uncle. “Forgive my curiosity; do you, under your new
philosophy, graciously intend to live?”
“I must do, to live, what others of my countrymen, even with nobility at
their backs, may have to do some day—work.”
“In England, for example?”
“Yes. The family honour, sir, is safe from me in this country. The family
name can suffer from me in no other, for I bear it in no other.”
The ringing of the bell had caused the adjoining bed-chamber to be
lighted. It now shone brightly, through the door of communication. The
Marquis looked that way, and listened for the retreating step of his
valet.
“England is very attractive to you, seeing how indifferently you have
prospered there,” he observed then, turning his calm face to his nephew
with a smile.
“I have already said, that for my prospering there, I am sensible I may be
indebted to you, sir. For the rest, it is my Refuge.”
“They say, those boastful English, that it is the Refuge of many. You know
a compatriot who has found a Refuge there? A Doctor?”
“Yes.”
“With a daughter?”
“Yes.”
“Yes,” said the Marquis. “You are fatigued. Good night!”
As he bent his head in his most courtly manner, there was a secrecy in his
smiling face, and he conveyed an air of mystery to those words, which
struck the eyes and ears of his nephew forcibly. At the same time, the
thin straight lines of the setting of the eyes, and the thin straight
lips, and the markings in the nose, curved with a sarcasm that looked
handsomely diabolic.
“Yes,” repeated the Marquis. “A Doctor with a daughter. Yes. So commences
the new philosophy! You are fatigued. Good night!”
It would have been of as much avail to interrogate any stone face outside
the chateau as to interrogate that face of his. The nephew looked at him,
in vain, in passing on to the door.
“Good night!” said the uncle. “I look to the pleasure of seeing you again
in the morning. Good repose! Light Monsieur my nephew to his chamber
there!—And burn Monsieur my nephew in his bed, if you will,” he
added to himself, before he rang his little bell again, and summoned his
valet to his own bedroom.
The valet come and gone, Monsieur the Marquis walked to and fro in his
loose chamber-robe, to prepare himself gently for sleep, that hot still
night. Rustling about the room, his softly-slippered feet making no noise
on the floor, he moved like a refined tiger:—looked like some
enchanted marquis of the impenitently wicked sort, in story, whose
periodical change into tiger form was either just going off, or just
coming on.
He moved from end to end of his voluptuous bedroom, looking again at the
scraps of the day’s journey that came unbidden into his mind; the slow
toil up the hill at sunset, the setting sun, the descent, the mill, the
prison on the crag, the little village in the hollow, the peasants at the
fountain, and the mender of roads with his blue cap pointing out the chain
under the carriage. That fountain suggested the Paris fountain, the little
bundle lying on the step, the women bending over it, and the tall man with
his arms up, crying, “Dead!”
“I am cool now,” said Monsieur the Marquis, “and may go to bed.”
So, leaving only one light burning on the large hearth, he let his thin
gauze curtains fall around him, and heard the night break its silence with
a long sigh as he composed himself to sleep.
The stone faces on the outer walls stared blindly at the black night for
three heavy hours; for three heavy hours, the horses in the stables
rattled at their racks, the dogs barked, and the owl made a noise with
very little resemblance in it to the noise conventionally assigned to the
owl by men-poets. But it is the obstinate custom of such creatures hardly
ever to say what is set down for them.
For three heavy hours, the stone faces of the chateau, lion and human,
stared blindly at the night. Dead darkness lay on all the landscape, dead
darkness added its own hush to the hushing dust on all the roads. The
burial-place had got to the pass that its little heaps of poor grass were
undistinguishable from one another; the figure on the Cross might have
come down, for anything that could be seen of it. In the village, taxers
and taxed were fast asleep. Dreaming, perhaps, of banquets, as the starved
usually do, and of ease and rest, as the driven slave and the yoked ox
may, its lean inhabitants slept soundly, and were fed and freed.
The fountain in the village flowed unseen and unheard, and the fountain at
the chateau dropped unseen and unheard—both melting away, like the
minutes that were falling from the spring of Time—through three dark
hours. Then, the grey water of both began to be ghostly in the light, and
the eyes of the stone faces of the chateau were opened.
Lighter and lighter, until at last the sun touched the tops of the still
trees, and poured its radiance over the hill. In the glow, the water of
the chateau fountain seemed to turn to blood, and the stone faces
crimsoned. The carol of the birds was loud and high, and, on the
weather-beaten sill of the great window of the bed-chamber of Monsieur the
Marquis, one little bird sang its sweetest song with all its might. At
this, the nearest stone face seemed to stare amazed, and, with open mouth
and dropped under-jaw, looked awe-stricken.
Now, the sun was full up, and movement began in the village. Casement
windows opened, crazy doors were unbarred, and people came forth shivering—chilled,
as yet, by the new sweet air. Then began the rarely lightened toil of the
day among the village population. Some, to the fountain; some, to the
fields; men and women here, to dig and delve; men and women there, to see
to the poor live stock, and lead the bony cows out, to such pasture as
could be found by the roadside. In the church and at the Cross, a kneeling
figure or two; attendant on the latter prayers, the led cow, trying for a
breakfast among the weeds at its foot.
The chateau awoke later, as became its quality, but awoke gradually and
surely. First, the lonely boar-spears and knives of the chase had been
reddened as of old; then, had gleamed trenchant in the morning sunshine;
now, doors and windows were thrown open, horses in their stables looked
round over their shoulders at the light and freshness pouring in at
doorways, leaves sparkled and rustled at iron-grated windows, dogs pulled
hard at their chains, and reared impatient to be loosed.
All these trivial incidents belonged to the routine of life, and the
return of morning. Surely, not so the ringing of the great bell of the
chateau, nor the running up and down the stairs; nor the hurried figures
on the terrace; nor the booting and tramping here and there and
everywhere, nor the quick saddling of horses and riding away?
What winds conveyed this hurry to the grizzled mender of roads, already at
work on the hill-top beyond the village, with his day’s dinner (not much
to carry) lying in a bundle that it was worth no crow’s while to peck at,
on a heap of stones? Had the birds, carrying some grains of it to a
distance, dropped one over him as they sow chance seeds? Whether or no,
the mender of roads ran, on the sultry morning, as if for his life, down
the hill, knee-high in dust, and never stopped till he got to the
fountain.
All the people of the village were at the fountain, standing about in
their depressed manner, and whispering low, but showing no other emotions
than grim curiosity and surprise. The led cows, hastily brought in and
tethered to anything that would hold them, were looking stupidly on, or
lying down chewing the cud of nothing particularly repaying their trouble,
which they had picked up in their interrupted saunter. Some of the people
of the chateau, and some of those of the posting-house, and all the taxing
authorities, were armed more or less, and were crowded on the other side
of the little street in a purposeless way, that was highly fraught with
nothing. Already, the mender of roads had penetrated into the midst of a
group of fifty particular friends, and was smiting himself in the breast
with his blue cap. What did all this portend, and what portended the swift
hoisting-up of Monsieur Gabelle behind a servant on horseback, and the
conveying away of the said Gabelle (double-laden though the horse was), at
a gallop, like a new version of the German ballad of Leonora?
It portended that there was one stone face too many, up at the chateau.
The Gorgon had surveyed the building again in the night, and had added the
one stone face wanting; the stone face for which it had waited through
about two hundred years.
It lay back on the pillow of Monsieur the Marquis. It was like a fine
mask, suddenly startled, made angry, and petrified. Driven home into the
heart of the stone figure attached to it, was a knife. Round its hilt was
a frill of paper, on which was scrawled:
“Drive him fast to his tomb. This, from Jacques.”
CHAPTER X.<br />Two Promises
More months, to the number of twelve, had come and gone, and Mr. Charles
Darnay was established in England as a higher teacher of the French
language who was conversant with French literature. In this age, he would
have been a Professor; in that age, he was a Tutor. He read with young men
who could find any leisure and interest for the study of a living tongue
spoken all over the world, and he cultivated a taste for its stores of
knowledge and fancy. He could write of them, besides, in sound English,
and render them into sound English. Such masters were not at that time
easily found; Princes that had been, and Kings that were to be, were not
yet of the Teacher class, and no ruined nobility had dropped out of
Tellson’s ledgers, to turn cooks and carpenters. As a tutor, whose
attainments made the student’s way unusually pleasant and profitable, and
as an elegant translator who brought something to his work besides mere
dictionary knowledge, young Mr. Darnay soon became known and encouraged.
He was well acquainted, more-over, with the circumstances of his country,
and those were of ever-growing interest. So, with great perseverance and
untiring industry, he prospered.
In London, he had expected neither to walk on pavements of gold, nor to
lie on beds of roses; if he had had any such exalted expectation, he would
not have prospered. He had expected labour, and he found it, and did it
and made the best of it. In this, his prosperity consisted.
A certain portion of his time was passed at Cambridge, where he read with
undergraduates as a sort of tolerated smuggler who drove a contraband
trade in European languages, instead of conveying Greek and Latin through
the Custom-house. The rest of his time he passed in London.
Now, from the days when it was always summer in Eden, to these days when
it is mostly winter in fallen latitudes, the world of a man has invariably
gone one way—Charles Darnay’s way—the way of the love of a
woman.
He had loved Lucie Manette from the hour of his danger. He had never heard
a sound so sweet and dear as the sound of her compassionate voice; he had
never seen a face so tenderly beautiful, as hers when it was confronted
with his own on the edge of the grave that had been dug for him. But, he
had not yet spoken to her on the subject; the assassination at the
deserted chateau far away beyond the heaving water and the long, long,
dusty roads—the solid stone chateau which had itself become the mere
mist of a dream—had been done a year, and he had never yet, by so
much as a single spoken word, disclosed to her the state of his heart.
That he had his reasons for this, he knew full well. It was again a summer
day when, lately arrived in London from his college occupation, he turned
into the quiet corner in Soho, bent on seeking an opportunity of opening
his mind to Doctor Manette. It was the close of the summer day, and he
knew Lucie to be out with Miss Pross.
He found the Doctor reading in his arm-chair at a window. The energy which
had at once supported him under his old sufferings and aggravated their
sharpness, had been gradually restored to him. He was now a very energetic
man indeed, with great firmness of purpose, strength of resolution, and
vigour of action. In his recovered energy he was sometimes a little fitful
and sudden, as he had at first been in the exercise of his other recovered
faculties; but, this had never been frequently observable, and had grown
more and more rare.
He studied much, slept little, sustained a great deal of fatigue with
ease, and was equably cheerful. To him, now entered Charles Darnay, at
sight of whom he laid aside his book and held out his hand.
“Charles Darnay! I rejoice to see you. We have been counting on your
return these three or four days past. Mr. Stryver and Sydney Carton were
both here yesterday, and both made you out to be more than due.”
“I am obliged to them for their interest in the matter,” he answered, a
little coldly as to them, though very warmly as to the Doctor. “Miss
Manette—”
“Is well,” said the Doctor, as he stopped short, “and your return will
delight us all. She has gone out on some household matters, but will soon
be home.”
“Doctor Manette, I knew she was from home. I took the opportunity of her
being from home, to beg to speak to you.”
There was a blank silence.
“Yes?” said the Doctor, with evident constraint. “Bring your chair here,
and speak on.”
He complied as to the chair, but appeared to find the speaking on less
easy.
“I have had the happiness, Doctor Manette, of being so intimate here,” so
he at length began, “for some year and a half, that I hope the topic on
which I am about to touch may not—”
He was stayed by the Doctor’s putting out his hand to stop him. When he
had kept it so a little while, he said, drawing it back:
“Is Lucie the topic?”
“She is.”
“It is hard for me to speak of her at any time. It is very hard for me to
hear her spoken of in that tone of yours, Charles Darnay.”
“It is a tone of fervent admiration, true homage, and deep love, Doctor
Manette!” he said deferentially.
There was another blank silence before her father rejoined:
“I believe it. I do you justice; I believe it.”
His constraint was so manifest, and it was so manifest, too, that it
originated in an unwillingness to approach the subject, that Charles
Darnay hesitated.
“Shall I go on, sir?”
Another blank.
“Yes, go on.”
“You anticipate what I would say, though you cannot know how earnestly I
say it, how earnestly I feel it, without knowing my secret heart, and the
hopes and fears and anxieties with which it has long been laden. Dear
Doctor Manette, I love your daughter fondly, dearly, disinterestedly,
devotedly. If ever there were love in the world, I love her. You have
loved yourself; let your old love speak for me!”
The Doctor sat with his face turned away, and his eyes bent on the ground.
At the last words, he stretched out his hand again, hurriedly, and cried:
“Not that, sir! Let that be! I adjure you, do not recall that!”
His cry was so like a cry of actual pain, that it rang in Charles Darnay’s
ears long after he had ceased. He motioned with the hand he had extended,
and it seemed to be an appeal to Darnay to pause. The latter so received
it, and remained silent.
“I ask your pardon,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, after some
moments. “I do not doubt your loving Lucie; you may be satisfied of it.”
He turned towards him in his chair, but did not look at him, or raise his
eyes. His chin dropped upon his hand, and his white hair overshadowed his
face:
“Have you spoken to Lucie?”
“No.”
“Nor written?”
“Never.”
“It would be ungenerous to affect not to know that your self-denial is to
be referred to your consideration for her father. Her father thanks you.”
He offered his hand; but his eyes did not go with it.
“I know,” said Darnay, respectfully, “how can I fail to know, Doctor
Manette, I who have seen you together from day to day, that between you
and Miss Manette there is an affection so unusual, so touching, so
belonging to the circumstances in which it has been nurtured, that it can
have few parallels, even in the tenderness between a father and child. I
know, Doctor Manette—how can I fail to know—that, mingled with
the affection and duty of a daughter who has become a woman, there is, in
her heart, towards you, all the love and reliance of infancy itself. I
know that, as in her childhood she had no parent, so she is now devoted to
you with all the constancy and fervour of her present years and character,
united to the trustfulness and attachment of the early days in which you
were lost to her. I know perfectly well that if you had been restored to
her from the world beyond this life, you could hardly be invested, in her
sight, with a more sacred character than that in which you are always with
her. I know that when she is clinging to you, the hands of baby, girl, and
woman, all in one, are round your neck. I know that in loving you she sees
and loves her mother at her own age, sees and loves you at my age, loves
her mother broken-hearted, loves you through your dreadful trial and in
your blessed restoration. I have known this, night and day, since I have
known you in your home.”
Her father sat silent, with his face bent down. His breathing was a little
quickened; but he repressed all other signs of agitation.
“Dear Doctor Manette, always knowing this, always seeing her and you with
this hallowed light about you, I have forborne, and forborne, as long as
it was in the nature of man to do it. I have felt, and do even now feel,
that to bring my love—even mine—between you, is to touch your
history with something not quite so good as itself. But I love her. Heaven
is my witness that I love her!”
“I believe it,” answered her father, mournfully. “I have thought so before
now. I believe it.”
“But, do not believe,” said Darnay, upon whose ear the mournful voice
struck with a reproachful sound, “that if my fortune were so cast as that,
being one day so happy as to make her my wife, I must at any time put any
separation between her and you, I could or would breathe a word of what I
now say. Besides that I should know it to be hopeless, I should know it to
be a baseness. If I had any such possibility, even at a remote distance of
years, harboured in my thoughts, and hidden in my heart—if it ever
had been there—if it ever could be there—I could not now touch
this honoured hand.”
He laid his own upon it as he spoke.
“No, dear Doctor Manette. Like you, a voluntary exile from France; like
you, driven from it by its distractions, oppressions, and miseries; like
you, striving to live away from it by my own exertions, and trusting in a
happier future; I look only to sharing your fortunes, sharing your life
and home, and being faithful to you to the death. Not to divide with Lucie
her privilege as your child, companion, and friend; but to come in aid of
it, and bind her closer to you, if such a thing can be.”
His touch still lingered on her father’s hand. Answering the touch for a
moment, but not coldly, her father rested his hands upon the arms of his
chair, and looked up for the first time since the beginning of the
conference. A struggle was evidently in his face; a struggle with that
occasional look which had a tendency in it to dark doubt and dread.
“You speak so feelingly and so manfully, Charles Darnay, that I thank you
with all my heart, and will open all my heart—or nearly so. Have you
any reason to believe that Lucie loves you?”
“None. As yet, none.”
“Is it the immediate object of this confidence, that you may at once
ascertain that, with my knowledge?”
“Not even so. I might not have the hopefulness to do it for weeks; I might
(mistaken or not mistaken) have that hopefulness to-morrow.”
“Do you seek any guidance from me?”
“I ask none, sir. But I have thought it possible that you might have it in
your power, if you should deem it right, to give me some.”
“Do you seek any promise from me?”
“I do seek that.”
“What is it?”
“I well understand that, without you, I could have no hope. I well
understand that, even if Miss Manette held me at this moment in her
innocent heart—do not think I have the presumption to assume so much—I
could retain no place in it against her love for her father.”
“If that be so, do you see what, on the other hand, is involved in it?”
“I understand equally well, that a word from her father in any suitor’s
favour, would outweigh herself and all the world. For which reason, Doctor
Manette,” said Darnay, modestly but firmly, “I would not ask that word, to
save my life.”
“I am sure of it. Charles Darnay, mysteries arise out of close love, as
well as out of wide division; in the former case, they are subtle and
delicate, and difficult to penetrate. My daughter Lucie is, in this one
respect, such a mystery to me; I can make no guess at the state of her
heart.”
“May I ask, sir, if you think she is—” As he hesitated, her father
supplied the rest.
“Is sought by any other suitor?”
“It is what I meant to say.”
Her father considered a little before he answered:
“You have seen Mr. Carton here, yourself. Mr. Stryver is here too,
occasionally. If it be at all, it can only be by one of these.”
“Or both,” said Darnay.
“I had not thought of both; I should not think either, likely. You want a
promise from me. Tell me what it is.”
“It is, that if Miss Manette should bring to you at any time, on her own
part, such a confidence as I have ventured to lay before you, you will
bear testimony to what I have said, and to your belief in it. I hope you
may be able to think so well of me, as to urge no influence against me. I
say nothing more of my stake in this; this is what I ask. The condition on
which I ask it, and which you have an undoubted right to require, I will
observe immediately.”
“I give the promise,” said the Doctor, “without any condition. I believe
your object to be, purely and truthfully, as you have stated it. I believe
your intention is to perpetuate, and not to weaken, the ties between me
and my other and far dearer self. If she should ever tell me that you are
essential to her perfect happiness, I will give her to you. If there were—Charles
Darnay, if there were—”
The young man had taken his hand gratefully; their hands were joined as
the Doctor spoke:
“—any fancies, any reasons, any apprehensions, anything whatsoever,
new or old, against the man she really loved—the direct
responsibility thereof not lying on his head—they should all be
obliterated for her sake. She is everything to me; more to me than
suffering, more to me than wrong, more to me—Well! This is idle
talk.”
So strange was the way in which he faded into silence, and so strange his
fixed look when he had ceased to speak, that Darnay felt his own hand turn
cold in the hand that slowly released and dropped it.
“You said something to me,” said Doctor Manette, breaking into a smile.
“What was it you said to me?”
He was at a loss how to answer, until he remembered having spoken of a
condition. Relieved as his mind reverted to that, he answered:
“Your confidence in me ought to be returned with full confidence on my
part. My present name, though but slightly changed from my mother’s, is
not, as you will remember, my own. I wish to tell you what that is, and
why I am in England.”
“Stop!” said the Doctor of Beauvais.
“I wish it, that I may the better deserve your confidence, and have no
secret from you.”
“Stop!”
For an instant, the Doctor even had his two hands at his ears; for another
instant, even had his two hands laid on Darnay’s lips.
“Tell me when I ask you, not now. If your suit should prosper, if Lucie
should love you, you shall tell me on your marriage morning. Do you
promise?”
“Willingly.
“Give me your hand. She will be home directly, and it is better she should
not see us together to-night. Go! God bless you!”
It was dark when Charles Darnay left him, and it was an hour later and
darker when Lucie came home; she hurried into the room alone—for
Miss Pross had gone straight up-stairs—and was surprised to find his
reading-chair empty.
“My father!” she called to him. “Father dear!”
Nothing was said in answer, but she heard a low hammering sound in his
bedroom. Passing lightly across the intermediate room, she looked in at
his door and came running back frightened, crying to herself, with her
blood all chilled, “What shall I do! What shall I do!”
Her uncertainty lasted but a moment; she hurried back, and tapped at his
door, and softly called to him. The noise ceased at the sound of her
voice, and he presently came out to her, and they walked up and down
together for a long time.
She came down from her bed, to look at him in his sleep that night. He
slept heavily, and his tray of shoemaking tools, and his old unfinished
work, were all as usual.
CHAPTER XI.<br />A Companion Picture
Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, on that self-same night, or morning, to his
jackal; “mix another bowl of punch; I have something to say to you.”
Sydney had been working double tides that night, and the night before, and
the night before that, and a good many nights in succession, making a
grand clearance among Mr. Stryver’s papers before the setting in of the
long vacation. The clearance was effected at last; the Stryver arrears
were handsomely fetched up; everything was got rid of until November
should come with its fogs atmospheric, and fogs legal, and bring grist to
the mill again.
Sydney was none the livelier and none the soberer for so much application.
It had taken a deal of extra wet-towelling to pull him through the night;
a correspondingly extra quantity of wine had preceded the towelling; and
he was in a very damaged condition, as he now pulled his turban off and
threw it into the basin in which he had steeped it at intervals for the
last six hours.
“Are you mixing that other bowl of punch?” said Stryver the portly, with
his hands in his waistband, glancing round from the sofa where he lay on
his back.
“I am.”
“Now, look here! I am going to tell you something that will rather
surprise you, and that perhaps will make you think me not quite as shrewd
as you usually do think me. I intend to marry.”
“ you?”
“Yes. And not for money. What do you say now?”
“I don’t feel disposed to say much. Who is she?”
“Guess.”
“Do I know her?”
“Guess.”
“I am not going to guess, at five o’clock in the morning, with my brains
frying and sputtering in my head. If you want me to guess, you must ask me
to dinner.”
“Well then, I’ll tell you,” said Stryver, coming slowly into a sitting
posture. “Sydney, I rather despair of making myself intelligible to you,
because you are such an insensible dog.”
“And you,” returned Sydney, busy concocting the punch, “are such a
sensitive and poetical spirit—”
“Come!” rejoined Stryver, laughing boastfully, “though I don’t prefer any
claim to being the soul of Romance (for I hope I know better), still I am
a tenderer sort of fellow than .”
“You are a luckier, if you mean that.”
“I don’t mean that. I mean I am a man of more—more—”
“Say gallantry, while you are about it,” suggested Carton.
“Well! I’ll say gallantry. My meaning is that I am a man,” said Stryver,
inflating himself at his friend as he made the punch, “who cares more to
be agreeable, who takes more pains to be agreeable, who knows better how
to be agreeable, in a woman’s society, than you do.”
“Go on,” said Sydney Carton.
“No; but before I go on,” said Stryver, shaking his head in his bullying
way, “I’ll have this out with you. You’ve been at Doctor Manette’s house
as much as I have, or more than I have. Why, I have been ashamed of your
moroseness there! Your manners have been of that silent and sullen and
hangdog kind, that, upon my life and soul, I have been ashamed of you,
Sydney!”
“It should be very beneficial to a man in your practice at the bar, to be
ashamed of anything,” returned Sydney; “you ought to be much obliged to
me.”
“You shall not get off in that way,” rejoined Stryver, shouldering the
rejoinder at him; “no, Sydney, it’s my duty to tell you—and I tell
you to your face to do you good—that you are a devilish
ill-conditioned fellow in that sort of society. You are a disagreeable
fellow.”
Sydney drank a bumper of the punch he had made, and laughed.
“Look at me!” said Stryver, squaring himself; “I have less need to make
myself agreeable than you have, being more independent in circumstances.
Why do I do it?”
“I never saw you do it yet,” muttered Carton.
“I do it because it’s politic; I do it on principle. And look at me! I get
on.”
“You don’t get on with your account of your matrimonial intentions,”
answered Carton, with a careless air; “I wish you would keep to that. As
to me—will you never understand that I am incorrigible?”
He asked the question with some appearance of scorn.
“You have no business to be incorrigible,” was his friend’s answer,
delivered in no very soothing tone.
“I have no business to be, at all, that I know of,” said Sydney Carton.
“Who is the lady?”
“Now, don’t let my announcement of the name make you uncomfortable,
Sydney,” said Mr. Stryver, preparing him with ostentatious friendliness
for the disclosure he was about to make, “because I know you don’t mean
half you say; and if you meant it all, it would be of no importance. I
make this little preface, because you once mentioned the young lady to me
in slighting terms.”
“I did?”
“Certainly; and in these chambers.”
Sydney Carton looked at his punch and looked at his complacent friend;
drank his punch and looked at his complacent friend.
“You made mention of the young lady as a golden-haired doll. The young
lady is Miss Manette. If you had been a fellow of any sensitiveness or
delicacy of feeling in that kind of way, Sydney, I might have been a
little resentful of your employing such a designation; but you are not.
You want that sense altogether; therefore I am no more annoyed when I
think of the expression, than I should be annoyed by a man’s opinion of a
picture of mine, who had no eye for pictures: or of a piece of music of
mine, who had no ear for music.”
Sydney Carton drank the punch at a great rate; drank it by bumpers,
looking at his friend.
“Now you know all about it, Syd,” said Mr. Stryver. “I don’t care about
fortune: she is a charming creature, and I have made up my mind to please
myself: on the whole, I think I can afford to please myself. She will have
in me a man already pretty well off, and a rapidly rising man, and a man
of some distinction: it is a piece of good fortune for her, but she is
worthy of good fortune. Are you astonished?”
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I be astonished?”
“You approve?”
Carton, still drinking the punch, rejoined, “Why should I not approve?”
“Well!” said his friend Stryver, “you take it more easily than I fancied
you would, and are less mercenary on my behalf than I thought you would
be; though, to be sure, you know well enough by this time that your
ancient chum is a man of a pretty strong will. Yes, Sydney, I have had
enough of this style of life, with no other as a change from it; I feel
that it is a pleasant thing for a man to have a home when he feels
inclined to go to it (when he doesn’t, he can stay away), and I feel that
Miss Manette will tell well in any station, and will always do me credit.
So I have made up my mind. And now, Sydney, old boy, I want to say a word
to about prospects. You are in a bad way, you know;
you really are in a bad way. You don’t know the value of money, you live
hard, you’ll knock up one of these days, and be ill and poor; you really
ought to think about a nurse.”
The prosperous patronage with which he said it, made him look twice as big
as he was, and four times as offensive.
“Now, let me recommend you,” pursued Stryver, “to look it in the face. I
have looked it in the face, in my different way; look it in the face, you,
in your different way. Marry. Provide somebody to take care of you. Never
mind your having no enjoyment of women’s society, nor understanding of it,
nor tact for it. Find out somebody. Find out some respectable woman with a
little property—somebody in the landlady way, or lodging-letting way—and
marry her, against a rainy day. That’s the kind of thing for .
Now think of it, Sydney.”
“I’ll think of it,” said Sydney.
CHAPTER XII.<br />The Fellow of Delicacy
Mr. Stryver having made up his mind to that magnanimous bestowal of good
fortune on the Doctor’s daughter, resolved to make her happiness known to
her before he left town for the Long Vacation. After some mental debating
of the point, he came to the conclusion that it would be as well to get
all the preliminaries done with, and they could then arrange at their
leisure whether he should give her his hand a week or two before
Michaelmas Term, or in the little Christmas vacation between it and
Hilary.
As to the strength of his case, he had not a doubt about it, but clearly
saw his way to the verdict. Argued with the jury on substantial worldly
grounds—the only grounds ever worth taking into account—it was
a plain case, and had not a weak spot in it. He called himself for the
plaintiff, there was no getting over his evidence, the counsel for the
defendant threw up his brief, and the jury did not even turn to consider.
After trying it, Stryver, C. J., was satisfied that no plainer case could
be.
Accordingly, Mr. Stryver inaugurated the Long Vacation with a formal
proposal to take Miss Manette to Vauxhall Gardens; that failing, to
Ranelagh; that unaccountably failing too, it behoved him to present
himself in Soho, and there declare his noble mind.
Towards Soho, therefore, Mr. Stryver shouldered his way from the Temple,
while the bloom of the Long Vacation’s infancy was still upon it. Anybody
who had seen him projecting himself into Soho while he was yet on Saint
Dunstan’s side of Temple Bar, bursting in his full-blown way along the
pavement, to the jostlement of all weaker people, might have seen how safe
and strong he was.
His way taking him past Tellson’s, and he both banking at Tellson’s and
knowing Mr. Lorry as the intimate friend of the Manettes, it entered Mr.
Stryver’s mind to enter the bank, and reveal to Mr. Lorry the brightness
of the Soho horizon. So, he pushed open the door with the weak rattle in
its throat, stumbled down the two steps, got past the two ancient
cashiers, and shouldered himself into the musty back closet where Mr.
Lorry sat at great books ruled for figures, with perpendicular iron bars
to his window as if that were ruled for figures too, and everything under
the clouds were a sum.
“Halloa!” said Mr. Stryver. “How do you do? I hope you are well!”
It was Stryver’s grand peculiarity that he always seemed too big for any
place, or space. He was so much too big for Tellson’s, that old clerks in
distant corners looked up with looks of remonstrance, as though he
squeezed them against the wall. The House itself, magnificently reading
the paper quite in the far-off perspective, lowered displeased, as if the
Stryver head had been butted into its responsible waistcoat.
The discreet Mr. Lorry said, in a sample tone of the voice he would
recommend under the circumstances, “How do you do, Mr. Stryver? How do you
do, sir?” and shook hands. There was a peculiarity in his manner of
shaking hands, always to be seen in any clerk at Tellson’s who shook hands
with a customer when the House pervaded the air. He shook in a
self-abnegating way, as one who shook for Tellson and Co.
“Can I do anything for you, Mr. Stryver?” asked Mr. Lorry, in his business
character.
“Why, no, thank you; this is a private visit to yourself, Mr. Lorry; I
have come for a private word.”
“Oh indeed!” said Mr. Lorry, bending down his ear, while his eye strayed
to the House afar off.
“I am going,” said Mr. Stryver, leaning his arms confidentially on the
desk: whereupon, although it was a large double one, there appeared to be
not half desk enough for him: “I am going to make an offer of myself in
marriage to your agreeable little friend, Miss Manette, Mr. Lorry.”
“Oh dear me!” cried Mr. Lorry, rubbing his chin, and looking at his
visitor dubiously.
“Oh dear me, sir?” repeated Stryver, drawing back. “Oh dear you, sir? What
may your meaning be, Mr. Lorry?”
“My meaning,” answered the man of business, “is, of course, friendly and
appreciative, and that it does you the greatest credit, and—in
short, my meaning is everything you could desire. But—really, you
know, Mr. Stryver—” Mr. Lorry paused, and shook his head at him in
the oddest manner, as if he were compelled against his will to add,
internally, “you know there really is so much too much of you!”
“Well!” said Stryver, slapping the desk with his contentious hand, opening
his eyes wider, and taking a long breath, “if I understand you, Mr. Lorry,
I’ll be hanged!”
Mr. Lorry adjusted his little wig at both ears as a means towards that
end, and bit the feather of a pen.
“D—n it all, sir!” said Stryver, staring at him, “am I not
eligible?”
“Oh dear yes! Yes. Oh yes, you’re eligible!” said Mr. Lorry. “If you say
eligible, you are eligible.”
“Am I not prosperous?” asked Stryver.
<br />
“Oh! if you come to prosperous, you are prosperous,” said Mr. Lorry.
<br />
“And advancing?”
<br />
“If you come to advancing you know,” said Mr. Lorry, delighted to be able
to make another admission, “nobody can doubt that.”
<br />
“Then what on earth is your meaning, Mr. Lorry?” demanded Stryver,
perceptibly crestfallen.
<br />
“Well! I—Were you going there now?” asked Mr. Lorry.
<br />
“Straight!” said Stryver, with a plump of his fist on the desk.
<br />
“Then I think I wouldn’t, if I was you.”
<br />
“Why?” said Stryver. “Now, I’ll put you in a corner,” forensically shaking
a forefinger at him. “You are a man of business and bound to have a
reason. State your reason. Why wouldn’t you go?”
<br />
“Because,” said Mr. Lorry, “I wouldn’t go on such an object without having
some cause to believe that I should succeed.”
<br />
“D—n !” cried Stryver, “but this beats everything.”
<br />
Mr. Lorry glanced at the distant House, and glanced at the angry Stryver.
<br />
“Here’s a man of business—a man of years—a man of experience—
a Bank,” said Stryver; “and having summed up three leading reasons for
complete success, he says there’s no reason at all! Says it with his head
on!” Mr. Stryver remarked upon the peculiarity as if it would have been
infinitely less remarkable if he had said it with his head off.
<br />
“When I speak of success, I speak of success with the young lady; and when
I speak of causes and reasons to make success probable, I speak of causes
and reasons that will tell as such with the young lady. The young lady, my
good sir,” said Mr. Lorry, mildly tapping the Stryver arm, “the young
lady. The young lady goes before all.”
<br />
“Then you mean to tell me, Mr. Lorry,” said Stryver, squaring his elbows,
“that it is your deliberate opinion that the young lady at present in
question is a mincing Fool?”
<br />
“Not exactly so. I mean to tell you, Mr. Stryver,” said Mr. Lorry,
reddening, “that I will hear no disrespectful word of that young lady from
any lips; and that if I knew any man—which I hope I do not—whose
taste was so coarse, and whose temper was so overbearing, that he could
not restrain himself from speaking disrespectfully of that young lady at
this desk, not even Tellson’s should prevent my giving him a piece of my
mind.”
<br />
The necessity of being angry in a suppressed tone had put Mr. Stryver’s
blood-vessels into a dangerous state when it was his turn to be angry; Mr.
Lorry’s veins, methodical as their courses could usually be, were in no
better state now it was his turn.
<br />
“That is what I mean to tell you, sir,” said Mr. Lorry. “Pray let there be
no mistake about it.”
<br />
Mr. Stryver sucked the end of a ruler for a little while, and then stood
hitting a tune out of his teeth with it, which probably gave him the
toothache. He broke the awkward silence by saying:
<br />
“This is something new to me, Mr. Lorry. You deliberately advise me not to
go up to Soho and offer myself—self, Stryver of the King’s
Bench bar?”
<br />
“Do you ask me for my advice, Mr. Stryver?”
<br />
“Yes, I do.”
<br />
“Very good. Then I give it, and you have repeated it correctly.”
<br />
“And all I can say of it is,” laughed Stryver with a vexed laugh, “that
this—ha, ha!—beats everything past, present, and to come.”
<br />
“Now understand me,” pursued Mr. Lorry. “As a man of business, I am not
justified in saying anything about this matter, for, as a man of business,
I know nothing of it. But, as an old fellow, who has carried Miss Manette
in his arms, who is the trusted friend of Miss Manette and of her father
too, and who has a great affection for them both, I have spoken. The
confidence is not of my seeking, recollect. Now, you think I may not be
right?”
<br />
“Not I!” said Stryver, whistling. “I can’t undertake to find third parties
in common sense; I can only find it for myself. I suppose sense in certain
quarters; you suppose mincing bread-and-butter nonsense. It’s new to me,
but you are right, I dare say.”
<br />
“What I suppose, Mr. Stryver, I claim to characterise for myself—And
understand me, sir,” said Mr. Lorry, quickly flushing again, “I will not—not
even at Tellson’s—have it characterised for me by any gentleman
breathing.”
<br />
“There! I beg your pardon!” said Stryver.
<br />
“Granted. Thank you. Well, Mr. Stryver, I was about to say:—it might
be painful to you to find yourself mistaken, it might be painful to Doctor
Manette to have the task of being explicit with you, it might be very
painful to Miss Manette to have the task of being explicit with you. You
know the terms upon which I have the honour and happiness to stand with
the family. If you please, committing you in no way, representing you in
no way, I will undertake to correct my advice by the exercise of a little
new observation and judgment expressly brought to bear upon it. If you
should then be dissatisfied with it, you can but test its soundness for
yourself; if, on the other hand, you should be satisfied with it, and it
should be what it now is, it may spare all sides what is best spared. What
do you say?”
<br />
“How long would you keep me in town?”
<br />
“Oh! It is only a question of a few hours. I could go to Soho in the
evening, and come to your chambers afterwards.”
<br />
“Then I say yes,” said Stryver: “I won’t go up there now, I am not so hot
upon it as that comes to; I say yes, and I shall expect you to look in
to-night. Good morning.”
<br />
Then Mr. Stryver turned and burst out of the Bank, causing such a
concussion of air on his passage through, that to stand up against it
bowing behind the two counters, required the utmost remaining strength of
the two ancient clerks. Those venerable and feeble persons were always
seen by the public in the act of bowing, and were popularly believed, when
they had bowed a customer out, still to keep on bowing in the empty office
until they bowed another customer in.
<br />
The barrister was keen enough to divine that the banker would not have
gone so far in his expression of opinion on any less solid ground than
moral certainty. Unprepared as he was for the large pill he had to
swallow, he got it down. “And now,” said Mr. Stryver, shaking his forensic
forefinger at the Temple in general, when it was down, “my way out of
this, is, to put you all in the wrong.”
<br />
It was a bit of the art of an Old Bailey tactician, in which he found
great relief. “You shall not put me in the wrong, young lady,” said Mr.
Stryver; “I’ll do that for you.”
<br />
Accordingly, when Mr. Lorry called that night as late as ten o’clock, Mr.
Stryver, among a quantity of books and papers littered out for the
purpose, seemed to have nothing less on his mind than the subject of the
morning. He even showed surprise when he saw Mr. Lorry, and was altogether
in an absent and preoccupied state.
<br />
“Well!” said that good-natured emissary, after a full half-hour of
bootless attempts to bring him round to the question. “I have been to
Soho.”
<br />
“To Soho?” repeated Mr. Stryver, coldly. “Oh, to be sure! What am I
thinking of!”
<br />
“And I have no doubt,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was right in the
conversation we had. My opinion is confirmed, and I reiterate my advice.”
<br />
“I assure you,” returned Mr. Stryver, in the friendliest way, “that I am
sorry for it on your account, and sorry for it on the poor father’s
account. I know this must always be a sore subject with the family; let us
say no more about it.”
<br />
“I don’t understand you,” said Mr. Lorry.
<br />
“I dare say not,” rejoined Stryver, nodding his head in a smoothing and
final way; “no matter, no matter.”
<br />
“But it does matter,” Mr. Lorry urged.
<br />
“No it doesn’t; I assure you it doesn’t. Having supposed that there was
sense where there is no sense, and a laudable ambition where there is not
a laudable ambition, I am well out of my mistake, and no harm is done.
Young women have committed similar follies often before, and have repented
them in poverty and obscurity often before. In an unselfish aspect, I am
sorry that the thing is dropped, because it would have been a bad thing
for me in a worldly point of view; in a selfish aspect, I am glad that the
thing has dropped, because it would have been a bad thing for me in a
worldly point of view—it is hardly necessary to say I could have
gained nothing by it. There is no harm at all done. I have not proposed to
the young lady, and, between ourselves, I am by no means certain, on
reflection, that I ever should have committed myself to that extent. Mr.
Lorry, you cannot control the mincing vanities and giddinesses of
empty-headed girls; you must not expect to do it, or you will always be
disappointed. Now, pray say no more about it. I tell you, I regret it on
account of others, but I am satisfied on my own account. And I am really
very much obliged to you for allowing me to sound you, and for giving me
your advice; you know the young lady better than I do; you were right, it
never would have done.”
<br />
Mr. Lorry was so taken aback, that he looked quite stupidly at Mr. Stryver
shouldering him towards the door, with an appearance of showering
generosity, forbearance, and goodwill, on his erring head. “Make the best
of it, my dear sir,” said Stryver; “say no more about it; thank you again
for allowing me to sound you; good night!”
<br />
Mr. Lorry was out in the night, before he knew where he was. Mr. Stryver
was lying back on his sofa, winking at his ceiling.
CHAPTER XIII.<br />The Fellow of No Delicacy
If Sydney Carton ever shone anywhere, he certainly never shone in the
house of Doctor Manette. He had been there often, during a whole year, and
had always been the same moody and morose lounger there. When he cared to
talk, he talked well; but, the cloud of caring for nothing, which
overshadowed him with such a fatal darkness, was very rarely pierced by
the light within him.
And yet he did care something for the streets that environed that house,
and for the senseless stones that made their pavements. Many a night he
vaguely and unhappily wandered there, when wine had brought no transitory
gladness to him; many a dreary daybreak revealed his solitary figure
lingering there, and still lingering there when the first beams of the sun
brought into strong relief, removed beauties of architecture in spires of
churches and lofty buildings, as perhaps the quiet time brought some sense
of better things, else forgotten and unattainable, into his mind. Of late,
the neglected bed in the Temple Court had known him more scantily than
ever; and often when he had thrown himself upon it no longer than a few
minutes, he had got up again, and haunted that neighbourhood.
On a day in August, when Mr. Stryver (after notifying to his jackal that
“he had thought better of that marrying matter”) had carried his delicacy
into Devonshire, and when the sight and scent of flowers in the City
streets had some waifs of goodness in them for the worst, of health for
the sickliest, and of youth for the oldest, Sydney’s feet still trod those
stones. From being irresolute and purposeless, his feet became animated by
an intention, and, in the working out of that intention, they took him to
the Doctor’s door.
He was shown up-stairs, and found Lucie at her work, alone. She had never
been quite at her ease with him, and received him with some little
embarrassment as he seated himself near her table. But, looking up at his
face in the interchange of the first few common-places, she observed a
change in it.
“I fear you are not well, Mr. Carton!”
“No. But the life I lead, Miss Manette, is not conducive to health. What
is to be expected of, or by, such profligates?”
“Is it not—forgive me; I have begun the question on my lips—a
pity to live no better life?”
“God knows it is a shame!”
“Then why not change it?”
Looking gently at him again, she was surprised and saddened to see that
there were tears in his eyes. There were tears in his voice too, as he
answered:
“It is too late for that. I shall never be better than I am. I shall sink
lower, and be worse.”
He leaned an elbow on her table, and covered his eyes with his hand. The
table trembled in the silence that followed.
She had never seen him softened, and was much distressed. He knew her to
be so, without looking at her, and said:
“Pray forgive me, Miss Manette. I break down before the knowledge of what
I want to say to you. Will you hear me?”
“If it will do you any good, Mr. Carton, if it would make you happier, it
would make me very glad!”
“God bless you for your sweet compassion!”
He unshaded his face after a little while, and spoke steadily.
“Don’t be afraid to hear me. Don’t shrink from anything I say. I am like
one who died young. All my life might have been.”
“No, Mr. Carton. I am sure that the best part of it might still be; I am
sure that you might be much, much worthier of yourself.”
“Say of you, Miss Manette, and although I know better—although in
the mystery of my own wretched heart I know better—I shall never
forget it!”
She was pale and trembling. He came to her relief with a fixed despair of
himself which made the interview unlike any other that could have been
holden.
“If it had been possible, Miss Manette, that you could have returned the
love of the man you see before yourself—flung away, wasted, drunken,
poor creature of misuse as you know him to be—he would have been
conscious this day and hour, in spite of his happiness, that he would
bring you to misery, bring you to sorrow and repentance, blight you,
disgrace you, pull you down with him. I know very well that you can have
no tenderness for me; I ask for none; I am even thankful that it cannot
be.”
“Without it, can I not save you, Mr. Carton? Can I not recall you—forgive
me again!—to a better course? Can I in no way repay your confidence?
I know this is a confidence,” she modestly said, after a little
hesitation, and in earnest tears, “I know you would say this to no one
else. Can I turn it to no good account for yourself, Mr. Carton?”
He shook his head.
“To none. No, Miss Manette, to none. If you will hear me through a very
little more, all you can ever do for me is done. I wish you to know that
you have been the last dream of my soul. In my degradation I have not been
so degraded but that the sight of you with your father, and of this home
made such a home by you, has stirred old shadows that I thought had died
out of me. Since I knew you, I have been troubled by a remorse that I
thought would never reproach me again, and have heard whispers from old
voices impelling me upward, that I thought were silent for ever. I have
had unformed ideas of striving afresh, beginning anew, shaking off sloth
and sensuality, and fighting out the abandoned fight. A dream, all a
dream, that ends in nothing, and leaves the sleeper where he lay down, but
I wish you to know that you inspired it.”
“Will nothing of it remain? O Mr. Carton, think again! Try again!”
“No, Miss Manette; all through it, I have known myself to be quite
undeserving. And yet I have had the weakness, and have still the weakness,
to wish you to know with what a sudden mastery you kindled me, heap of
ashes that I am, into fire—a fire, however, inseparable in its
nature from myself, quickening nothing, lighting nothing, doing no
service, idly burning away.”
“Since it is my misfortune, Mr. Carton, to have made you more unhappy than
you were before you knew me—”
“Don’t say that, Miss Manette, for you would have reclaimed me, if
anything could. You will not be the cause of my becoming worse.”
“Since the state of your mind that you describe, is, at all events,
attributable to some influence of mine—this is what I mean, if I can
make it plain—can I use no influence to serve you? Have I no power
for good, with you, at all?”
“The utmost good that I am capable of now, Miss Manette, I have come here
to realise. Let me carry through the rest of my misdirected life, the
remembrance that I opened my heart to you, last of all the world; and that
there was something left in me at this time which you could deplore and
pity.”
“Which I entreated you to believe, again and again, most fervently, with
all my heart, was capable of better things, Mr. Carton!”
“Entreat me to believe it no more, Miss Manette. I have proved myself, and
I know better. I distress you; I draw fast to an end. Will you let me
believe, when I recall this day, that the last confidence of my life was
reposed in your pure and innocent breast, and that it lies there alone,
and will be shared by no one?”
“If that will be a consolation to you, yes.”
“Not even by the dearest one ever to be known to you?”
“Mr. Carton,” she answered, after an agitated pause, “the secret is yours,
not mine; and I promise to respect it.”
“Thank you. And again, God bless you.”
He put her hand to his lips, and moved towards the door.
“Be under no apprehension, Miss Manette, of my ever resuming this
conversation by so much as a passing word. I will never refer to it again.
If I were dead, that could not be surer than it is henceforth. In the hour
of my death, I shall hold sacred the one good remembrance—and shall
thank and bless you for it—that my last avowal of myself was made to
you, and that my name, and faults, and miseries were gently carried in
your heart. May it otherwise be light and happy!”
He was so unlike what he had ever shown himself to be, and it was so sad
to think how much he had thrown away, and how much he every day kept down
and perverted, that Lucie Manette wept mournfully for him as he stood
looking back at her.
“Be comforted!” he said, “I am not worth such feeling, Miss Manette. An
hour or two hence, and the low companions and low habits that I scorn but
yield to, will render me less worth such tears as those, than any wretch
who creeps along the streets. Be comforted! But, within myself, I shall
always be, towards you, what I am now, though outwardly I shall be what
you have heretofore seen me. The last supplication but one I make to you,
is, that you will believe this of me.”
“I will, Mr. Carton.”
“My last supplication of all, is this; and with it, I will relieve you of
a visitor with whom I well know you have nothing in unison, and between
whom and you there is an impassable space. It is useless to say it, I
know, but it rises out of my soul. For you, and for any dear to you, I
would do anything. If my career were of that better kind that there was
any opportunity or capacity of sacrifice in it, I would embrace any
sacrifice for you and for those dear to you. Try to hold me in your mind,
at some quiet times, as ardent and sincere in this one thing. The time
will come, the time will not be long in coming, when new ties will be
formed about you—ties that will bind you yet more tenderly and
strongly to the home you so adorn—the dearest ties that will ever
grace and gladden you. O Miss Manette, when the little picture of a happy
father’s face looks up in yours, when you see your own bright beauty
springing up anew at your feet, think now and then that there is a man who
would give his life, to keep a life you love beside you!”
He said, “Farewell!” said a last “God bless you!” and left her.
CHAPTER XIV.<br />The Honest Tradesman
To the eyes of Mr. Jeremiah Cruncher, sitting on his stool in Fleet-street
with his grisly urchin beside him, a vast number and variety of objects in
movement were every day presented. Who could sit upon anything in
Fleet-street during the busy hours of the day, and not be dazed and
deafened by two immense processions, one ever tending westward with the
sun, the other ever tending eastward from the sun, both ever tending to
the plains beyond the range of red and purple where the sun goes down!
With his straw in his mouth, Mr. Cruncher sat watching the two streams,
like the heathen rustic who has for several centuries been on duty
watching one stream—saving that Jerry had no expectation of their
ever running dry. Nor would it have been an expectation of a hopeful kind,
since a small part of his income was derived from the pilotage of timid
women (mostly of a full habit and past the middle term of life) from
Tellson’s side of the tides to the opposite shore. Brief as such
companionship was in every separate instance, Mr. Cruncher never failed to
become so interested in the lady as to express a strong desire to have the
honour of drinking her very good health. And it was from the gifts
bestowed upon him towards the execution of this benevolent purpose, that
he recruited his finances, as just now observed.
Time was, when a poet sat upon a stool in a public place, and mused in the
sight of men. Mr. Cruncher, sitting on a stool in a public place, but not
being a poet, mused as little as possible, and looked about him.
It fell out that he was thus engaged in a season when crowds were few, and
belated women few, and when his affairs in general were so unprosperous as
to awaken a strong suspicion in his breast that Mrs. Cruncher must have
been “flopping” in some pointed manner, when an unusual concourse pouring
down Fleet-street westward, attracted his attention. Looking that way, Mr.
Cruncher made out that some kind of funeral was coming along, and that
there was popular objection to this funeral, which engendered uproar.
“Young Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, turning to his offspring, “it’s a
buryin’.”
“Hooroar, father!” cried Young Jerry.
The young gentleman uttered this exultant sound with mysterious
significance. The elder gentleman took the cry so ill, that he watched his
opportunity, and smote the young gentleman on the ear.
“What d’ye mean? What are you hooroaring at? What do you want to conwey to
your own father, you young Rip? This boy is a getting too many for !”
said Mr. Cruncher, surveying him. “Him and his hooroars! Don’t let me hear
no more of you, or you shall feel some more of me. D’ye hear?”
“I warn’t doing no harm,” Young Jerry protested, rubbing his cheek.
“Drop it then,” said Mr. Cruncher; “I won’t have none of no
harms. Get a top of that there seat, and look at the crowd.”
His son obeyed, and the crowd approached; they were bawling and hissing
round a dingy hearse and dingy mourning coach, in which mourning coach
there was only one mourner, dressed in the dingy trappings that were
considered essential to the dignity of the position. The position appeared
by no means to please him, however, with an increasing rabble surrounding
the coach, deriding him, making grimaces at him, and incessantly groaning
and calling out: “Yah! Spies! Tst! Yaha! Spies!” with many compliments too
numerous and forcible to repeat.
Funerals had at all times a remarkable attraction for Mr. Cruncher; he
always pricked up his senses, and became excited, when a funeral passed
Tellson’s. Naturally, therefore, a funeral with this uncommon attendance
excited him greatly, and he asked of the first man who ran against him:
“What is it, brother? What’s it about?”
“ don’t know,” said the man. “Spies! Yaha! Tst! Spies!”
He asked another man. “Who is it?”
“ don’t know,” returned the man, clapping his hands to his mouth
nevertheless, and vociferating in a surprising heat and with the greatest
ardour, “Spies! Yaha! Tst, tst! Spi—ies!”
At length, a person better informed on the merits of the case, tumbled
against him, and from this person he learned that the funeral was the
funeral of one Roger Cly.
“Was he a spy?” asked Mr. Cruncher.
“Old Bailey spy,” returned his informant. “Yaha! Tst! Yah! Old Bailey Spi—i—ies!”
“Why, to be sure!” exclaimed Jerry, recalling the Trial at which he had
assisted. “I’ve seen him. Dead, is he?”
“Dead as mutton,” returned the other, “and can’t be too dead. Have ’em
out, there! Spies! Pull ’em out, there! Spies!”
The idea was so acceptable in the prevalent absence of any idea, that the
crowd caught it up with eagerness, and loudly repeating the suggestion to
have ’em out, and to pull ’em out, mobbed the two vehicles so closely that
they came to a stop. On the crowd’s opening the coach doors, the one
mourner scuffled out by himself and was in their hands for a moment; but
he was so alert, and made such good use of his time, that in another
moment he was scouring away up a bye-street, after shedding his cloak,
hat, long hatband, white pocket-handkerchief, and other symbolical tears.
These, the people tore to pieces and scattered far and wide with great
enjoyment, while the tradesmen hurriedly shut up their shops; for a crowd
in those times stopped at nothing, and was a monster much dreaded. They
had already got the length of opening the hearse to take the coffin out,
when some brighter genius proposed instead, its being escorted to its
destination amidst general rejoicing. Practical suggestions being much
needed, this suggestion, too, was received with acclamation, and the coach
was immediately filled with eight inside and a dozen out, while as many
people got on the roof of the hearse as could by any exercise of ingenuity
stick upon it. Among the first of these volunteers was Jerry Cruncher
himself, who modestly concealed his spiky head from the observation of
Tellson’s, in the further corner of the mourning coach.
The officiating undertakers made some protest against these changes in the
ceremonies; but, the river being alarmingly near, and several voices
remarking on the efficacy of cold immersion in bringing refractory members
of the profession to reason, the protest was faint and brief. The
remodelled procession started, with a chimney-sweep driving the hearse—advised
by the regular driver, who was perched beside him, under close inspection,
for the purpose—and with a pieman, also attended by his cabinet
minister, driving the mourning coach. A bear-leader, a popular street
character of the time, was impressed as an additional ornament, before the
cavalcade had gone far down the Strand; and his bear, who was black and
very mangy, gave quite an Undertaking air to that part of the procession
in which he walked.
Thus, with beer-drinking, pipe-smoking, song-roaring, and infinite
caricaturing of woe, the disorderly procession went its way, recruiting at
every step, and all the shops shutting up before it. Its destination was
the old church of Saint Pancras, far off in the fields. It got there in
course of time; insisted on pouring into the burial-ground; finally,
accomplished the interment of the deceased Roger Cly in its own way, and
highly to its own satisfaction.
<br />
The dead man disposed of, and the crowd being under the necessity of
providing some other entertainment for itself, another brighter genius (or
perhaps the same) conceived the humour of impeaching casual passers-by, as
Old Bailey spies, and wreaking vengeance on them. Chase was given to some
scores of inoffensive persons who had never been near the Old Bailey in
their lives, in the realisation of this fancy, and they were roughly
hustled and maltreated. The transition to the sport of window-breaking,
and thence to the plundering of public-houses, was easy and natural. At
last, after several hours, when sundry summer-houses had been pulled down,
and some area-railings had been torn up, to arm the more belligerent
spirits, a rumour got about that the Guards were coming. Before this
rumour, the crowd gradually melted away, and perhaps the Guards came, and
perhaps they never came, and this was the usual progress of a mob.
<br />
Mr. Cruncher did not assist at the closing sports, but had remained behind
in the churchyard, to confer and condole with the undertakers. The place
had a soothing influence on him. He procured a pipe from a neighbouring
public-house, and smoked it, looking in at the railings and maturely
considering the spot.
<br />
“Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, apostrophising himself in his usual way, “you
see that there Cly that day, and you see with your own eyes that he was a
young ’un and a straight made ’un.”
<br />
Having smoked his pipe out, and ruminated a little longer, he turned
himself about, that he might appear, before the hour of closing, on his
station at Tellson’s. Whether his meditations on mortality had touched his
liver, or whether his general health had been previously at all amiss, or
whether he desired to show a little attention to an eminent man, is not so
much to the purpose, as that he made a short call upon his medical adviser—a
distinguished surgeon—on his way back.
<br />
Young Jerry relieved his father with dutiful interest, and reported No job
in his absence. The bank closed, the ancient clerks came out, the usual
watch was set, and Mr. Cruncher and his son went home to tea.
<br />
“Now, I tell you where it is!” said Mr. Cruncher to his wife, on entering.
“If, as a honest tradesman, my wenturs goes wrong to-night, I shall make
sure that you’ve been praying again me, and I shall work you for it just
the same as if I seen you do it.”
<br />
The dejected Mrs. Cruncher shook her head.
<br />
“Why, you’re at it afore my face!” said Mr. Cruncher, with signs of angry
apprehension.
<br />
“I am saying nothing.”
<br />
“Well, then; don’t meditate nothing. You might as well flop as meditate.
You may as well go again me one way as another. Drop it altogether.”
<br />
“Yes, Jerry.”
<br />
“Yes, Jerry,” repeated Mr. Cruncher sitting down to tea. “Ah! It
yes, Jerry. That’s about it. You may say yes, Jerry.”
<br />
Mr. Cruncher had no particular meaning in these sulky corroborations, but
made use of them, as people not unfrequently do, to express general
ironical dissatisfaction.
<br />
“You and your yes, Jerry,” said Mr. Cruncher, taking a bite out of his
bread-and-butter, and seeming to help it down with a large invisible
oyster out of his saucer. “Ah! I think so. I believe you.”
<br />
“You are going out to-night?” asked his decent wife, when he took another
bite.
<br />
“Yes, I am.”
<br />
“May I go with you, father?” asked his son, briskly.
<br />
“No, you mayn’t. I’m a going—as your mother knows—a fishing.
That’s where I’m going to. Going a fishing.”
<br />
“Your fishing-rod gets rayther rusty; don’t it, father?”
<br />
“Never you mind.”
<br />
“Shall you bring any fish home, father?”
<br />
“If I don’t, you’ll have short commons, to-morrow,” returned that
gentleman, shaking his head; “that’s questions enough for you; I ain’t a
going out, till you’ve been long abed.”
<br />
He devoted himself during the remainder of the evening to keeping a most
vigilant watch on Mrs. Cruncher, and sullenly holding her in conversation
that she might be prevented from meditating any petitions to his
disadvantage. With this view, he urged his son to hold her in conversation
also, and led the unfortunate woman a hard life by dwelling on any causes
of complaint he could bring against her, rather than he would leave her
for a moment to her own reflections. The devoutest person could have
rendered no greater homage to the efficacy of an honest prayer than he did
in this distrust of his wife. It was as if a professed unbeliever in
ghosts should be frightened by a ghost story.
<br />
“And mind you!” said Mr. Cruncher. “No games to-morrow! If I, as a honest
tradesman, succeed in providing a jinte of meat or two, none of your not
touching of it, and sticking to bread. If I, as a honest tradesman, am
able to provide a little beer, none of your declaring on water. When you
go to Rome, do as Rome does. Rome will be a ugly customer to you, if you
don’t. ’m your Rome, you know.”
<br />
Then he began grumbling again:
<br />
“With your flying into the face of your own wittles and drink! I don’t
know how scarce you mayn’t make the wittles and drink here, by your
flopping tricks and your unfeeling conduct. Look at your boy: he
your’n, ain’t he? He’s as thin as a lath. Do you call yourself a mother,
and not know that a mother’s first duty is to blow her boy out?”
<br />
This touched Young Jerry on a tender place; who adjured his mother to
perform her first duty, and, whatever else she did or neglected, above all
things to lay especial stress on the discharge of that maternal function
so affectingly and delicately indicated by his other parent.
<br />
Thus the evening wore away with the Cruncher family, until Young Jerry was
ordered to bed, and his mother, laid under similar injunctions, obeyed
them. Mr. Cruncher beguiled the earlier watches of the night with solitary
pipes, and did not start upon his excursion until nearly one o’clock.
Towards that small and ghostly hour, he rose up from his chair, took a key
out of his pocket, opened a locked cupboard, and brought forth a sack, a
crowbar of convenient size, a rope and chain, and other fishing tackle of
that nature. Disposing these articles about him in skilful manner, he
bestowed a parting defiance on Mrs. Cruncher, extinguished the light, and
went out.
<br />
Young Jerry, who had only made a feint of undressing when he went to bed,
was not long after his father. Under cover of the darkness he followed out
of the room, followed down the stairs, followed down the court, followed
out into the streets. He was in no uneasiness concerning his getting into
the house again, for it was full of lodgers, and the door stood ajar all
night.
<br />
Impelled by a laudable ambition to study the art and mystery of his
father’s honest calling, Young Jerry, keeping as close to house fronts,
walls, and doorways, as his eyes were close to one another, held his
honoured parent in view. The honoured parent steering Northward, had not
gone far, when he was joined by another disciple of Izaak Walton, and the
two trudged on together.
<br />
Within half an hour from the first starting, they were beyond the winking
lamps, and the more than winking watchmen, and were out upon a lonely
road. Another fisherman was picked up here—and that so silently,
that if Young Jerry had been superstitious, he might have supposed the
second follower of the gentle craft to have, all of a sudden, split
himself into two.
<br />
The three went on, and Young Jerry went on, until the three stopped under
a bank overhanging the road. Upon the top of the bank was a low brick
wall, surmounted by an iron railing. In the shadow of bank and wall the
three turned out of the road, and up a blind lane, of which the wall—there,
risen to some eight or ten feet high—formed one side. Crouching down
in a corner, peeping up the lane, the next object that Young Jerry saw,
was the form of his honoured parent, pretty well defined against a watery
and clouded moon, nimbly scaling an iron gate. He was soon over, and then
the second fisherman got over, and then the third. They all dropped softly
on the ground within the gate, and lay there a little—listening
perhaps. Then, they moved away on their hands and knees.
<br />
It was now Young Jerry’s turn to approach the gate: which he did, holding
his breath. Crouching down again in a corner there, and looking in, he
made out the three fishermen creeping through some rank grass! and all the
gravestones in the churchyard—it was a large churchyard that they
were in—looking on like ghosts in white, while the church tower
itself looked on like the ghost of a monstrous giant. They did not creep
far, before they stopped and stood upright. And then they began to fish.
<br />
They fished with a spade, at first. Presently the honoured parent appeared
to be adjusting some instrument like a great corkscrew. Whatever tools
they worked with, they worked hard, until the awful striking of the church
clock so terrified Young Jerry, that he made off, with his hair as stiff
as his father’s.
<br />
But, his long-cherished desire to know more about these matters, not only
stopped him in his running away, but lured him back again. They were still
fishing perseveringly, when he peeped in at the gate for the second time;
but, now they seemed to have got a bite. There was a screwing and
complaining sound down below, and their bent figures were strained, as if
by a weight. By slow degrees the weight broke away the earth upon it, and
came to the surface. Young Jerry very well knew what it would be; but,
when he saw it, and saw his honoured parent about to wrench it open, he
was so frightened, being new to the sight, that he made off again, and
never stopped until he had run a mile or more.
<br />
He would not have stopped then, for anything less necessary than breath,
it being a spectral sort of race that he ran, and one highly desirable to
get to the end of. He had a strong idea that the coffin he had seen was
running after him; and, pictured as hopping on behind him, bolt upright,
upon its narrow end, always on the point of overtaking him and hopping on
at his side—perhaps taking his arm—it was a pursuer to shun.
It was an inconsistent and ubiquitous fiend too, for, while it was making
the whole night behind him dreadful, he darted out into the roadway to
avoid dark alleys, fearful of its coming hopping out of them like a
dropsical boy’s kite without tail and wings. It hid in doorways too,
rubbing its horrible shoulders against doors, and drawing them up to its
ears, as if it were laughing. It got into shadows on the road, and lay
cunningly on its back to trip him up. All this time it was incessantly
hopping on behind and gaining on him, so that when the boy got to his own
door he had reason for being half dead. And even then it would not leave
him, but followed him upstairs with a bump on every stair, scrambled into
bed with him, and bumped down, dead and heavy, on his breast when he fell
asleep.
<br />
From his oppressed slumber, Young Jerry in his closet was awakened after
daybreak and before sunrise, by the presence of his father in the family
room. Something had gone wrong with him; at least, so Young Jerry
inferred, from the circumstance of his holding Mrs. Cruncher by the ears,
and knocking the back of her head against the head-board of the bed.
<br />
“I told you I would,” said Mr. Cruncher, “and I did.”
<br />
“Jerry, Jerry, Jerry!” his wife implored.
<br />
“You oppose yourself to the profit of the business,” said Jerry, “and me
and my partners suffer. You was to honour and obey; why the devil don’t
you?”
<br />
“I try to be a good wife, Jerry,” the poor woman protested, with tears.
<br />
“Is it being a good wife to oppose your husband’s business? Is it
honouring your husband to dishonour his business? Is it obeying your
husband to disobey him on the wital subject of his business?”
<br />
“You hadn’t taken to the dreadful business then, Jerry.”
<br />
“It’s enough for you,” retorted Mr. Cruncher, “to be the wife of a honest
tradesman, and not to occupy your female mind with calculations when he
took to his trade or when he didn’t. A honouring and obeying wife would
let his trade alone altogether. Call yourself a religious woman? If you’re
a religious woman, give me a irreligious one! You have no more nat’ral
sense of duty than the bed of this here Thames river has of a pile, and
similarly it must be knocked into you.”
<br />
The altercation was conducted in a low tone of voice, and terminated in
the honest tradesman’s kicking off his clay-soiled boots, and lying down
at his length on the floor. After taking a timid peep at him lying on his
back, with his rusty hands under his head for a pillow, his son lay down
too, and fell asleep again.
<br />
There was no fish for breakfast, and not much of anything else. Mr.
Cruncher was out of spirits, and out of temper, and kept an iron pot-lid
by him as a projectile for the correction of Mrs. Cruncher, in case he
should observe any symptoms of her saying Grace. He was brushed and washed
at the usual hour, and set off with his son to pursue his ostensible
calling.
<br />
Young Jerry, walking with the stool under his arm at his father’s side
along sunny and crowded Fleet-street, was a very different Young Jerry
from him of the previous night, running home through darkness and solitude
from his grim pursuer. His cunning was fresh with the day, and his qualms
were gone with the night—in which particulars it is not improbable
that he had compeers in Fleet-street and the City of London, that fine
morning.
<br />
“Father,” said Young Jerry, as they walked along: taking care to keep at
arm’s length and to have the stool well between them: “what’s a
Resurrection-Man?”
<br />
Mr. Cruncher came to a stop on the pavement before he answered, “How
should I know?”
<br />
“I thought you knowed everything, father,” said the artless boy.
<br />
“Hem! Well,” returned Mr. Cruncher, going on again, and lifting off his
hat to give his spikes free play, “he’s a tradesman.”
<br />
“What’s his goods, father?” asked the brisk Young Jerry.
<br />
“His goods,” said Mr. Cruncher, after turning it over in his mind, “is a
branch of Scientific goods.”
<br />
“Persons’ bodies, ain’t it, father?” asked the lively boy.
<br />
“I believe it is something of that sort,” said Mr. Cruncher.
<br />
“Oh, father, I should so like to be a Resurrection-Man when I’m quite
growed up!”
<br />
Mr. Cruncher was soothed, but shook his head in a dubious and moral way.
“It depends upon how you dewelop your talents. Be careful to dewelop your
talents, and never to say no more than you can help to nobody, and there’s
no telling at the present time what you may not come to be fit for.” As
Young Jerry, thus encouraged, went on a few yards in advance, to plant the
stool in the shadow of the Bar, Mr. Cruncher added to himself: “Jerry, you
honest tradesman, there’s hopes wot that boy will yet be a blessing to
you, and a recompense to you for his mother!”
CHAPTER XV.<br />Knitting
There had been earlier drinking than usual in the wine-shop of Monsieur
Defarge. As early as six o’clock in the morning, sallow faces peeping
through its barred windows had descried other faces within, bending over
measures of wine. Monsieur Defarge sold a very thin wine at the best of
times, but it would seem to have been an unusually thin wine that he sold
at this time. A sour wine, moreover, or a souring, for its influence on
the mood of those who drank it was to make them gloomy. No vivacious
Bacchanalian flame leaped out of the pressed grape of Monsieur Defarge:
but, a smouldering fire that burnt in the dark, lay hidden in the dregs of
it.
This had been the third morning in succession, on which there had been
early drinking at the wine-shop of Monsieur Defarge. It had begun on
Monday, and here was Wednesday come. There had been more of early brooding
than drinking; for, many men had listened and whispered and slunk about
there from the time of the opening of the door, who could not have laid a
piece of money on the counter to save their souls. These were to the full
as interested in the place, however, as if they could have commanded whole
barrels of wine; and they glided from seat to seat, and from corner to
corner, swallowing talk in lieu of drink, with greedy looks.
Notwithstanding an unusual flow of company, the master of the wine-shop
was not visible. He was not missed; for, nobody who crossed the threshold
looked for him, nobody asked for him, nobody wondered to see only Madame
Defarge in her seat, presiding over the distribution of wine, with a bowl
of battered small coins before her, as much defaced and beaten out of
their original impress as the small coinage of humanity from whose ragged
pockets they had come.
A suspended interest and a prevalent absence of mind, were perhaps
observed by the spies who looked in at the wine-shop, as they looked in at
every place, high and low, from the king’s palace to the criminal’s gaol.
Games at cards languished, players at dominoes musingly built towers with
them, drinkers drew figures on the tables with spilt drops of wine, Madame
Defarge herself picked out the pattern on her sleeve with her toothpick,
and saw and heard something inaudible and invisible a long way off.
Thus, Saint Antoine in this vinous feature of his, until midday. It was
high noontide, when two dusty men passed through his streets and under his
swinging lamps: of whom, one was Monsieur Defarge: the other a mender of
roads in a blue cap. All adust and athirst, the two entered the wine-shop.
Their arrival had lighted a kind of fire in the breast of Saint Antoine,
fast spreading as they came along, which stirred and flickered in flames
of faces at most doors and windows. Yet, no one had followed them, and no
man spoke when they entered the wine-shop, though the eyes of every man
there were turned upon them.
“Good day, gentlemen!” said Monsieur Defarge.
<br />
It may have been a signal for loosening the general tongue. It elicited an
answering chorus of “Good day!”
<br />
“It is bad weather, gentlemen,” said Defarge, shaking his head.
<br />
Upon which, every man looked at his neighbour, and then all cast down
their eyes and sat silent. Except one man, who got up and went out.
<br />
“My wife,” said Defarge aloud, addressing Madame Defarge: “I have
travelled certain leagues with this good mender of roads, called Jacques.
I met him—by accident—a day and half’s journey out of Paris.
He is a good child, this mender of roads, called Jacques. Give him to
drink, my wife!”
<br />
A second man got up and went out. Madame Defarge set wine before the
mender of roads called Jacques, who doffed his blue cap to the company,
and drank. In the breast of his blouse he carried some coarse dark bread;
he ate of this between whiles, and sat munching and drinking near Madame
Defarge’s counter. A third man got up and went out.
<br />
Defarge refreshed himself with a draught of wine—but, he took less
than was given to the stranger, as being himself a man to whom it was no
rarity—and stood waiting until the countryman had made his
breakfast. He looked at no one present, and no one now looked at him; not
even Madame Defarge, who had taken up her knitting, and was at work.
<br />
“Have you finished your repast, friend?” he asked, in due season.
<br />
“Yes, thank you.”
<br />
“Come, then! You shall see the apartment that I told you you could occupy.
It will suit you to a marvel.”
<br />
Out of the wine-shop into the street, out of the street into a courtyard,
out of the courtyard up a steep staircase, out of the staircase into a
garret—formerly the garret where a white-haired man sat on a low
bench, stooping forward and very busy, making shoes.
<br />
No white-haired man was there now; but, the three men were there who had
gone out of the wine-shop singly. And between them and the white-haired
man afar off, was the one small link, that they had once looked in at him
through the chinks in the wall.
<br />
Defarge closed the door carefully, and spoke in a subdued voice:
<br />
“Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques Three! This is the witness encountered
by appointment, by me, Jacques Four. He will tell you all. Speak, Jacques
Five!”
<br />
The mender of roads, blue cap in hand, wiped his swarthy forehead with it,
and said, “Where shall I commence, monsieur?”
<br />
“Commence,” was Monsieur Defarge’s not unreasonable reply, “at the
commencement.”
<br />
“I saw him then, messieurs,” began the mender of roads, “a year ago this
running summer, underneath the carriage of the Marquis, hanging by the
chain. Behold the manner of it. I leaving my work on the road, the sun
going to bed, the carriage of the Marquis slowly ascending the hill, he
hanging by the chain—like this.”
<br />
Again the mender of roads went through the whole performance; in which he
ought to have been perfect by that time, seeing that it had been the
infallible resource and indispensable entertainment of his village during
a whole year.
<br />
Jacques One struck in, and asked if he had ever seen the man before?
<br />
“Never,” answered the mender of roads, recovering his perpendicular.
<br />
Jacques Three demanded how he afterwards recognised him then?
<br />
“By his tall figure,” said the mender of roads, softly, and with his
finger at his nose. “When Monsieur the Marquis demands that evening, ‘Say,
what is he like?’ I make response, ‘Tall as a spectre.’”
<br />
“You should have said, short as a dwarf,” returned Jacques Two.
<br />
“But what did I know? The deed was not then accomplished, neither did he
confide in me. Observe! Under those circumstances even, I do not offer my
testimony. Monsieur the Marquis indicates me with his finger, standing
near our little fountain, and says, ‘To me! Bring that rascal!’ My faith,
messieurs, I offer nothing.”
<br />
“He is right there, Jacques,” murmured Defarge, to him who had
interrupted. “Go on!”
<br />
“Good!” said the mender of roads, with an air of mystery. “The tall man is
lost, and he is sought—how many months? Nine, ten, eleven?”
<br />
“No matter, the number,” said Defarge. “He is well hidden, but at last he
is unluckily found. Go on!”
<br />
“I am again at work upon the hill-side, and the sun is again about to go
to bed. I am collecting my tools to descend to my cottage down in the
village below, where it is already dark, when I raise my eyes, and see
coming over the hill six soldiers. In the midst of them is a tall man with
his arms bound—tied to his sides—like this!”
<br />
With the aid of his indispensable cap, he represented a man with his
elbows bound fast at his hips, with cords that were knotted behind him.
<br />
“I stand aside, messieurs, by my heap of stones, to see the soldiers and
their prisoner pass (for it is a solitary road, that, where any spectacle
is well worth looking at), and at first, as they approach, I see no more
than that they are six soldiers with a tall man bound, and that they are
almost black to my sight—except on the side of the sun going to bed,
where they have a red edge, messieurs. Also, I see that their long shadows
are on the hollow ridge on the opposite side of the road, and are on the
hill above it, and are like the shadows of giants. Also, I see that they
are covered with dust, and that the dust moves with them as they come,
tramp, tramp! But when they advance quite near to me, I recognise the tall
man, and he recognises me. Ah, but he would be well content to precipitate
himself over the hill-side once again, as on the evening when he and I
first encountered, close to the same spot!”
<br />
He described it as if he were there, and it was evident that he saw it
vividly; perhaps he had not seen much in his life.
<br />
“I do not show the soldiers that I recognise the tall man; he does not
show the soldiers that he recognises me; we do it, and we know it, with
our eyes. ‘Come on!’ says the chief of that company, pointing to the
village, ‘bring him fast to his tomb!’ and they bring him faster. I
follow. His arms are swelled because of being bound so tight, his wooden
shoes are large and clumsy, and he is lame. Because he is lame, and
consequently slow, they drive him with their guns—like this!”
<br />
He imitated the action of a man’s being impelled forward by the butt-ends
of muskets.
<br />
“As they descend the hill like madmen running a race, he falls. They laugh
and pick him up again. His face is bleeding and covered with dust, but he
cannot touch it; thereupon they laugh again. They bring him into the
village; all the village runs to look; they take him past the mill, and up
to the prison; all the village sees the prison gate open in the darkness
of the night, and swallow him—like this!”
<br />
He opened his mouth as wide as he could, and shut it with a sounding snap
of his teeth. Observant of his unwillingness to mar the effect by opening
it again, Defarge said, “Go on, Jacques.”
<br />
“All the village,” pursued the mender of roads, on tiptoe and in a low
voice, “withdraws; all the village whispers by the fountain; all the
village sleeps; all the village dreams of that unhappy one, within the
locks and bars of the prison on the crag, and never to come out of it,
except to perish. In the morning, with my tools upon my shoulder, eating
my morsel of black bread as I go, I make a circuit by the prison, on my
way to my work. There I see him, high up, behind the bars of a lofty iron
cage, bloody and dusty as last night, looking through. He has no hand
free, to wave to me; I dare not call to him; he regards me like a dead
man.”
<br />
Defarge and the three glanced darkly at one another. The looks of all of
them were dark, repressed, and revengeful, as they listened to the
countryman’s story; the manner of all of them, while it was secret, was
authoritative too. They had the air of a rough tribunal; Jacques One and
Two sitting on the old pallet-bed, each with his chin resting on his hand,
and his eyes intent on the road-mender; Jacques Three, equally intent, on
one knee behind them, with his agitated hand always gliding over the
network of fine nerves about his mouth and nose; Defarge standing between
them and the narrator, whom he had stationed in the light of the window,
by turns looking from him to them, and from them to him.
<br />
“Go on, Jacques,” said Defarge.
<br />
“He remains up there in his iron cage some days. The village looks at him
by stealth, for it is afraid. But it always looks up, from a distance, at
the prison on the crag; and in the evening, when the work of the day is
achieved and it assembles to gossip at the fountain, all faces are turned
towards the prison. Formerly, they were turned towards the posting-house;
now, they are turned towards the prison. They whisper at the fountain,
that although condemned to death he will not be executed; they say that
petitions have been presented in Paris, showing that he was enraged and
made mad by the death of his child; they say that a petition has been
presented to the King himself. What do I know? It is possible. Perhaps
yes, perhaps no.”
<br />
“Listen then, Jacques,” Number One of that name sternly interposed. “Know
that a petition was presented to the King and Queen. All here, yourself
excepted, saw the King take it, in his carriage in the street, sitting
beside the Queen. It is Defarge whom you see here, who, at the hazard of
his life, darted out before the horses, with the petition in his hand.”
<br />
“And once again listen, Jacques!” said the kneeling Number Three: his
fingers ever wandering over and over those fine nerves, with a strikingly
greedy air, as if he hungered for something—that was neither food
nor drink; “the guard, horse and foot, surrounded the petitioner, and
struck him blows. You hear?”
<br />
“I hear, messieurs.”
<br />
“Go on then,” said Defarge.
<br />
“Again; on the other hand, they whisper at the fountain,” resumed the
countryman, “that he is brought down into our country to be executed on
the spot, and that he will very certainly be executed. They even whisper
that because he has slain Monseigneur, and because Monseigneur was the
father of his tenants—serfs—what you will—he will be
executed as a parricide. One old man says at the fountain, that his right
hand, armed with the knife, will be burnt off before his face; that, into
wounds which will be made in his arms, his breast, and his legs, there
will be poured boiling oil, melted lead, hot resin, wax, and sulphur;
finally, that he will be torn limb from limb by four strong horses. That
old man says, all this was actually done to a prisoner who made an attempt
on the life of the late King, Louis Fifteen. But how do I know if he lies?
I am not a scholar.”
<br />
“Listen once again then, Jacques!” said the man with the restless hand and
the craving air. “The name of that prisoner was Damiens, and it was all
done in open day, in the open streets of this city of Paris; and nothing
was more noticed in the vast concourse that saw it done, than the crowd of
ladies of quality and fashion, who were full of eager attention to the
last—to the last, Jacques, prolonged until nightfall, when he had
lost two legs and an arm, and still breathed! And it was done—why,
how old are you?”
<br />
“Thirty-five,” said the mender of roads, who looked sixty.
<br />
“It was done when you were more than ten years old; you might have seen
it.”
<br />
“Enough!” said Defarge, with grim impatience. “Long live the Devil! Go
on.”
<br />
“Well! Some whisper this, some whisper that; they speak of nothing else;
even the fountain appears to fall to that tune. At length, on Sunday night
when all the village is asleep, come soldiers, winding down from the
prison, and their guns ring on the stones of the little street. Workmen
dig, workmen hammer, soldiers laugh and sing; in the morning, by the
fountain, there is raised a gallows forty feet high, poisoning the water.”
<br />
The mender of roads looked rather than the low
ceiling, and pointed as if he saw the gallows somewhere in the sky.
<br />
“All work is stopped, all assemble there, nobody leads the cows out, the
cows are there with the rest. At midday, the roll of drums. Soldiers have
marched into the prison in the night, and he is in the midst of many
soldiers. He is bound as before, and in his mouth there is a gag—tied
so, with a tight string, making him look almost as if he laughed.” He
suggested it, by creasing his face with his two thumbs, from the corners
of his mouth to his ears. “On the top of the gallows is fixed the knife,
blade upwards, with its point in the air. He is hanged there forty feet
high—and is left hanging, poisoning the water.”
<br />
They looked at one another, as he used his blue cap to wipe his face, on
which the perspiration had started afresh while he recalled the spectacle.
<br />
“It is frightful, messieurs. How can the women and the children draw
water! Who can gossip of an evening, under that shadow! Under it, have I
said? When I left the village, Monday evening as the sun was going to bed,
and looked back from the hill, the shadow struck across the church, across
the mill, across the prison—seemed to strike across the earth,
messieurs, to where the sky rests upon it!”
<br />
The hungry man gnawed one of his fingers as he looked at the other three,
and his finger quivered with the craving that was on him.
<br />
“That’s all, messieurs. I left at sunset (as I had been warned to do), and
I walked on, that night and half next day, until I met (as I was warned I
should) this comrade. With him, I came on, now riding and now walking,
through the rest of yesterday and through last night. And here you see
me!”
<br />
After a gloomy silence, the first Jacques said, “Good! You have acted and
recounted faithfully. Will you wait for us a little, outside the door?”
<br />
“Very willingly,” said the mender of roads. Whom Defarge escorted to the
top of the stairs, and, leaving seated there, returned.
<br />
The three had risen, and their heads were together when he came back to
the garret.
<br />
“How say you, Jacques?” demanded Number One. “To be registered?”
<br />
“To be registered, as doomed to destruction,” returned Defarge.
<br />
“Magnificent!” croaked the man with the craving.
<br />
“The chateau, and all the race?” inquired the first.
<br />
“The chateau and all the race,” returned Defarge. “Extermination.”
<br />
The hungry man repeated, in a rapturous croak, “Magnificent!” and began
gnawing another finger.
<br />
“Are you sure,” asked Jacques Two, of Defarge, “that no embarrassment can
arise from our manner of keeping the register? Without doubt it is safe,
for no one beyond ourselves can decipher it; but shall we always be able
to decipher it—or, I ought to say, will she?”
<br />
“Jacques,” returned Defarge, drawing himself up, “if madame my wife
undertook to keep the register in her memory alone, she would not lose a
word of it—not a syllable of it. Knitted, in her own stitches and
her own symbols, it will always be as plain to her as the sun. Confide in
Madame Defarge. It would be easier for the weakest poltroon that lives, to
erase himself from existence, than to erase one letter of his name or
crimes from the knitted register of Madame Defarge.”
<br />
There was a murmur of confidence and approval, and then the man who
hungered, asked: “Is this rustic to be sent back soon? I hope so. He is
very simple; is he not a little dangerous?”
<br />
“He knows nothing,” said Defarge; “at least nothing more than would easily
elevate himself to a gallows of the same height. I charge myself with him;
let him remain with me; I will take care of him, and set him on his road.
He wishes to see the fine world—the King, the Queen, and Court; let
him see them on Sunday.”
<br />
“What?” exclaimed the hungry man, staring. “Is it a good sign, that he
wishes to see Royalty and Nobility?”
<br />
“Jacques,” said Defarge; “judiciously show a cat milk, if you wish her to
thirst for it. Judiciously show a dog his natural prey, if you wish him to
bring it down one day.”
<br />
Nothing more was said, and the mender of roads, being found already dozing
on the topmost stair, was advised to lay himself down on the pallet-bed
and take some rest. He needed no persuasion, and was soon asleep.
<br />
Worse quarters than Defarge’s wine-shop, could easily have been found in
Paris for a provincial slave of that degree. Saving for a mysterious dread
of madame by which he was constantly haunted, his life was very new and
agreeable. But, madame sat all day at her counter, so expressly
unconscious of him, and so particularly determined not to perceive that
his being there had any connection with anything below the surface, that
he shook in his wooden shoes whenever his eye lighted on her. For, he
contended with himself that it was impossible to foresee what that lady
might pretend next; and he felt assured that if she should take it into
her brightly ornamented head to pretend that she had seen him do a murder
and afterwards flay the victim, she would infallibly go through with it
until the play was played out.
<br />
Therefore, when Sunday came, the mender of roads was not enchanted (though
he said he was) to find that madame was to accompany monsieur and himself
to Versailles. It was additionally disconcerting to have madame knitting
all the way there, in a public conveyance; it was additionally
disconcerting yet, to have madame in the crowd in the afternoon, still
with her knitting in her hands as the crowd waited to see the carriage of
the King and Queen.
<br />
“You work hard, madame,” said a man near her.
<br />
“Yes,” answered Madame Defarge; “I have a good deal to do.”
<br />
“What do you make, madame?”
<br />
“Many things.”
<br />
“For instance—”
<br />
“For instance,” returned Madame Defarge, composedly, “shrouds.”
<br />
The man moved a little further away, as soon as he could, and the mender
of roads fanned himself with his blue cap: feeling it mightily close and
oppressive. If he needed a King and Queen to restore him, he was fortunate
in having his remedy at hand; for, soon the large-faced King and the
fair-faced Queen came in their golden coach, attended by the shining
Bull’s Eye of their Court, a glittering multitude of laughing ladies and
fine lords; and in jewels and silks and powder and splendour and elegantly
spurning figures and handsomely disdainful faces of both sexes, the mender
of roads bathed himself, so much to his temporary intoxication, that he
cried Long live the King, Long live the Queen, Long live everybody and
everything! as if he had never heard of ubiquitous Jacques in his time.
Then, there were gardens, courtyards, terraces, fountains, green banks,
more King and Queen, more Bull’s Eye, more lords and ladies, more Long
live they all! until he absolutely wept with sentiment. During the whole
of this scene, which lasted some three hours, he had plenty of shouting
and weeping and sentimental company, and throughout Defarge held him by
the collar, as if to restrain him from flying at the objects of his brief
devotion and tearing them to pieces.
<br />
“Bravo!” said Defarge, clapping him on the back when it was over, like a
patron; “you are a good boy!”
<br />
The mender of roads was now coming to himself, and was mistrustful of
having made a mistake in his late demonstrations; but no.
<br />
“You are the fellow we want,” said Defarge, in his ear; “you make these
fools believe that it will last for ever. Then, they are the more
insolent, and it is the nearer ended.”
<br />
“Hey!” cried the mender of roads, reflectively; “that’s true.”
<br />
“These fools know nothing. While they despise your breath, and would stop
it for ever and ever, in you or in a hundred like you rather than in one
of their own horses or dogs, they only know what your breath tells them.
Let it deceive them, then, a little longer; it cannot deceive them too
much.”
<br />
Madame Defarge looked superciliously at the client, and nodded in
confirmation.
<br />
“As to you,” said she, “you would shout and shed tears for anything, if it
made a show and a noise. Say! Would you not?”
<br />
“Truly, madame, I think so. For the moment.”
<br />
“If you were shown a great heap of dolls, and were set upon them to pluck
them to pieces and despoil them for your own advantage, you would pick out
the richest and gayest. Say! Would you not?”
<br />
“Truly yes, madame.”
<br />
“Yes. And if you were shown a flock of birds, unable to fly, and were set
upon them to strip them of their feathers for your own advantage, you
would set upon the birds of the finest feathers; would you not?”
<br />
“It is true, madame.”
<br />
“You have seen both dolls and birds to-day,” said Madame Defarge, with a
wave of her hand towards the place where they had last been apparent;
“now, go home!”
CHAPTER XVI.<br />Still Knitting
Madame Defarge and monsieur her husband returned amicably to the bosom of
Saint Antoine, while a speck in a blue cap toiled through the darkness,
and through the dust, and down the weary miles of avenue by the wayside,
slowly tending towards that point of the compass where the chateau of
Monsieur the Marquis, now in his grave, listened to the whispering trees.
Such ample leisure had the stone faces, now, for listening to the trees
and to the fountain, that the few village scarecrows who, in their quest
for herbs to eat and fragments of dead stick to burn, strayed within sight
of the great stone courtyard and terrace staircase, had it borne in upon
their starved fancy that the expression of the faces was altered. A rumour
just lived in the village—had a faint and bare existence there, as
its people had—that when the knife struck home, the faces changed,
from faces of pride to faces of anger and pain; also, that when that
dangling figure was hauled up forty feet above the fountain, they changed
again, and bore a cruel look of being avenged, which they would henceforth
bear for ever. In the stone face over the great window of the bed-chamber
where the murder was done, two fine dints were pointed out in the
sculptured nose, which everybody recognised, and which nobody had seen of
old; and on the scarce occasions when two or three ragged peasants emerged
from the crowd to take a hurried peep at Monsieur the Marquis petrified, a
skinny finger would not have pointed to it for a minute, before they all
started away among the moss and leaves, like the more fortunate hares who
could find a living there.
Chateau and hut, stone face and dangling figure, the red stain on the
stone floor, and the pure water in the village well—thousands of
acres of land—a whole province of France—all France itself—lay
under the night sky, concentrated into a faint hair-breadth line. So does
a whole world, with all its greatnesses and littlenesses, lie in a
twinkling star. And as mere human knowledge can split a ray of light and
analyse the manner of its composition, so, sublimer intelligences may read
in the feeble shining of this earth of ours, every thought and act, every
vice and virtue, of every responsible creature on it.
The Defarges, husband and wife, came lumbering under the starlight, in
their public vehicle, to that gate of Paris whereunto their journey
naturally tended. There was the usual stoppage at the barrier guardhouse,
and the usual lanterns came glancing forth for the usual examination and
inquiry. Monsieur Defarge alighted; knowing one or two of the soldiery
there, and one of the police. The latter he was intimate with, and
affectionately embraced.
When Saint Antoine had again enfolded the Defarges in his dusky wings, and
they, having finally alighted near the Saint’s boundaries, were picking
their way on foot through the black mud and offal of his streets, Madame
Defarge spoke to her husband:
“Say then, my friend; what did Jacques of the police tell thee?”
“Very little to-night, but all he knows. There is another spy commissioned
for our quarter. There may be many more, for all that he can say, but he
knows of one.”
“Eh well!” said Madame Defarge, raising her eyebrows with a cool business
air. “It is necessary to register him. How do they call that man?”
“He is English.”
“So much the better. His name?”
“Barsad,” said Defarge, making it French by pronunciation. But, he had
been so careful to get it accurately, that he then spelt it with perfect
correctness.
“Barsad,” repeated madame. “Good. Christian name?”
“John.”
“John Barsad,” repeated madame, after murmuring it once to herself. “Good.
His appearance; is it known?”
“Age, about forty years; height, about five feet nine; black hair;
complexion dark; generally, rather handsome visage; eyes dark, face thin,
long, and sallow; nose aquiline, but not straight, having a peculiar
inclination towards the left cheek; expression, therefore, sinister.”
“Eh my faith. It is a portrait!” said madame, laughing. “He shall be
registered to-morrow.”
They turned into the wine-shop, which was closed (for it was midnight),
and where Madame Defarge immediately took her post at her desk, counted
the small moneys that had been taken during her absence, examined the
stock, went through the entries in the book, made other entries of her
own, checked the serving man in every possible way, and finally dismissed
him to bed. Then she turned out the contents of the bowl of money for the
second time, and began knotting them up in her handkerchief, in a chain of
separate knots, for safe keeping through the night. All this while,
Defarge, with his pipe in his mouth, walked up and down, complacently
admiring, but never interfering; in which condition, indeed, as to the
business and his domestic affairs, he walked up and down through life.
The night was hot, and the shop, close shut and surrounded by so foul a
neighbourhood, was ill-smelling. Monsieur Defarge’s olfactory sense was by
no means delicate, but the stock of wine smelt much stronger than it ever
tasted, and so did the stock of rum and brandy and aniseed. He whiffed the
compound of scents away, as he put down his smoked-out pipe.
“You are fatigued,” said madame, raising her glance as she knotted the
money. “There are only the usual odours.”
“I am a little tired,” her husband acknowledged.
“You are a little depressed, too,” said madame, whose quick eyes had never
been so intent on the accounts, but they had had a ray or two for him.
“Oh, the men, the men!”
“But my dear!” began Defarge.
“But my dear!” repeated madame, nodding firmly; “but my dear! You are
faint of heart to-night, my dear!”
“Well, then,” said Defarge, as if a thought were wrung out of his breast,
“it a long time.”
“It is a long time,” repeated his wife; “and when is it not a long time?
Vengeance and retribution require a long time; it is the rule.”
“It does not take a long time to strike a man with Lightning,” said
Defarge.
“How long,” demanded madame, composedly, “does it take to make and store
the lightning? Tell me.”
Defarge raised his head thoughtfully, as if there were something in that
too.
“It does not take a long time,” said madame, “for an earthquake to swallow
a town. Eh well! Tell me how long it takes to prepare the earthquake?”
“A long time, I suppose,” said Defarge.
“But when it is ready, it takes place, and grinds to pieces everything
before it. In the meantime, it is always preparing, though it is not seen
or heard. That is your consolation. Keep it.”
She tied a knot with flashing eyes, as if it throttled a foe.
“I tell thee,” said madame, extending her right hand, for emphasis, “that
although it is a long time on the road, it is on the road and coming. I
tell thee it never retreats, and never stops. I tell thee it is always
advancing. Look around and consider the lives of all the world that we
know, consider the faces of all the world that we know, consider the rage
and discontent to which the Jacquerie addresses itself with more and more
of certainty every hour. Can such things last? Bah! I mock you.”
“My brave wife,” returned Defarge, standing before her with his head a
little bent, and his hands clasped at his back, like a docile and
attentive pupil before his catechist, “I do not question all this. But it
has lasted a long time, and it is possible—you know well, my wife,
it is possible—that it may not come, during our lives.”
“Eh well! How then?” demanded madame, tying another knot, as if there were
another enemy strangled.
“Well!” said Defarge, with a half complaining and half apologetic shrug.
“We shall not see the triumph.”
“We shall have helped it,” returned madame, with her extended hand in
strong action. “Nothing that we do, is done in vain. I believe, with all
my soul, that we shall see the triumph. But even if not, even if I knew
certainly not, show me the neck of an aristocrat and tyrant, and still I
would—”
Then madame, with her teeth set, tied a very terrible knot indeed.
“Hold!” cried Defarge, reddening a little as if he felt charged with
cowardice; “I too, my dear, will stop at nothing.”
“Yes! But it is your weakness that you sometimes need to see your victim
and your opportunity, to sustain you. Sustain yourself without that. When
the time comes, let loose a tiger and a devil; but wait for the time with
the tiger and the devil chained—not shown—yet always ready.”
Madame enforced the conclusion of this piece of advice by striking her
little counter with her chain of money as if she knocked its brains out,
and then gathering the heavy handkerchief under her arm in a serene
manner, and observing that it was time to go to bed.
Next noontide saw the admirable woman in her usual place in the wine-shop,
knitting away assiduously. A rose lay beside her, and if she now and then
glanced at the flower, it was with no infraction of her usual preoccupied
air. There were a few customers, drinking or not drinking, standing or
seated, sprinkled about. The day was very hot, and heaps of flies, who
were extending their inquisitive and adventurous perquisitions into all
the glutinous little glasses near madame, fell dead at the bottom. Their
decease made no impression on the other flies out promenading, who looked
at them in the coolest manner (as if they themselves were elephants, or
something as far removed), until they met the same fate. Curious to
consider how heedless flies are!—perhaps they thought as much at
Court that sunny summer day.
A figure entering at the door threw a shadow on Madame Defarge which she
felt to be a new one. She laid down her knitting, and began to pin her
rose in her head-dress, before she looked at the figure.
It was curious. The moment Madame Defarge took up the rose, the customers
ceased talking, and began gradually to drop out of the wine-shop.
“Good day, madame,” said the new-comer.
“Good day, monsieur.”
She said it aloud, but added to herself, as she resumed her knitting:
“Hah! Good day, age about forty, height about five feet nine, black hair,
generally rather handsome visage, complexion dark, eyes dark, thin, long
and sallow face, aquiline nose but not straight, having a peculiar
inclination towards the left cheek which imparts a sinister expression!
Good day, one and all!”
“Have the goodness to give me a little glass of old cognac, and a mouthful
of cool fresh water, madame.”
Madame complied with a polite air.
“Marvellous cognac this, madame!”
It was the first time it had ever been so complimented, and Madame Defarge
knew enough of its antecedents to know better. She said, however, that the
cognac was flattered, and took up her knitting. The visitor watched her
fingers for a few moments, and took the opportunity of observing the place
in general.
“You knit with great skill, madame.”
“I am accustomed to it.”
“A pretty pattern too!”
“ think so?” said madame, looking at him with a smile.
“Decidedly. May one ask what it is for?”
“Pastime,” said madame, still looking at him with a smile while her
fingers moved nimbly.
“Not for use?”
“That depends. I may find a use for it one day. If I do—Well,” said
madame, drawing a breath and nodding her head with a stern kind of
coquetry, “I’ll use it!”
It was remarkable; but, the taste of Saint Antoine seemed to be decidedly
opposed to a rose on the head-dress of Madame Defarge. Two men had entered
separately, and had been about to order drink, when, catching sight of
that novelty, they faltered, made a pretence of looking about as if for
some friend who was not there, and went away. Nor, of those who had been
there when this visitor entered, was there one left. They had all dropped
off. The spy had kept his eyes open, but had been able to detect no sign.
They had lounged away in a poverty-stricken, purposeless, accidental
manner, quite natural and unimpeachable.
“,” thought madame, checking off her work as her fingers
knitted, and her eyes looked at the stranger. “Stay long enough, and I
shall knit ‘’ before you go.”
“You have a husband, madame?”
“I have.”
“Children?”
“No children.”
“Business seems bad?”
“Business is very bad; the people are so poor.”
“Ah, the unfortunate, miserable people! So oppressed, too—as you
say.”
“As say,” madame retorted, correcting him, and deftly knitting
an extra something into his name that boded him no good.
“Pardon me; certainly it was I who said so, but you naturally think so. Of
course.”
“ think?” returned madame, in a high voice. “I and my husband have
enough to do to keep this wine-shop open, without thinking. All we think,
here, is how to live. That is the subject think of, and it gives
us, from morning to night, enough to think about, without embarrassing our
heads concerning others. think for others? No, no.”
The spy, who was there to pick up any crumbs he could find or make, did
not allow his baffled state to express itself in his sinister face; but,
stood with an air of gossiping gallantry, leaning his elbow on Madame
Defarge’s little counter, and occasionally sipping his cognac.
“A bad business this, madame, of Gaspard’s execution. Ah! the poor
Gaspard!” With a sigh of great compassion.
“My faith!” returned madame, coolly and lightly, “if people use knives for
such purposes, they have to pay for it. He knew beforehand what the price
of his luxury was; he has paid the price.”
“I believe,” said the spy, dropping his soft voice to a tone that invited
confidence, and expressing an injured revolutionary susceptibility in
every muscle of his wicked face: “I believe there is much compassion and
anger in this neighbourhood, touching the poor fellow? Between ourselves.”
“Is there?” asked madame, vacantly.
“Is there not?”
“—Here is my husband!” said Madame Defarge.
As the keeper of the wine-shop entered at the door, the spy saluted him by
touching his hat, and saying, with an engaging smile, “Good day, Jacques!”
Defarge stopped short, and stared at him.
“Good day, Jacques!” the spy repeated; with not quite so much confidence,
or quite so easy a smile under the stare.
“You deceive yourself, monsieur,” returned the keeper of the wine-shop.
“You mistake me for another. That is not my name. I am Ernest Defarge.”
“It is all the same,” said the spy, airily, but discomfited too: “good
day!”
“Good day!” answered Defarge, drily.
“I was saying to madame, with whom I had the pleasure of chatting when you
entered, that they tell me there is—and no wonder!—much
sympathy and anger in Saint Antoine, touching the unhappy fate of poor
Gaspard.”
“No one has told me so,” said Defarge, shaking his head. “I know nothing
of it.”
Having said it, he passed behind the little counter, and stood with his
hand on the back of his wife’s chair, looking over that barrier at the
person to whom they were both opposed, and whom either of them would have
shot with the greatest satisfaction.
The spy, well used to his business, did not change his unconscious
attitude, but drained his little glass of cognac, took a sip of fresh
water, and asked for another glass of cognac. Madame Defarge poured it out
for him, took to her knitting again, and hummed a little song over it.
“You seem to know this quarter well; that is to say, better than I do?”
observed Defarge.
“Not at all, but I hope to know it better. I am so profoundly interested
in its miserable inhabitants.”
“Hah!” muttered Defarge.
“The pleasure of conversing with you, Monsieur Defarge, recalls to me,”
pursued the spy, “that I have the honour of cherishing some interesting
associations with your name.”
“Indeed!” said Defarge, with much indifference.
“Yes, indeed. When Doctor Manette was released, you, his old domestic, had
the charge of him, I know. He was delivered to you. You see I am informed
of the circumstances?”
“Such is the fact, certainly,” said Defarge. He had had it conveyed to
him, in an accidental touch of his wife’s elbow as she knitted and
warbled, that he would do best to answer, but always with brevity.
“It was to you,” said the spy, “that his daughter came; and it was from
your care that his daughter took him, accompanied by a neat brown
monsieur; how is he called?—in a little wig—Lorry—of the
bank of Tellson and Company—over to England.”
“Such is the fact,” repeated Defarge.
“Very interesting remembrances!” said the spy. “I have known Doctor
Manette and his daughter, in England.”
“Yes?” said Defarge.
“You don’t hear much about them now?” said the spy.
“No,” said Defarge.
“In effect,” madame struck in, looking up from her work and her little
song, “we never hear about them. We received the news of their safe
arrival, and perhaps another letter, or perhaps two; but, since then, they
have gradually taken their road in life—we, ours—and we have
held no correspondence.”
“Perfectly so, madame,” replied the spy. “She is going to be married.”
“Going?” echoed madame. “She was pretty enough to have been married long
ago. You English are cold, it seems to me.”
“Oh! You know I am English.”
“I perceive your tongue is,” returned madame; “and what the tongue is, I
suppose the man is.”
He did not take the identification as a compliment; but he made the best
of it, and turned it off with a laugh. After sipping his cognac to the
end, he added:
“Yes, Miss Manette is going to be married. But not to an Englishman; to
one who, like herself, is French by birth. And speaking of Gaspard (ah,
poor Gaspard! It was cruel, cruel!), it is a curious thing that she is
going to marry the nephew of Monsieur the Marquis, for whom Gaspard was
exalted to that height of so many feet; in other words, the present
Marquis. But he lives unknown in England, he is no Marquis there; he is
Mr. Charles Darnay. D’Aulnais is the name of his mother’s family.”
Madame Defarge knitted steadily, but the intelligence had a palpable
effect upon her husband. Do what he would, behind the little counter, as
to the striking of a light and the lighting of his pipe, he was troubled,
and his hand was not trustworthy. The spy would have been no spy if he had
failed to see it, or to record it in his mind.
Having made, at least, this one hit, whatever it might prove to be worth,
and no customers coming in to help him to any other, Mr. Barsad paid for
what he had drunk, and took his leave: taking occasion to say, in a
genteel manner, before he departed, that he looked forward to the pleasure
of seeing Monsieur and Madame Defarge again. For some minutes after he had
emerged into the outer presence of Saint Antoine, the husband and wife
remained exactly as he had left them, lest he should come back.
“Can it be true,” said Defarge, in a low voice, looking down at his wife
as he stood smoking with his hand on the back of her chair: “what he has
said of Ma’amselle Manette?”
“As he has said it,” returned madame, lifting her eyebrows a little, “it
is probably false. But it may be true.”
“If it is—” Defarge began, and stopped.
“If it is?” repeated his wife.
“—And if it does come, while we live to see it triumph—I hope,
for her sake, Destiny will keep her husband out of France.”
“Her husband’s destiny,” said Madame Defarge, with her usual composure,
“will take him where he is to go, and will lead him to the end that is to
end him. That is all I know.”
“But it is very strange—now, at least, is it not very strange”—said
Defarge, rather pleading with his wife to induce her to admit it, “that,
after all our sympathy for Monsieur her father, and herself, her husband’s
name should be proscribed under your hand at this moment, by the side of
that infernal dog’s who has just left us?”
“Stranger things than that will happen when it does come,” answered
madame. “I have them both here, of a certainty; and they are both here for
their merits; that is enough.”
She rolled up her knitting when she had said those words, and presently
took the rose out of the handkerchief that was wound about her head.
Either Saint Antoine had an instinctive sense that the objectionable
decoration was gone, or Saint Antoine was on the watch for its
disappearance; howbeit, the Saint took courage to lounge in, very shortly
afterwards, and the wine-shop recovered its habitual aspect.
In the evening, at which season of all others Saint Antoine turned himself
inside out, and sat on door-steps and window-ledges, and came to the
corners of vile streets and courts, for a breath of air, Madame Defarge
with her work in her hand was accustomed to pass from place to place and
from group to group: a Missionary—there were many like her—such
as the world will do well never to breed again. All the women knitted.
They knitted worthless things; but, the mechanical work was a mechanical
substitute for eating and drinking; the hands moved for the jaws and the
digestive apparatus: if the bony fingers had been still, the stomachs
would have been more famine-pinched.
But, as the fingers went, the eyes went, and the thoughts. And as Madame
Defarge moved on from group to group, all three went quicker and fiercer
among every little knot of women that she had spoken with, and left
behind.
Her husband smoked at his door, looking after her with admiration. “A
great woman,” said he, “a strong woman, a grand woman, a frightfully grand
woman!”
Darkness closed around, and then came the ringing of church bells and the
distant beating of the military drums in the Palace Courtyard, as the
women sat knitting, knitting. Darkness encompassed them. Another darkness
was closing in as surely, when the church bells, then ringing pleasantly
in many an airy steeple over France, should be melted into thundering
cannon; when the military drums should be beating to drown a wretched
voice, that night all potent as the voice of Power and Plenty, Freedom and
Life. So much was closing in about the women who sat knitting, knitting,
that they their very selves were closing in around a structure yet
unbuilt, where they were to sit knitting, knitting, counting dropping
heads.
CHAPTER XVII.<br />One Night
Never did the sun go down with a brighter glory on the quiet corner in
Soho, than one memorable evening when the Doctor and his daughter sat
under the plane-tree together. Never did the moon rise with a milder
radiance over great London, than on that night when it found them still
seated under the tree, and shone upon their faces through its leaves.
Lucie was to be married to-morrow. She had reserved this last evening for
her father, and they sat alone under the plane-tree.
“You are happy, my dear father?”
“Quite, my child.”
They had said little, though they had been there a long time. When it was
yet light enough to work and read, she had neither engaged herself in her
usual work, nor had she read to him. She had employed herself in both
ways, at his side under the tree, many and many a time; but, this time was
not quite like any other, and nothing could make it so.
“And I am very happy to-night, dear father. I am deeply happy in the love
that Heaven has so blessed—my love for Charles, and Charles’s love
for me. But, if my life were not to be still consecrated to you, or if my
marriage were so arranged as that it would part us, even by the length of
a few of these streets, I should be more unhappy and self-reproachful now
than I can tell you. Even as it is—”
Even as it was, she could not command her voice.
In the sad moonlight, she clasped him by the neck, and laid her face upon
his breast. In the moonlight which is always sad, as the light of the sun
itself is—as the light called human life is—at its coming and
its going.
“Dearest dear! Can you tell me, this last time, that you feel quite, quite
sure, no new affections of mine, and no new duties of mine, will ever
interpose between us? know it well, but do you know it? In your
own heart, do you feel quite certain?”
Her father answered, with a cheerful firmness of conviction he could
scarcely have assumed, “Quite sure, my darling! More than that,” he added,
as he tenderly kissed her: “my future is far brighter, Lucie, seen through
your marriage, than it could have been—nay, than it ever was—without
it.”
“If I could hope , my father!—”
“Believe it, love! Indeed it is so. Consider how natural and how plain it
is, my dear, that it should be so. You, devoted and young, cannot fully
appreciate the anxiety I have felt that your life should not be wasted—”
She moved her hand towards his lips, but he took it in his, and repeated
the word.
“—wasted, my child—should not be wasted, struck aside from the
natural order of things—for my sake. Your unselfishness cannot
entirely comprehend how much my mind has gone on this; but, only ask
yourself, how could my happiness be perfect, while yours was incomplete?”
“If I had never seen Charles, my father, I should have been quite happy
with you.”
He smiled at her unconscious admission that she would have been unhappy
without Charles, having seen him; and replied:
“My child, you did see him, and it is Charles. If it had not been Charles,
it would have been another. Or, if it had been no other, I should have
been the cause, and then the dark part of my life would have cast its
shadow beyond myself, and would have fallen on you.”
It was the first time, except at the trial, of her ever hearing him refer
to the period of his suffering. It gave her a strange and new sensation
while his words were in her ears; and she remembered it long afterwards.
“See!” said the Doctor of Beauvais, raising his hand towards the moon. “I
have looked at her from my prison-window, when I could not bear her light.
I have looked at her when it has been such torture to me to think of her
shining upon what I had lost, that I have beaten my head against my
prison-walls. I have looked at her, in a state so dull and lethargic, that
I have thought of nothing but the number of horizontal lines I could draw
across her at the full, and the number of perpendicular lines with which I
could intersect them.” He added in his inward and pondering manner, as he
looked at the moon, “It was twenty either way, I remember, and the
twentieth was difficult to squeeze in.”
The strange thrill with which she heard him go back to that time, deepened
as he dwelt upon it; but, there was nothing to shock her in the manner of
his reference. He only seemed to contrast his present cheerfulness and
felicity with the dire endurance that was over.
“I have looked at her, speculating thousands of times upon the unborn
child from whom I had been rent. Whether it was alive. Whether it had been
born alive, or the poor mother’s shock had killed it. Whether it was a son
who would some day avenge his father. (There was a time in my
imprisonment, when my desire for vengeance was unbearable.) Whether it was
a son who would never know his father’s story; who might even live to
weigh the possibility of his father’s having disappeared of his own will
and act. Whether it was a daughter who would grow to be a woman.”
She drew closer to him, and kissed his cheek and his hand.
“I have pictured my daughter, to myself, as perfectly forgetful of me—rather,
altogether ignorant of me, and unconscious of me. I have cast up the years
of her age, year after year. I have seen her married to a man who knew
nothing of my fate. I have altogether perished from the remembrance of the
living, and in the next generation my place was a blank.”
“My father! Even to hear that you had such thoughts of a daughter who
never existed, strikes to my heart as if I had been that child.”
“You, Lucie? It is out of the Consolation and restoration you have brought
to me, that these remembrances arise, and pass between us and the moon on
this last night.—What did I say just now?”
“She knew nothing of you. She cared nothing for you.”
“So! But on other moonlight nights, when the sadness and the silence have
touched me in a different way—have affected me with something as
like a sorrowful sense of peace, as any emotion that had pain for its
foundations could—I have imagined her as coming to me in my cell,
and leading me out into the freedom beyond the fortress. I have seen her
image in the moonlight often, as I now see you; except that I never held
her in my arms; it stood between the little grated window and the door.
But, you understand that that was not the child I am speaking of?”
“The figure was not; the—the—image; the fancy?”
“No. That was another thing. It stood before my disturbed sense of sight,
but it never moved. The phantom that my mind pursued, was another and more
real child. Of her outward appearance I know no more than that she was
like her mother. The other had that likeness too—as you have—but
was not the same. Can you follow me, Lucie? Hardly, I think? I doubt you
must have been a solitary prisoner to understand these perplexed
distinctions.”
His collected and calm manner could not prevent her blood from running
cold, as he thus tried to anatomise his old condition.
“In that more peaceful state, I have imagined her, in the moonlight,
coming to me and taking me out to show me that the home of her married
life was full of her loving remembrance of her lost father. My picture was
in her room, and I was in her prayers. Her life was active, cheerful,
useful; but my poor history pervaded it all.”
“I was that child, my father, I was not half so good, but in my love that
was I.”
“And she showed me her children,” said the Doctor of Beauvais, “and they
had heard of me, and had been taught to pity me. When they passed a prison
of the State, they kept far from its frowning walls, and looked up at its
bars, and spoke in whispers. She could never deliver me; I imagined that
she always brought me back after showing me such things. But then, blessed
with the relief of tears, I fell upon my knees, and blessed her.”
“I am that child, I hope, my father. O my dear, my dear, will you bless me
as fervently to-morrow?”
“Lucie, I recall these old troubles in the reason that I have to-night for
loving you better than words can tell, and thanking God for my great
happiness. My thoughts, when they were wildest, never rose near the
happiness that I have known with you, and that we have before us.”
He embraced her, solemnly commended her to Heaven, and humbly thanked
Heaven for having bestowed her on him. By-and-bye, they went into the
house.
There was no one bidden to the marriage but Mr. Lorry; there was even to
be no bridesmaid but the gaunt Miss Pross. The marriage was to make no
change in their place of residence; they had been able to extend it, by
taking to themselves the upper rooms formerly belonging to the apocryphal
invisible lodger, and they desired nothing more.
Doctor Manette was very cheerful at the little supper. They were only
three at table, and Miss Pross made the third. He regretted that Charles
was not there; was more than half disposed to object to the loving little
plot that kept him away; and drank to him affectionately.
So, the time came for him to bid Lucie good night, and they separated.
But, in the stillness of the third hour of the morning, Lucie came
downstairs again, and stole into his room; not free from unshaped fears,
beforehand.
All things, however, were in their places; all was quiet; and he lay
asleep, his white hair picturesque on the untroubled pillow, and his hands
lying quiet on the coverlet. She put her needless candle in the shadow at
a distance, crept up to his bed, and put her lips to his; then, leaned
over him, and looked at him.
Into his handsome face, the bitter waters of captivity had worn; but, he
covered up their tracks with a determination so strong, that he held the
mastery of them even in his sleep. A more remarkable face in its quiet,
resolute, and guarded struggle with an unseen assailant, was not to be
beheld in all the wide dominions of sleep, that night.
She timidly laid her hand on his dear breast, and put up a prayer that she
might ever be as true to him as her love aspired to be, and as his sorrows
deserved. Then, she withdrew her hand, and kissed his lips once more, and
went away. So, the sunrise came, and the shadows of the leaves of the
plane-tree moved upon his face, as softly as her lips had moved in praying
for him.
CHAPTER XVIII.<br />Nine Days
The marriage-day was shining brightly, and they were ready outside the
closed door of the Doctor’s room, where he was speaking with Charles
Darnay. They were ready to go to church; the beautiful bride, Mr. Lorry,
and Miss Pross—to whom the event, through a gradual process of
reconcilement to the inevitable, would have been one of absolute bliss,
but for the yet lingering consideration that her brother Solomon should
have been the bridegroom.
“And so,” said Mr. Lorry, who could not sufficiently admire the bride, and
who had been moving round her to take in every point of her quiet, pretty
dress; “and so it was for this, my sweet Lucie, that I brought you across
the Channel, such a baby! Lord bless me! How little I thought what I was
doing! How lightly I valued the obligation I was conferring on my friend
Mr. Charles!”
“You didn’t mean it,” remarked the matter-of-fact Miss Pross, “and
therefore how could you know it? Nonsense!”
“Really? Well; but don’t cry,” said the gentle Mr. Lorry.
“I am not crying,” said Miss Pross; “ are.”
“I, my Pross?” (By this time, Mr. Lorry dared to be pleasant with her, on
occasion.)
“You were, just now; I saw you do it, and I don’t wonder at it. Such a
present of plate as you have made ’em, is enough to bring tears into
anybody’s eyes. There’s not a fork or a spoon in the collection,” said
Miss Pross, “that I didn’t cry over, last night after the box came, till I
couldn’t see it.”
“I am highly gratified,” said Mr. Lorry, “though, upon my honour, I had no
intention of rendering those trifling articles of remembrance invisible to
any one. Dear me! This is an occasion that makes a man speculate on all he
has lost. Dear, dear, dear! To think that there might have been a Mrs.
Lorry, any time these fifty years almost!”
“Not at all!” From Miss Pross.
“You think there never might have been a Mrs. Lorry?” asked the gentleman
of that name.
“Pooh!” rejoined Miss Pross; “you were a bachelor in your cradle.”
“Well!” observed Mr. Lorry, beamingly adjusting his little wig, “that
seems probable, too.”
“And you were cut out for a bachelor,” pursued Miss Pross, “before you
were put in your cradle.”
“Then, I think,” said Mr. Lorry, “that I was very unhandsomely dealt with,
and that I ought to have had a voice in the selection of my pattern.
Enough! Now, my dear Lucie,” drawing his arm soothingly round her waist,
“I hear them moving in the next room, and Miss Pross and I, as two formal
folks of business, are anxious not to lose the final opportunity of saying
something to you that you wish to hear. You leave your good father, my
dear, in hands as earnest and as loving as your own; he shall be taken
every conceivable care of; during the next fortnight, while you are in
Warwickshire and thereabouts, even Tellson’s shall go to the wall
(comparatively speaking) before him. And when, at the fortnight’s end, he
comes to join you and your beloved husband, on your other fortnight’s trip
in Wales, you shall say that we have sent him to you in the best health
and in the happiest frame. Now, I hear Somebody’s step coming to the door.
Let me kiss my dear girl with an old-fashioned bachelor blessing, before
Somebody comes to claim his own.”
For a moment, he held the fair face from him to look at the
well-remembered expression on the forehead, and then laid the bright
golden hair against his little brown wig, with a genuine tenderness and
delicacy which, if such things be old-fashioned, were as old as Adam.
The door of the Doctor’s room opened, and he came out with Charles Darnay.
He was so deadly pale—which had not been the case when they went in
together—that no vestige of colour was to be seen in his face. But,
in the composure of his manner he was unaltered, except that to the shrewd
glance of Mr. Lorry it disclosed some shadowy indication that the old air
of avoidance and dread had lately passed over him, like a cold wind.
He gave his arm to his daughter, and took her down-stairs to the chariot
which Mr. Lorry had hired in honour of the day. The rest followed in
another carriage, and soon, in a neighbouring church, where no strange
eyes looked on, Charles Darnay and Lucie Manette were happily married.
Besides the glancing tears that shone among the smiles of the little group
when it was done, some diamonds, very bright and sparkling, glanced on the
bride’s hand, which were newly released from the dark obscurity of one of
Mr. Lorry’s pockets. They returned home to breakfast, and all went well,
and in due course the golden hair that had mingled with the poor
shoemaker’s white locks in the Paris garret, were mingled with them again
in the morning sunlight, on the threshold of the door at parting.
It was a hard parting, though it was not for long. But her father cheered
her, and said at last, gently disengaging himself from her enfolding arms,
“Take her, Charles! She is yours!”
And her agitated hand waved to them from a chaise window, and she was
gone.
The corner being out of the way of the idle and curious, and the
preparations having been very simple and few, the Doctor, Mr. Lorry, and
Miss Pross, were left quite alone. It was when they turned into the
welcome shade of the cool old hall, that Mr. Lorry observed a great change
to have come over the Doctor; as if the golden arm uplifted there, had
struck him a poisoned blow.
He had naturally repressed much, and some revulsion might have been
expected in him when the occasion for repression was gone. But, it was the
old scared lost look that troubled Mr. Lorry; and through his absent
manner of clasping his head and drearily wandering away into his own room
when they got up-stairs, Mr. Lorry was reminded of Defarge the wine-shop
keeper, and the starlight ride.
“I think,” he whispered to Miss Pross, after anxious consideration, “I
think we had best not speak to him just now, or at all disturb him. I must
look in at Tellson’s; so I will go there at once and come back presently.
Then, we will take him a ride into the country, and dine there, and all
will be well.”
It was easier for Mr. Lorry to look in at Tellson’s, than to look out of
Tellson’s. He was detained two hours. When he came back, he ascended the
old staircase alone, having asked no question of the servant; going thus
into the Doctor’s rooms, he was stopped by a low sound of knocking.
“Good God!” he said, with a start. “What’s that?”
Miss Pross, with a terrified face, was at his ear. “O me, O me! All is
lost!” cried she, wringing her hands. “What is to be told to Ladybird? He
doesn’t know me, and is making shoes!”
Mr. Lorry said what he could to calm her, and went himself into the
Doctor’s room. The bench was turned towards the light, as it had been when
he had seen the shoemaker at his work before, and his head was bent down,
and he was very busy.
“Doctor Manette. My dear friend, Doctor Manette!”
The Doctor looked at him for a moment—half inquiringly, half as if
he were angry at being spoken to—and bent over his work again.
He had laid aside his coat and waistcoat; his shirt was open at the
throat, as it used to be when he did that work; and even the old haggard,
faded surface of face had come back to him. He worked hard—impatiently—as
if in some sense of having been interrupted.
Mr. Lorry glanced at the work in his hand, and observed that it was a shoe
of the old size and shape. He took up another that was lying by him, and
asked what it was.
“A young lady’s walking shoe,” he muttered, without looking up. “It ought
to have been finished long ago. Let it be.”
“But, Doctor Manette. Look at me!”
He obeyed, in the old mechanically submissive manner, without pausing in
his work.
“You know me, my dear friend? Think again. This is not your proper
occupation. Think, dear friend!”
Nothing would induce him to speak more. He looked up, for an instant at a
time, when he was requested to do so; but, no persuasion would extract a
word from him. He worked, and worked, and worked, in silence, and words
fell on him as they would have fallen on an echoless wall, or on the air.
The only ray of hope that Mr. Lorry could discover, was, that he sometimes
furtively looked up without being asked. In that, there seemed a faint
expression of curiosity or perplexity—as though he were trying to
reconcile some doubts in his mind.
Two things at once impressed themselves on Mr. Lorry, as important above
all others; the first, that this must be kept secret from Lucie; the
second, that it must be kept secret from all who knew him. In conjunction
with Miss Pross, he took immediate steps towards the latter precaution, by
giving out that the Doctor was not well, and required a few days of
complete rest. In aid of the kind deception to be practised on his
daughter, Miss Pross was to write, describing his having been called away
professionally, and referring to an imaginary letter of two or three
hurried lines in his own hand, represented to have been addressed to her
by the same post.
These measures, advisable to be taken in any case, Mr. Lorry took in the
hope of his coming to himself. If that should happen soon, he kept another
course in reserve; which was, to have a certain opinion that he thought
the best, on the Doctor’s case.
In the hope of his recovery, and of resort to this third course being
thereby rendered practicable, Mr. Lorry resolved to watch him attentively,
with as little appearance as possible of doing so. He therefore made
arrangements to absent himself from Tellson’s for the first time in his
life, and took his post by the window in the same room.
He was not long in discovering that it was worse than useless to speak to
him, since, on being pressed, he became worried. He abandoned that attempt
on the first day, and resolved merely to keep himself always before him,
as a silent protest against the delusion into which he had fallen, or was
falling. He remained, therefore, in his seat near the window, reading and
writing, and expressing in as many pleasant and natural ways as he could
think of, that it was a free place.
Doctor Manette took what was given him to eat and drink, and worked on,
that first day, until it was too dark to see—worked on, half an hour
after Mr. Lorry could not have seen, for his life, to read or write. When
he put his tools aside as useless, until morning, Mr. Lorry rose and said
to him:
“Will you go out?”
He looked down at the floor on either side of him in the old manner,
looked up in the old manner, and repeated in the old low voice:
“Out?”
“Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?”
He made no effort to say why not, and said not a word more. But, Mr. Lorry
thought he saw, as he leaned forward on his bench in the dusk, with his
elbows on his knees and his head in his hands, that he was in some misty
way asking himself, “Why not?” The sagacity of the man of business
perceived an advantage here, and determined to hold it.
Miss Pross and he divided the night into two watches, and observed him at
intervals from the adjoining room. He paced up and down for a long time
before he lay down; but, when he did finally lay himself down, he fell
asleep. In the morning, he was up betimes, and went straight to his bench
and to work.
On this second day, Mr. Lorry saluted him cheerfully by his name, and
spoke to him on topics that had been of late familiar to them. He returned
no reply, but it was evident that he heard what was said, and that he
thought about it, however confusedly. This encouraged Mr. Lorry to have
Miss Pross in with her work, several times during the day; at those times,
they quietly spoke of Lucie, and of her father then present, precisely in
the usual manner, and as if there were nothing amiss. This was done
without any demonstrative accompaniment, not long enough, or often enough
to harass him; and it lightened Mr. Lorry’s friendly heart to believe that
he looked up oftener, and that he appeared to be stirred by some
perception of inconsistencies surrounding him.
When it fell dark again, Mr. Lorry asked him as before:
“Dear Doctor, will you go out?”
As before, he repeated, “Out?”
“Yes; for a walk with me. Why not?”
This time, Mr. Lorry feigned to go out when he could extract no answer
from him, and, after remaining absent for an hour, returned. In the
meanwhile, the Doctor had removed to the seat in the window, and had sat
there looking down at the plane-tree; but, on Mr. Lorry’s return, he
slipped away to his bench.
The time went very slowly on, and Mr. Lorry’s hope darkened, and his heart
grew heavier again, and grew yet heavier and heavier every day. The third
day came and went, the fourth, the fifth. Five days, six days, seven days,
eight days, nine days.
With a hope ever darkening, and with a heart always growing heavier and
heavier, Mr. Lorry passed through this anxious time. The secret was well
kept, and Lucie was unconscious and happy; but he could not fail to
observe that the shoemaker, whose hand had been a little out at first, was
growing dreadfully skilful, and that he had never been so intent on his
work, and that his hands had never been so nimble and expert, as in the
dusk of the ninth evening.
CHAPTER XIX.<br />An Opinion
Worn out by anxious watching, Mr. Lorry fell asleep at his post. On the
tenth morning of his suspense, he was startled by the shining of the sun
into the room where a heavy slumber had overtaken him when it was dark
night.
He rubbed his eyes and roused himself; but he doubted, when he had done
so, whether he was not still asleep. For, going to the door of the
Doctor’s room and looking in, he perceived that the shoemaker’s bench and
tools were put aside again, and that the Doctor himself sat reading at the
window. He was in his usual morning dress, and his face (which Mr. Lorry
could distinctly see), though still very pale, was calmly studious and
attentive.
Even when he had satisfied himself that he was awake, Mr. Lorry felt
giddily uncertain for some few moments whether the late shoemaking might
not be a disturbed dream of his own; for, did not his eyes show him his
friend before him in his accustomed clothing and aspect, and employed as
usual; and was there any sign within their range, that the change of which
he had so strong an impression had actually happened?
It was but the inquiry of his first confusion and astonishment, the answer
being obvious. If the impression were not produced by a real corresponding
and sufficient cause, how came he, Jarvis Lorry, there? How came he to
have fallen asleep, in his clothes, on the sofa in Doctor Manette’s
consulting-room, and to be debating these points outside the Doctor’s
bedroom door in the early morning?
Within a few minutes, Miss Pross stood whispering at his side. If he had
had any particle of doubt left, her talk would of necessity have resolved
it; but he was by that time clear-headed, and had none. He advised that
they should let the time go by until the regular breakfast-hour, and
should then meet the Doctor as if nothing unusual had occurred. If he
appeared to be in his customary state of mind, Mr. Lorry would then
cautiously proceed to seek direction and guidance from the opinion he had
been, in his anxiety, so anxious to obtain.
Miss Pross, submitting herself to his judgment, the scheme was worked out
with care. Having abundance of time for his usual methodical toilette, Mr.
Lorry presented himself at the breakfast-hour in his usual white linen,
and with his usual neat leg. The Doctor was summoned in the usual way, and
came to breakfast.
So far as it was possible to comprehend him without overstepping those
delicate and gradual approaches which Mr. Lorry felt to be the only safe
advance, he at first supposed that his daughter’s marriage had taken place
yesterday. An incidental allusion, purposely thrown out, to the day of the
week, and the day of the month, set him thinking and counting, and
evidently made him uneasy. In all other respects, however, he was so
composedly himself, that Mr. Lorry determined to have the aid he sought.
And that aid was his own.
Therefore, when the breakfast was done and cleared away, and he and the
Doctor were left together, Mr. Lorry said, feelingly:
“My dear Manette, I am anxious to have your opinion, in confidence, on a
very curious case in which I am deeply interested; that is to say, it is
very curious to me; perhaps, to your better information it may be less
so.”
Glancing at his hands, which were discoloured by his late work, the Doctor
looked troubled, and listened attentively. He had already glanced at his
hands more than once.
“Doctor Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, touching him affectionately on the arm,
“the case is the case of a particularly dear friend of mine. Pray give
your mind to it, and advise me well for his sake—and above all, for
his daughter’s—his daughter’s, my dear Manette.”
“If I understand,” said the Doctor, in a subdued tone, “some mental shock—?”
“Yes!”
“Be explicit,” said the Doctor. “Spare no detail.”
Mr. Lorry saw that they understood one another, and proceeded.
“My dear Manette, it is the case of an old and a prolonged shock, of great
acuteness and severity to the affections, the feelings, the—the—as
you express it—the mind. The mind. It is the case of a shock under
which the sufferer was borne down, one cannot say for how long, because I
believe he cannot calculate the time himself, and there are no other means
of getting at it. It is the case of a shock from which the sufferer
recovered, by a process that he cannot trace himself—as I once heard
him publicly relate in a striking manner. It is the case of a shock from
which he has recovered, so completely, as to be a highly intelligent man,
capable of close application of mind, and great exertion of body, and of
constantly making fresh additions to his stock of knowledge, which was
already very large. But, unfortunately, there has been,” he paused and
took a deep breath—“a slight relapse.”
The Doctor, in a low voice, asked, “Of how long duration?”
“Nine days and nights.”
“How did it show itself? I infer,” glancing at his hands again, “in the
resumption of some old pursuit connected with the shock?”
“That is the fact.”
“Now, did you ever see him,” asked the Doctor, distinctly and collectedly,
though in the same low voice, “engaged in that pursuit originally?”
“Once.”
“And when the relapse fell on him, was he in most respects—or in all
respects—as he was then?”
“I think in all respects.”
“You spoke of his daughter. Does his daughter know of the relapse?”
“No. It has been kept from her, and I hope will always be kept from her.
It is known only to myself, and to one other who may be trusted.”
The Doctor grasped his hand, and murmured, “That was very kind. That was
very thoughtful!” Mr. Lorry grasped his hand in return, and neither of the
two spoke for a little while.
“Now, my dear Manette,” said Mr. Lorry, at length, in his most considerate
and most affectionate way, “I am a mere man of business, and unfit to cope
with such intricate and difficult matters. I do not possess the kind of
information necessary; I do not possess the kind of intelligence; I want
guiding. There is no man in this world on whom I could so rely for right
guidance, as on you. Tell me, how does this relapse come about? Is there
danger of another? Could a repetition of it be prevented? How should a
repetition of it be treated? How does it come about at all? What can I do
for my friend? No man ever can have been more desirous in his heart to
serve a friend, than I am to serve mine, if I knew how.
“But I don’t know how to originate, in such a case. If your sagacity,
knowledge, and experience, could put me on the right track, I might be
able to do so much; unenlightened and undirected, I can do so little. Pray
discuss it with me; pray enable me to see it a little more clearly, and
teach me how to be a little more useful.”
Doctor Manette sat meditating after these earnest words were spoken, and
Mr. Lorry did not press him.
“I think it probable,” said the Doctor, breaking silence with an effort,
“that the relapse you have described, my dear friend, was not quite
unforeseen by its subject.”
“Was it dreaded by him?” Mr. Lorry ventured to ask.
“Very much.” He said it with an involuntary shudder.
“You have no idea how such an apprehension weighs on the sufferer’s mind,
and how difficult—how almost impossible—it is, for him to
force himself to utter a word upon the topic that oppresses him.”
“Would he,” asked Mr. Lorry, “be sensibly relieved if he could prevail
upon himself to impart that secret brooding to any one, when it is on
him?”
“I think so. But it is, as I have told you, next to impossible. I even
believe it—in some cases—to be quite impossible.”
“Now,” said Mr. Lorry, gently laying his hand on the Doctor’s arm again,
after a short silence on both sides, “to what would you refer this
attack?”
“I believe,” returned Doctor Manette, “that there had been a strong and
extraordinary revival of the train of thought and remembrance that was the
first cause of the malady. Some intense associations of a most distressing
nature were vividly recalled, I think. It is probable that there had long
been a dread lurking in his mind, that those associations would be
recalled—say, under certain circumstances—say, on a particular
occasion. He tried to prepare himself in vain; perhaps the effort to
prepare himself made him less able to bear it.”
“Would he remember what took place in the relapse?” asked Mr. Lorry, with
natural hesitation.
The Doctor looked desolately round the room, shook his head, and answered,
in a low voice, “Not at all.”
“Now, as to the future,” hinted Mr. Lorry.
“As to the future,” said the Doctor, recovering firmness, “I should have
great hope. As it pleased Heaven in its mercy to restore him so soon, I
should have great hope. He, yielding under the pressure of a complicated
something, long dreaded and long vaguely foreseen and contended against,
and recovering after the cloud had burst and passed, I should hope that
the worst was over.”
“Well, well! That’s good comfort. I am thankful!” said Mr. Lorry.
“I am thankful!” repeated the Doctor, bending his head with reverence.
“There are two other points,” said Mr. Lorry, “on which I am anxious to be
instructed. I may go on?”
“You cannot do your friend a better service.” The Doctor gave him his
hand.
“To the first, then. He is of a studious habit, and unusually energetic;
he applies himself with great ardour to the acquisition of professional
knowledge, to the conducting of experiments, to many things. Now, does he
do too much?”
“I think not. It may be the character of his mind, to be always in
singular need of occupation. That may be, in part, natural to it; in part,
the result of affliction. The less it was occupied with healthy things,
the more it would be in danger of turning in the unhealthy direction. He
may have observed himself, and made the discovery.”
“You are sure that he is not under too great a strain?”
“I think I am quite sure of it.”
“My dear Manette, if he were overworked now—”
“My dear Lorry, I doubt if that could easily be. There has been a violent
stress in one direction, and it needs a counterweight.”
“Excuse me, as a persistent man of business. Assuming for a moment, that
he overworked; it would show itself in some renewal of this
disorder?”
“I do not think so. I do not think,” said Doctor Manette with the firmness
of self-conviction, “that anything but the one train of association would
renew it. I think that, henceforth, nothing but some extraordinary jarring
of that chord could renew it. After what has happened, and after his
recovery, I find it difficult to imagine any such violent sounding of that
string again. I trust, and I almost believe, that the circumstances likely
to renew it are exhausted.”
He spoke with the diffidence of a man who knew how slight a thing would
overset the delicate organisation of the mind, and yet with the confidence
of a man who had slowly won his assurance out of personal endurance and
distress. It was not for his friend to abate that confidence. He professed
himself more relieved and encouraged than he really was, and approached
his second and last point. He felt it to be the most difficult of all;
but, remembering his old Sunday morning conversation with Miss Pross, and
remembering what he had seen in the last nine days, he knew that he must
face it.
“The occupation resumed under the influence of this passing affliction so
happily recovered from,” said Mr. Lorry, clearing his throat, “we will
call—Blacksmith’s work, Blacksmith’s work. We will say, to put a
case and for the sake of illustration, that he had been used, in his bad
time, to work at a little forge. We will say that he was unexpectedly
found at his forge again. Is it not a pity that he should keep it by him?”
The Doctor shaded his forehead with his hand, and beat his foot nervously
on the ground.
“He has always kept it by him,” said Mr. Lorry, with an anxious look at
his friend. “Now, would it not be better that he should let it go?”
Still, the Doctor, with shaded forehead, beat his foot nervously on the
ground.
“You do not find it easy to advise me?” said Mr. Lorry. “I quite
understand it to be a nice question. And yet I think—” And there he
shook his head, and stopped.
“You see,” said Doctor Manette, turning to him after an uneasy pause, “it
is very hard to explain, consistently, the innermost workings of this poor
man’s mind. He once yearned so frightfully for that occupation, and it was
so welcome when it came; no doubt it relieved his pain so much, by
substituting the perplexity of the fingers for the perplexity of the
brain, and by substituting, as he became more practised, the ingenuity of
the hands, for the ingenuity of the mental torture; that he has never been
able to bear the thought of putting it quite out of his reach. Even now,
when I believe he is more hopeful of himself than he has ever been, and
even speaks of himself with a kind of confidence, the idea that he might
need that old employment, and not find it, gives him a sudden sense of
terror, like that which one may fancy strikes to the heart of a lost
child.”
He looked like his illustration, as he raised his eyes to Mr. Lorry’s
face.
“But may not—mind! I ask for information, as a plodding man of
business who only deals with such material objects as guineas, shillings,
and bank-notes—may not the retention of the thing involve the
retention of the idea? If the thing were gone, my dear Manette, might not
the fear go with it? In short, is it not a concession to the misgiving, to
keep the forge?”
There was another silence.
“You see, too,” said the Doctor, tremulously, “it is such an old
companion.”
“I would not keep it,” said Mr. Lorry, shaking his head; for he gained in
firmness as he saw the Doctor disquieted. “I would recommend him to
sacrifice it. I only want your authority. I am sure it does no good. Come!
Give me your authority, like a dear good man. For his daughter’s sake, my
dear Manette!”
Very strange to see what a struggle there was within him!
“In her name, then, let it be done; I sanction it. But, I would not take
it away while he was present. Let it be removed when he is not there; let
him miss his old companion after an absence.”
Mr. Lorry readily engaged for that, and the conference was ended. They
passed the day in the country, and the Doctor was quite restored. On the
three following days he remained perfectly well, and on the fourteenth day
he went away to join Lucie and her husband. The precaution that had been
taken to account for his silence, Mr. Lorry had previously explained to
him, and he had written to Lucie in accordance with it, and she had no
suspicions.
On the night of the day on which he left the house, Mr. Lorry went into
his room with a chopper, saw, chisel, and hammer, attended by Miss Pross
carrying a light. There, with closed doors, and in a mysterious and guilty
manner, Mr. Lorry hacked the shoemaker’s bench to pieces, while Miss Pross
held the candle as if she were assisting at a murder—for which,
indeed, in her grimness, she was no unsuitable figure. The burning of the
body (previously reduced to pieces convenient for the purpose) was
commenced without delay in the kitchen fire; and the tools, shoes, and
leather, were buried in the garden. So wicked do destruction and secrecy
appear to honest minds, that Mr. Lorry and Miss Pross, while engaged in
the commission of their deed and in the removal of its traces, almost
felt, and almost looked, like accomplices in a horrible crime.
CHAPTER XX.<br />A Plea
When the newly-married pair came home, the first person who appeared, to
offer his congratulations, was Sydney Carton. They had not been at home
many hours, when he presented himself. He was not improved in habits, or
in looks, or in manner; but there was a certain rugged air of fidelity
about him, which was new to the observation of Charles Darnay.
He watched his opportunity of taking Darnay aside into a window, and of
speaking to him when no one overheard.
“Mr. Darnay,” said Carton, “I wish we might be friends.”
“We are already friends, I hope.”
“You are good enough to say so, as a fashion of speech; but, I don’t mean
any fashion of speech. Indeed, when I say I wish we might be friends, I
scarcely mean quite that, either.”
Charles Darnay—as was natural—asked him, in all good-humour
and good-fellowship, what he did mean?
“Upon my life,” said Carton, smiling, “I find that easier to comprehend in
my own mind, than to convey to yours. However, let me try. You remember a
certain famous occasion when I was more drunk than—than usual?”
“I remember a certain famous occasion when you forced me to confess that
you had been drinking.”
“I remember it too. The curse of those occasions is heavy upon me, for I
always remember them. I hope it may be taken into account one day, when
all days are at an end for me! Don’t be alarmed; I am not going to
preach.”
“I am not at all alarmed. Earnestness in you, is anything but alarming to
me.”
“Ah!” said Carton, with a careless wave of his hand, as if he waved that
away. “On the drunken occasion in question (one of a large number, as you
know), I was insufferable about liking you, and not liking you. I wish you
would forget it.”
“I forgot it long ago.”
“Fashion of speech again! But, Mr. Darnay, oblivion is not so easy to me,
as you represent it to be to you. I have by no means forgotten it, and a
light answer does not help me to forget it.”
“If it was a light answer,” returned Darnay, “I beg your forgiveness for
it. I had no other object than to turn a slight thing, which, to my
surprise, seems to trouble you too much, aside. I declare to you, on the
faith of a gentleman, that I have long dismissed it from my mind. Good
Heaven, what was there to dismiss! Have I had nothing more important to
remember, in the great service you rendered me that day?”
“As to the great service,” said Carton, “I am bound to avow to you, when
you speak of it in that way, that it was mere professional claptrap, I
don’t know that I cared what became of you, when I rendered it.—Mind!
I say when I rendered it; I am speaking of the past.”
“You make light of the obligation,” returned Darnay, “but I will not
quarrel with light answer.”
“Genuine truth, Mr. Darnay, trust me! I have gone aside from my purpose; I
was speaking about our being friends. Now, you know me; you know I am
incapable of all the higher and better flights of men. If you doubt it,
ask Stryver, and he’ll tell you so.”
“I prefer to form my own opinion, without the aid of his.”
“Well! At any rate you know me as a dissolute dog, who has never done any
good, and never will.”
“I don’t know that you ‘never will.’”
“But I do, and you must take my word for it. Well! If you could endure to
have such a worthless fellow, and a fellow of such indifferent reputation,
coming and going at odd times, I should ask that I might be permitted to
come and go as a privileged person here; that I might be regarded as an
useless (and I would add, if it were not for the resemblance I detected
between you and me, an unornamental) piece of furniture, tolerated for its
old service, and taken no notice of. I doubt if I should abuse the
permission. It is a hundred to one if I should avail myself of it four
times in a year. It would satisfy me, I dare say, to know that I had it.”
“Will you try?”
“That is another way of saying that I am placed on the footing I have
indicated. I thank you, Darnay. I may use that freedom with your name?”
“I think so, Carton, by this time.”
They shook hands upon it, and Sydney turned away. Within a minute
afterwards, he was, to all outward appearance, as unsubstantial as ever.
When he was gone, and in the course of an evening passed with Miss Pross,
the Doctor, and Mr. Lorry, Charles Darnay made some mention of this
conversation in general terms, and spoke of Sydney Carton as a problem of
carelessness and recklessness. He spoke of him, in short, not bitterly or
meaning to bear hard upon him, but as anybody might who saw him as he
showed himself.
He had no idea that this could dwell in the thoughts of his fair young
wife; but, when he afterwards joined her in their own rooms, he found her
waiting for him with the old pretty lifting of the forehead strongly
marked.
“We are thoughtful to-night!” said Darnay, drawing his arm about her.
“Yes, dearest Charles,” with her hands on his breast, and the inquiring
and attentive expression fixed upon him; “we are rather thoughtful
to-night, for we have something on our mind to-night.”
“What is it, my Lucie?”
“Will you promise not to press one question on me, if I beg you not to ask
it?”
“Will I promise? What will I not promise to my Love?”
What, indeed, with his hand putting aside the golden hair from the cheek,
and his other hand against the heart that beat for him!
“I think, Charles, poor Mr. Carton deserves more consideration and respect
than you expressed for him to-night.”
“Indeed, my own? Why so?”
“That is what you are not to ask me. But I think—I know—he
does.”
“If you know it, it is enough. What would you have me do, my Life?”
“I would ask you, dearest, to be very generous with him always, and very
lenient on his faults when he is not by. I would ask you to believe that
he has a heart he very, very seldom reveals, and that there are deep
wounds in it. My dear, I have seen it bleeding.”
“It is a painful reflection to me,” said Charles Darnay, quite astounded,
“that I should have done him any wrong. I never thought this of him.”
“My husband, it is so. I fear he is not to be reclaimed; there is scarcely
a hope that anything in his character or fortunes is reparable now. But, I
am sure that he is capable of good things, gentle things, even magnanimous
things.”
She looked so beautiful in the purity of her faith in this lost man, that
her husband could have looked at her as she was for hours.
“And, O my dearest Love!” she urged, clinging nearer to him, laying her
head upon his breast, and raising her eyes to his, “remember how strong we
are in our happiness, and how weak he is in his misery!”
The supplication touched him home. “I will always remember it, dear Heart!
I will remember it as long as I live.”
He bent over the golden head, and put the rosy lips to his, and folded her
in his arms. If one forlorn wanderer then pacing the dark streets, could
have heard her innocent disclosure, and could have seen the drops of pity
kissed away by her husband from the soft blue eyes so loving of that
husband, he might have cried to the night—and the words would not
have parted from his lips for the first time—
“God bless her for her sweet compassion!”
CHAPTER XXI.<br />Echoing Footsteps
A wonderful corner for echoes, it has been remarked, that corner where the
Doctor lived. Ever busily winding the golden thread which bound her
husband, and her father, and herself, and her old directress and
companion, in a life of quiet bliss, Lucie sat in the still house in the
tranquilly resounding corner, listening to the echoing footsteps of years.
At first, there were times, though she was a perfectly happy young wife,
when her work would slowly fall from her hands, and her eyes would be
dimmed. For, there was something coming in the echoes, something light,
afar off, and scarcely audible yet, that stirred her heart too much.
Fluttering hopes and doubts—hopes, of a love as yet unknown to her:
doubts, of her remaining upon earth, to enjoy that new delight—divided
her breast. Among the echoes then, there would arise the sound of
footsteps at her own early grave; and thoughts of the husband who would be
left so desolate, and who would mourn for her so much, swelled to her
eyes, and broke like waves.
That time passed, and her little Lucie lay on her bosom. Then, among the
advancing echoes, there was the tread of her tiny feet and the sound of
her prattling words. Let greater echoes resound as they would, the young
mother at the cradle side could always hear those coming. They came, and
the shady house was sunny with a child’s laugh, and the Divine friend of
children, to whom in her trouble she had confided hers, seemed to take her
child in his arms, as He took the child of old, and made it a sacred joy
to her.
Ever busily winding the golden thread that bound them all together,
weaving the service of her happy influence through the tissue of all their
lives, and making it predominate nowhere, Lucie heard in the echoes of
years none but friendly and soothing sounds. Her husband’s step was strong
and prosperous among them; her father’s firm and equal. Lo, Miss Pross, in
harness of string, awakening the echoes, as an unruly charger,
whip-corrected, snorting and pawing the earth under the plane-tree in the
garden!
Even when there were sounds of sorrow among the rest, they were not harsh
nor cruel. Even when golden hair, like her own, lay in a halo on a pillow
round the worn face of a little boy, and he said, with a radiant smile,
“Dear papa and mamma, I am very sorry to leave you both, and to leave my
pretty sister; but I am called, and I must go!” those were not tears all
of agony that wetted his young mother’s cheek, as the spirit departed from
her embrace that had been entrusted to it. Suffer them and forbid them
not. They see my Father’s face. O Father, blessed words!
Thus, the rustling of an Angel’s wings got blended with the other echoes,
and they were not wholly of earth, but had in them that breath of Heaven.
Sighs of the winds that blew over a little garden-tomb were mingled with
them also, and both were audible to Lucie, in a hushed murmur—like
the breathing of a summer sea asleep upon a sandy shore—as the
little Lucie, comically studious at the task of the morning, or dressing a
doll at her mother’s footstool, chattered in the tongues of the Two Cities
that were blended in her life.
The Echoes rarely answered to the actual tread of Sydney Carton. Some
half-dozen times a year, at most, he claimed his privilege of coming in
uninvited, and would sit among them through the evening, as he had once
done often. He never came there heated with wine. And one other thing
regarding him was whispered in the echoes, which has been whispered by all
true echoes for ages and ages.
No man ever really loved a woman, lost her, and knew her with a blameless
though an unchanged mind, when she was a wife and a mother, but her
children had a strange sympathy with him—an instinctive delicacy of
pity for him. What fine hidden sensibilities are touched in such a case,
no echoes tell; but it is so, and it was so here. Carton was the first
stranger to whom little Lucie held out her chubby arms, and he kept his
place with her as she grew. The little boy had spoken of him, almost at
the last. “Poor Carton! Kiss him for me!”
Mr. Stryver shouldered his way through the law, like some great engine
forcing itself through turbid water, and dragged his useful friend in his
wake, like a boat towed astern. As the boat so favoured is usually in a
rough plight, and mostly under water, so, Sydney had a swamped life of it.
But, easy and strong custom, unhappily so much easier and stronger in him
than any stimulating sense of desert or disgrace, made it the life he was
to lead; and he no more thought of emerging from his state of lion’s
jackal, than any real jackal may be supposed to think of rising to be a
lion. Stryver was rich; had married a florid widow with property and three
boys, who had nothing particularly shining about them but the straight
hair of their dumpling heads.
These three young gentlemen, Mr. Stryver, exuding patronage of the most
offensive quality from every pore, had walked before him like three sheep
to the quiet corner in Soho, and had offered as pupils to Lucie’s husband:
delicately saying “Halloa! here are three lumps of bread-and-cheese
towards your matrimonial picnic, Darnay!” The polite rejection of the
three lumps of bread-and-cheese had quite bloated Mr. Stryver with
indignation, which he afterwards turned to account in the training of the
young gentlemen, by directing them to beware of the pride of Beggars, like
that tutor-fellow. He was also in the habit of declaiming to Mrs. Stryver,
over his full-bodied wine, on the arts Mrs. Darnay had once put in
practice to “catch” him, and on the diamond-cut-diamond arts in himself,
madam, which had rendered him “not to be caught.” Some of his King’s Bench
familiars, who were occasionally parties to the full-bodied wine and the
lie, excused him for the latter by saying that he had told it so often,
that he believed it himself—which is surely such an incorrigible
aggravation of an originally bad offence, as to justify any such
offender’s being carried off to some suitably retired spot, and there
hanged out of the way.
These were among the echoes to which Lucie, sometimes pensive, sometimes
amused and laughing, listened in the echoing corner, until her little
daughter was six years old. How near to her heart the echoes of her
child’s tread came, and those of her own dear father’s, always active and
self-possessed, and those of her dear husband’s, need not be told. Nor,
how the lightest echo of their united home, directed by herself with such
a wise and elegant thrift that it was more abundant than any waste, was
music to her. Nor, how there were echoes all about her, sweet in her ears,
of the many times her father had told her that he found her more devoted
to him married (if that could be) than single, and of the many times her
husband had said to her that no cares and duties seemed to divide her love
for him or her help to him, and asked her “What is the magic secret, my
darling, of your being everything to all of us, as if there were only one
of us, yet never seeming to be hurried, or to have too much to do?”
But, there were other echoes, from a distance, that rumbled menacingly in
the corner all through this space of time. And it was now, about little
Lucie’s sixth birthday, that they began to have an awful sound, as of a
great storm in France with a dreadful sea rising.
On a night in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and eighty-nine, Mr.
Lorry came in late, from Tellson’s, and sat himself down by Lucie and her
husband in the dark window. It was a hot, wild night, and they were all
three reminded of the old Sunday night when they had looked at the
lightning from the same place.
“I began to think,” said Mr. Lorry, pushing his brown wig back, “that I
should have to pass the night at Tellson’s. We have been so full of
business all day, that we have not known what to do first, or which way to
turn. There is such an uneasiness in Paris, that we have actually a run of
confidence upon us! Our customers over there, seem not to be able to
confide their property to us fast enough. There is positively a mania
among some of them for sending it to England.”
“That has a bad look,” said Darnay—
“A bad look, you say, my dear Darnay? Yes, but we don’t know what reason
there is in it. People are so unreasonable! Some of us at Tellson’s are
getting old, and we really can’t be troubled out of the ordinary course
without due occasion.”
“Still,” said Darnay, “you know how gloomy and threatening the sky is.”
“I know that, to be sure,” assented Mr. Lorry, trying to persuade himself
that his sweet temper was soured, and that he grumbled, “but I am
determined to be peevish after my long day’s botheration. Where is
Manette?”
“Here he is,” said the Doctor, entering the dark room at the moment.
“I am quite glad you are at home; for these hurries and forebodings by
which I have been surrounded all day long, have made me nervous without
reason. You are not going out, I hope?”
“No; I am going to play backgammon with you, if you like,” said the
Doctor.
“I don’t think I do like, if I may speak my mind. I am not fit to be
pitted against you to-night. Is the teaboard still there, Lucie? I can’t
see.”
“Of course, it has been kept for you.”
“Thank ye, my dear. The precious child is safe in bed?”
“And sleeping soundly.”
“That’s right; all safe and well! I don’t know why anything should be
otherwise than safe and well here, thank God; but I have been so put out
all day, and I am not as young as I was! My tea, my dear! Thank ye. Now,
come and take your place in the circle, and let us sit quiet, and hear the
echoes about which you have your theory.”
“Not a theory; it was a fancy.”
“A fancy, then, my wise pet,” said Mr. Lorry, patting her hand. “They are
very numerous and very loud, though, are they not? Only hear them!”
Headlong, mad, and dangerous footsteps to force their way into anybody’s
life, footsteps not easily made clean again if once stained red, the
footsteps raging in Saint Antoine afar off, as the little circle sat in
the dark London window.
Saint Antoine had been, that morning, a vast dusky mass of scarecrows
heaving to and fro, with frequent gleams of light above the billowy heads,
where steel blades and bayonets shone in the sun. A tremendous roar arose
from the throat of Saint Antoine, and a forest of naked arms struggled in
the air like shrivelled branches of trees in a winter wind: all the
fingers convulsively clutching at every weapon or semblance of a weapon
that was thrown up from the depths below, no matter how far off.
Who gave them out, whence they last came, where they began, through what
agency they crookedly quivered and jerked, scores at a time, over the
heads of the crowd, like a kind of lightning, no eye in the throng could
have told; but, muskets were being distributed—so were cartridges,
powder, and ball, bars of iron and wood, knives, axes, pikes, every weapon
that distracted ingenuity could discover or devise. People who could lay
hold of nothing else, set themselves with bleeding hands to force stones
and bricks out of their places in walls. Every pulse and heart in Saint
Antoine was on high-fever strain and at high-fever heat. Every living
creature there held life as of no account, and was demented with a
passionate readiness to sacrifice it.
As a whirlpool of boiling waters has a centre point, so, all this raging
circled round Defarge’s wine-shop, and every human drop in the caldron had
a tendency to be sucked towards the vortex where Defarge himself, already
begrimed with gunpowder and sweat, issued orders, issued arms, thrust this
man back, dragged this man forward, disarmed one to arm another, laboured
and strove in the thickest of the uproar.
“Keep near to me, Jacques Three,” cried Defarge; “and do you, Jacques One
and Two, separate and put yourselves at the head of as many of these
patriots as you can. Where is my wife?”
“Eh, well! Here you see me!” said madame, composed as ever, but not
knitting to-day. Madame’s resolute right hand was occupied with an axe, in
place of the usual softer implements, and in her girdle were a pistol and
a cruel knife.
“Where do you go, my wife?”
“I go,” said madame, “with you at present. You shall see me at the head of
women, by-and-bye.”
“Come, then!” cried Defarge, in a resounding voice. “Patriots and friends,
we are ready! The Bastille!”
With a roar that sounded as if all the breath in France had been shaped
into the detested word, the living sea rose, wave on wave, depth on depth,
and overflowed the city to that point. Alarm-bells ringing, drums beating,
the sea raging and thundering on its new beach, the attack began.
Deep ditches, double drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers,
cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. Through the fire and through the smoke—in
the fire and in the smoke, for the sea cast him up against a cannon, and
on the instant he became a cannonier—Defarge of the wine-shop worked
like a manful soldier, Two fierce hours.
Deep ditch, single drawbridge, massive stone walls, eight great towers,
cannon, muskets, fire and smoke. One drawbridge down! “Work, comrades all,
work! Work, Jacques One, Jacques Two, Jacques One Thousand, Jacques Two
Thousand, Jacques Five-and-Twenty Thousand; in the name of all the Angels
or the Devils—which you prefer—work!” Thus Defarge of the
wine-shop, still at his gun, which had long grown hot.
“To me, women!” cried madame his wife. “What! We can kill as well as the
men when the place is taken!” And to her, with a shrill thirsty cry,
trooping women variously armed, but all armed alike in hunger and revenge.
Cannon, muskets, fire and smoke; but, still the deep ditch, the single
drawbridge, the massive stone walls, and the eight great towers. Slight
displacements of the raging sea, made by the falling wounded. Flashing
weapons, blazing torches, smoking waggonloads of wet straw, hard work at
neighbouring barricades in all directions, shrieks, volleys, execrations,
bravery without stint, boom smash and rattle, and the furious sounding of
the living sea; but, still the deep ditch, and the single drawbridge, and
the massive stone walls, and the eight great towers, and still Defarge of
the wine-shop at his gun, grown doubly hot by the service of Four fierce
hours.
A white flag from within the fortress, and a parley—this dimly
perceptible through the raging storm, nothing audible in it—suddenly
the sea rose immeasurably wider and higher, and swept Defarge of the
wine-shop over the lowered drawbridge, past the massive stone outer walls,
in among the eight great towers surrendered!
So resistless was the force of the ocean bearing him on, that even to draw
his breath or turn his head was as impracticable as if he had been
struggling in the surf at the South Sea, until he was landed in the outer
courtyard of the Bastille. There, against an angle of a wall, he made a
struggle to look about him. Jacques Three was nearly at his side; Madame
Defarge, still heading some of her women, was visible in the inner
distance, and her knife was in her hand. Everywhere was tumult,
exultation, deafening and maniacal bewilderment, astounding noise, yet
furious dumb-show.
“The Prisoners!”
“The Records!”
“The secret cells!”
“The instruments of torture!”
“The Prisoners!”
Of all these cries, and ten thousand incoherences, “The Prisoners!” was
the cry most taken up by the sea that rushed in, as if there were an
eternity of people, as well as of time and space. When the foremost
billows rolled past, bearing the prison officers with them, and
threatening them all with instant death if any secret nook remained
undisclosed, Defarge laid his strong hand on the breast of one of these
men—a man with a grey head, who had a lighted torch in his hand—separated
him from the rest, and got him between himself and the wall.
“Show me the North Tower!” said Defarge. “Quick!”
“I will faithfully,” replied the man, “if you will come with me. But there
is no one there.”
“What is the meaning of One Hundred and Five, North Tower?” asked Defarge.
“Quick!”
“The meaning, monsieur?”
“Does it mean a captive, or a place of captivity? Or do you mean that I
shall strike you dead?”
“Kill him!” croaked Jacques Three, who had come close up.
“Monsieur, it is a cell.”
“Show it me!”
“Pass this way, then.”
Jacques Three, with his usual craving on him, and evidently disappointed
by the dialogue taking a turn that did not seem to promise bloodshed, held
by Defarge’s arm as he held by the turnkey’s. Their three heads had been
close together during this brief discourse, and it had been as much as
they could do to hear one another, even then: so tremendous was the noise
of the living ocean, in its irruption into the Fortress, and its
inundation of the courts and passages and staircases. All around outside,
too, it beat the walls with a deep, hoarse roar, from which, occasionally,
some partial shouts of tumult broke and leaped into the air like spray.
Through gloomy vaults where the light of day had never shone, past hideous
doors of dark dens and cages, down cavernous flights of steps, and again
up steep rugged ascents of stone and brick, more like dry waterfalls than
staircases, Defarge, the turnkey, and Jacques Three, linked hand and arm,
went with all the speed they could make. Here and there, especially at
first, the inundation started on them and swept by; but when they had done
descending, and were winding and climbing up a tower, they were alone.
Hemmed in here by the massive thickness of walls and arches, the storm
within the fortress and without was only audible to them in a dull,
subdued way, as if the noise out of which they had come had almost
destroyed their sense of hearing.
The turnkey stopped at a low door, put a key in a clashing lock, swung the
door slowly open, and said, as they all bent their heads and passed in:
“One hundred and five, North Tower!”
There was a small, heavily-grated, unglazed window high in the wall, with
a stone screen before it, so that the sky could be only seen by stooping
low and looking up. There was a small chimney, heavily barred across, a
few feet within. There was a heap of old feathery wood-ashes on the
hearth. There was a stool, and table, and a straw bed. There were the four
blackened walls, and a rusted iron ring in one of them.
“Pass that torch slowly along these walls, that I may see them,” said
Defarge to the turnkey.
The man obeyed, and Defarge followed the light closely with his eyes.
“Stop!—Look here, Jacques!”
“A. M.!” croaked Jacques Three, as he read greedily.
“Alexandre Manette,” said Defarge in his ear, following the letters with
his swart forefinger, deeply engrained with gunpowder. “And here he wrote
‘a poor physician.’ And it was he, without doubt, who scratched a calendar
on this stone. What is that in your hand? A crowbar? Give it me!”
He had still the linstock of his gun in his own hand. He made a sudden
exchange of the two instruments, and turning on the worm-eaten stool and
table, beat them to pieces in a few blows.
“Hold the light higher!” he said, wrathfully, to the turnkey. “Look among
those fragments with care, Jacques. And see! Here is my knife,” throwing
it to him; “rip open that bed, and search the straw. Hold the light
higher, you!”
With a menacing look at the turnkey he crawled upon the hearth, and,
peering up the chimney, struck and prised at its sides with the crowbar,
and worked at the iron grating across it. In a few minutes, some mortar
and dust came dropping down, which he averted his face to avoid; and in
it, and in the old wood-ashes, and in a crevice in the chimney into which
his weapon had slipped or wrought itself, he groped with a cautious touch.
“Nothing in the wood, and nothing in the straw, Jacques?”
“Nothing.”
“Let us collect them together, in the middle of the cell. So! Light them,
you!”
The turnkey fired the little pile, which blazed high and hot. Stooping
again to come out at the low-arched door, they left it burning, and
retraced their way to the courtyard; seeming to recover their sense of
hearing as they came down, until they were in the raging flood once more.
They found it surging and tossing, in quest of Defarge himself. Saint
Antoine was clamorous to have its wine-shop keeper foremost in the guard
upon the governor who had defended the Bastille and shot the people.
Otherwise, the governor would not be marched to the Hotel de Ville for
judgment. Otherwise, the governor would escape, and the people’s blood
(suddenly of some value, after many years of worthlessness) be unavenged.
In the howling universe of passion and contention that seemed to encompass
this grim old officer conspicuous in his grey coat and red decoration,
there was but one quite steady figure, and that was a woman’s. “See, there
is my husband!” she cried, pointing him out. “See Defarge!” She stood
immovable close to the grim old officer, and remained immovable close to
him; remained immovable close to him through the streets, as Defarge and
the rest bore him along; remained immovable close to him when he was got
near his destination, and began to be struck at from behind; remained
immovable close to him when the long-gathering rain of stabs and blows
fell heavy; was so close to him when he dropped dead under it, that,
suddenly animated, she put her foot upon his neck, and with her cruel
knife—long ready—hewed off his head.
The hour was come, when Saint Antoine was to execute his horrible idea of
hoisting up men for lamps to show what he could be and do. Saint Antoine’s
blood was up, and the blood of tyranny and domination by the iron hand was
down—down on the steps of the Hotel de Ville where the governor’s
body lay—down on the sole of the shoe of Madame Defarge where she
had trodden on the body to steady it for mutilation. “Lower the lamp
yonder!” cried Saint Antoine, after glaring round for a new means of
death; “here is one of his soldiers to be left on guard!” The swinging
sentinel was posted, and the sea rushed on.
The sea of black and threatening waters, and of destructive upheaving of
wave against wave, whose depths were yet unfathomed and whose forces were
yet unknown. The remorseless sea of turbulently swaying shapes, voices of
vengeance, and faces hardened in the furnaces of suffering until the touch
of pity could make no mark on them.
But, in the ocean of faces where every fierce and furious expression was
in vivid life, there were two groups of faces—each seven in number—so
fixedly contrasting with the rest, that never did sea roll which bore more
memorable wrecks with it. Seven faces of prisoners, suddenly released by
the storm that had burst their tomb, were carried high overhead: all
scared, all lost, all wondering and amazed, as if the Last Day were come,
and those who rejoiced around them were lost spirits. Other seven faces
there were, carried higher, seven dead faces, whose drooping eyelids and
half-seen eyes awaited the Last Day. Impassive faces, yet with a suspended—not
an abolished—expression on them; faces, rather, in a fearful pause,
as having yet to raise the dropped lids of the eyes, and bear witness with
the bloodless lips, “”
Seven prisoners released, seven gory heads on pikes, the keys of the
accursed fortress of the eight strong towers, some discovered letters and
other memorials of prisoners of old time, long dead of broken hearts,—such,
and such—like, the loudly echoing footsteps of Saint Antoine escort
through the Paris streets in mid-July, one thousand seven hundred and
eighty-nine. Now, Heaven defeat the fancy of Lucie Darnay, and keep these
feet far out of her life! For, they are headlong, mad, and dangerous; and
in the years so long after the breaking of the cask at Defarge’s wine-shop
door, they are not easily purified when once stained red.
CHAPTER XXII.<br />The Sea Still Rises
Haggard Saint Antoine had had only one exultant week, in which to soften
his modicum of hard and bitter bread to such extent as he could, with the
relish of fraternal embraces and congratulations, when Madame Defarge sat
at her counter, as usual, presiding over the customers. Madame Defarge
wore no rose in her head, for the great brotherhood of Spies had become,
even in one short week, extremely chary of trusting themselves to the
saint’s mercies. The lamps across his streets had a portentously elastic
swing with them.
Madame Defarge, with her arms folded, sat in the morning light and heat,
contemplating the wine-shop and the street. In both, there were several
knots of loungers, squalid and miserable, but now with a manifest sense of
power enthroned on their distress. The raggedest nightcap, awry on the
wretchedest head, had this crooked significance in it: “I know how hard it
has grown for me, the wearer of this, to support life in myself; but do
you know how easy it has grown for me, the wearer of this, to destroy life
in you?” Every lean bare arm, that had been without work before, had this
work always ready for it now, that it could strike. The fingers of the
knitting women were vicious, with the experience that they could tear.
There was a change in the appearance of Saint Antoine; the image had been
hammering into this for hundreds of years, and the last finishing blows
had told mightily on the expression.
Madame Defarge sat observing it, with such suppressed approval as was to
be desired in the leader of the Saint Antoine women. One of her sisterhood
knitted beside her. The short, rather plump wife of a starved grocer, and
the mother of two children withal, this lieutenant had already earned the
complimentary name of The Vengeance.
“Hark!” said The Vengeance. “Listen, then! Who comes?”
As if a train of powder laid from the outermost bound of Saint Antoine
Quarter to the wine-shop door, had been suddenly fired, a fast-spreading
murmur came rushing along.
“It is Defarge,” said madame. “Silence, patriots!”
Defarge came in breathless, pulled off a red cap he wore, and looked
around him! “Listen, everywhere!” said madame again. “Listen to him!”
Defarge stood, panting, against a background of eager eyes and open
mouths, formed outside the door; all those within the wine-shop had sprung
to their feet.
“Say then, my husband. What is it?”
“News from the other world!”
“How, then?” cried madame, contemptuously. “The other world?”
“Does everybody here recall old Foulon, who told the famished people that
they might eat grass, and who died, and went to Hell?”
“Everybody!” from all throats.
“The news is of him. He is among us!”
“Among us!” from the universal throat again. “And dead?”
“Not dead! He feared us so much—and with reason—that he caused
himself to be represented as dead, and had a grand mock-funeral. But they
have found him alive, hiding in the country, and have brought him in. I
have seen him but now, on his way to the Hotel de Ville, a prisoner. I
have said that he had reason to fear us. Say all! he reason?”
Wretched old sinner of more than threescore years and ten, if he had never
known it yet, he would have known it in his heart of hearts if he could
have heard the answering cry.
A moment of profound silence followed. Defarge and his wife looked
steadfastly at one another. The Vengeance stooped, and the jar of a drum
was heard as she moved it at her feet behind the counter.
“Patriots!” said Defarge, in a determined voice, “are we ready?”
Instantly Madame Defarge’s knife was in her girdle; the drum was beating
in the streets, as if it and a drummer had flown together by magic; and
The Vengeance, uttering terrific shrieks, and flinging her arms about her
head like all the forty Furies at once, was tearing from house to house,
rousing the women.
The men were terrible, in the bloody-minded anger with which they looked
from windows, caught up what arms they had, and came pouring down into the
streets; but, the women were a sight to chill the boldest. From such
household occupations as their bare poverty yielded, from their children,
from their aged and their sick crouching on the bare ground famished and
naked, they ran out with streaming hair, urging one another, and
themselves, to madness with the wildest cries and actions. Villain Foulon
taken, my sister! Old Foulon taken, my mother! Miscreant Foulon taken, my
daughter! Then, a score of others ran into the midst of these, beating
their breasts, tearing their hair, and screaming, Foulon alive! Foulon who
told the starving people they might eat grass! Foulon who told my old
father that he might eat grass, when I had no bread to give him! Foulon
who told my baby it might suck grass, when these breasts were dry with
want! O mother of God, this Foulon! O Heaven our suffering! Hear me, my
dead baby and my withered father: I swear on my knees, on these stones, to
avenge you on Foulon! Husbands, and brothers, and young men, Give us the
blood of Foulon, Give us the head of Foulon, Give us the heart of Foulon,
Give us the body and soul of Foulon, Rend Foulon to pieces, and dig him
into the ground, that grass may grow from him! With these cries, numbers
of the women, lashed into blind frenzy, whirled about, striking and
tearing at their own friends until they dropped into a passionate swoon,
and were only saved by the men belonging to them from being trampled under
foot.
<br />
Nevertheless, not a moment was lost; not a moment! This Foulon was at the
Hotel de Ville, and might be loosed. Never, if Saint Antoine knew his own
sufferings, insults, and wrongs! Armed men and women flocked out of the
Quarter so fast, and drew even these last dregs after them with such a
force of suction, that within a quarter of an hour there was not a human
creature in Saint Antoine’s bosom but a few old crones and the wailing
children.
<br />
No. They were all by that time choking the Hall of Examination where this
old man, ugly and wicked, was, and overflowing into the adjacent open
space and streets. The Defarges, husband and wife, The Vengeance, and
Jacques Three, were in the first press, and at no great distance from him
in the Hall.
<br />
“See!” cried madame, pointing with her knife. “See the old villain bound
with ropes. That was well done to tie a bunch of grass upon his back. Ha,
ha! That was well done. Let him eat it now!” Madame put her knife under
her arm, and clapped her hands as at a play.
<br />
The people immediately behind Madame Defarge, explaining the cause of her
satisfaction to those behind them, and those again explaining to others,
and those to others, the neighbouring streets resounded with the clapping
of hands. Similarly, during two or three hours of drawl, and the winnowing
of many bushels of words, Madame Defarge’s frequent expressions of
impatience were taken up, with marvellous quickness, at a distance: the
more readily, because certain men who had by some wonderful exercise of
agility climbed up the external architecture to look in from the windows,
knew Madame Defarge well, and acted as a telegraph between her and the
crowd outside the building.
<br />
At length the sun rose so high that it struck a kindly ray as of hope or
protection, directly down upon the old prisoner’s head. The favour was too
much to bear; in an instant the barrier of dust and chaff that had stood
surprisingly long, went to the winds, and Saint Antoine had got him!
<br />
It was known directly, to the furthest confines of the crowd. Defarge had
but sprung over a railing and a table, and folded the miserable wretch in
a deadly embrace—Madame Defarge had but followed and turned her hand
in one of the ropes with which he was tied—The Vengeance and Jacques
Three were not yet up with them, and the men at the windows had not yet
swooped into the Hall, like birds of prey from their high perches—when
the cry seemed to go up, all over the city, “Bring him out! Bring him to
the lamp!”
<br />
Down, and up, and head foremost on the steps of the building; now, on his
knees; now, on his feet; now, on his back; dragged, and struck at, and
stifled by the bunches of grass and straw that were thrust into his face
by hundreds of hands; torn, bruised, panting, bleeding, yet always
entreating and beseeching for mercy; now full of vehement agony of action,
with a small clear space about him as the people drew one another back
that they might see; now, a log of dead wood drawn through a forest of
legs; he was hauled to the nearest street corner where one of the fatal
lamps swung, and there Madame Defarge let him go—as a cat might have
done to a mouse—and silently and composedly looked at him while they
made ready, and while he besought her: the women passionately screeching
at him all the time, and the men sternly calling out to have him killed
with grass in his mouth. Once, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they
caught him shrieking; twice, he went aloft, and the rope broke, and they
caught him shrieking; then, the rope was merciful, and held him, and his
head was soon upon a pike, with grass enough in the mouth for all Saint
Antoine to dance at the sight of.
<br />
Nor was this the end of the day’s bad work, for Saint Antoine so shouted
and danced his angry blood up, that it boiled again, on hearing when the
day closed in that the son-in-law of the despatched, another of the
people’s enemies and insulters, was coming into Paris under a guard five
hundred strong, in cavalry alone. Saint Antoine wrote his crimes on
flaring sheets of paper, seized him—would have torn him out of the
breast of an army to bear Foulon company—set his head and heart on
pikes, and carried the three spoils of the day, in Wolf-procession through
the streets.
<br />
Not before dark night did the men and women come back to the children,
wailing and breadless. Then, the miserable bakers’ shops were beset by
long files of them, patiently waiting to buy bad bread; and while they
waited with stomachs faint and empty, they beguiled the time by embracing
one another on the triumphs of the day, and achieving them again in
gossip. Gradually, these strings of ragged people shortened and frayed
away; and then poor lights began to shine in high windows, and slender
fires were made in the streets, at which neighbours cooked in common,
afterwards supping at their doors.
<br />
Scanty and insufficient suppers those, and innocent of meat, as of most
other sauce to wretched bread. Yet, human fellowship infused some
nourishment into the flinty viands, and struck some sparks of cheerfulness
out of them. Fathers and mothers who had had their full share in the worst
of the day, played gently with their meagre children; and lovers, with
such a world around them and before them, loved and hoped.
<br />
It was almost morning, when Defarge’s wine-shop parted with its last knot
of customers, and Monsieur Defarge said to madame his wife, in husky
tones, while fastening the door:
<br />
“At last it is come, my dear!”
<br />
“Eh well!” returned madame. “Almost.”
<br />
Saint Antoine slept, the Defarges slept: even The Vengeance slept with her
starved grocer, and the drum was at rest. The drum’s was the only voice in
Saint Antoine that blood and hurry had not changed. The Vengeance, as
custodian of the drum, could have wakened him up and had the same speech
out of him as before the Bastille fell, or old Foulon was seized; not so
with the hoarse tones of the men and women in Saint Antoine’s bosom.
CHAPTER XXIII.<br />Fire Rises
There was a change on the village where the fountain fell, and where the
mender of roads went forth daily to hammer out of the stones on the
highway such morsels of bread as might serve for patches to hold his poor
ignorant soul and his poor reduced body together. The prison on the crag
was not so dominant as of yore; there were soldiers to guard it, but not
many; there were officers to guard the soldiers, but not one of them knew
what his men would do—beyond this: that it would probably not be
what he was ordered.
Far and wide lay a ruined country, yielding nothing but desolation. Every
green leaf, every blade of grass and blade of grain, was as shrivelled and
poor as the miserable people. Everything was bowed down, dejected,
oppressed, and broken. Habitations, fences, domesticated animals, men,
women, children, and the soil that bore them—all worn out.
Monseigneur (often a most worthy individual gentleman) was a national
blessing, gave a chivalrous tone to things, was a polite example of
luxurious and shining life, and a great deal more to equal purpose;
nevertheless, Monseigneur as a class had, somehow or other, brought things
to this. Strange that Creation, designed expressly for Monseigneur, should
be so soon wrung dry and squeezed out! There must be something
short-sighted in the eternal arrangements, surely! Thus it was, however;
and the last drop of blood having been extracted from the flints, and the
last screw of the rack having been turned so often that its purchase
crumbled, and it now turned and turned with nothing to bite, Monseigneur
began to run away from a phenomenon so low and unaccountable.
But, this was not the change on the village, and on many a village like
it. For scores of years gone by, Monseigneur had squeezed it and wrung it,
and had seldom graced it with his presence except for the pleasures of the
chase—now, found in hunting the people; now, found in hunting the
beasts, for whose preservation Monseigneur made edifying spaces of
barbarous and barren wilderness. No. The change consisted in the
appearance of strange faces of low caste, rather than in the disappearance
of the high caste, chiselled, and otherwise beautified and beautifying
features of Monseigneur.
For, in these times, as the mender of roads worked, solitary, in the dust,
not often troubling himself to reflect that dust he was and to dust he
must return, being for the most part too much occupied in thinking how
little he had for supper and how much more he would eat if he had it—in
these times, as he raised his eyes from his lonely labour, and viewed the
prospect, he would see some rough figure approaching on foot, the like of
which was once a rarity in those parts, but was now a frequent presence.
As it advanced, the mender of roads would discern without surprise, that
it was a shaggy-haired man, of almost barbarian aspect, tall, in wooden
shoes that were clumsy even to the eyes of a mender of roads, grim, rough,
swart, steeped in the mud and dust of many highways, dank with the marshy
moisture of many low grounds, sprinkled with the thorns and leaves and
moss of many byways through woods.
Such a man came upon him, like a ghost, at noon in the July weather, as he
sat on his heap of stones under a bank, taking such shelter as he could
get from a shower of hail.
The man looked at him, looked at the village in the hollow, at the mill,
and at the prison on the crag. When he had identified these objects in
what benighted mind he had, he said, in a dialect that was just
intelligible:
“How goes it, Jacques?”
“All well, Jacques.”
“Touch then!”
They joined hands, and the man sat down on the heap of stones.
“No dinner?”
“Nothing but supper now,” said the mender of roads, with a hungry face.
“It is the fashion,” growled the man. “I meet no dinner anywhere.”
He took out a blackened pipe, filled it, lighted it with flint and steel,
pulled at it until it was in a bright glow: then, suddenly held it from
him and dropped something into it from between his finger and thumb, that
blazed and went out in a puff of smoke.
“Touch then.” It was the turn of the mender of roads to say it this time,
after observing these operations. They again joined hands.
“To-night?” said the mender of roads.
“To-night,” said the man, putting the pipe in his mouth.
“Where?”
“Here.”
He and the mender of roads sat on the heap of stones looking silently at
one another, with the hail driving in between them like a pigmy charge of
bayonets, until the sky began to clear over the village.
“Show me!” said the traveller then, moving to the brow of the hill.
“See!” returned the mender of roads, with extended finger. “You go down
here, and straight through the street, and past the fountain—”
“To the Devil with all that!” interrupted the other, rolling his eye over
the landscape. “ go through no streets and past no fountains.
Well?”
“Well! About two leagues beyond the summit of that hill above the
village.”
“Good. When do you cease to work?”
“At sunset.”
“Will you wake me, before departing? I have walked two nights without
resting. Let me finish my pipe, and I shall sleep like a child. Will you
wake me?”
“Surely.”
The wayfarer smoked his pipe out, put it in his breast, slipped off his
great wooden shoes, and lay down on his back on the heap of stones. He was
fast asleep directly.
As the road-mender plied his dusty labour, and the hail-clouds, rolling
away, revealed bright bars and streaks of sky which were responded to by
silver gleams upon the landscape, the little man (who wore a red cap now,
in place of his blue one) seemed fascinated by the figure on the heap of
stones. His eyes were so often turned towards it, that he used his tools
mechanically, and, one would have said, to very poor account. The bronze
face, the shaggy black hair and beard, the coarse woollen red cap, the
rough medley dress of home-spun stuff and hairy skins of beasts, the
powerful frame attenuated by spare living, and the sullen and desperate
compression of the lips in sleep, inspired the mender of roads with awe.
The traveller had travelled far, and his feet were footsore, and his
ankles chafed and bleeding; his great shoes, stuffed with leaves and
grass, had been heavy to drag over the many long leagues, and his clothes
were chafed into holes, as he himself was into sores. Stooping down beside
him, the road-mender tried to get a peep at secret weapons in his breast
or where not; but, in vain, for he slept with his arms crossed upon him,
and set as resolutely as his lips. Fortified towns with their stockades,
guard-houses, gates, trenches, and drawbridges, seemed to the mender of
roads, to be so much air as against this figure. And when he lifted his
eyes from it to the horizon and looked around, he saw in his small fancy
similar figures, stopped by no obstacle, tending to centres all over
France.
The man slept on, indifferent to showers of hail and intervals of
brightness, to sunshine on his face and shadow, to the paltering lumps of
dull ice on his body and the diamonds into which the sun changed them,
until the sun was low in the west, and the sky was glowing. Then, the
mender of roads having got his tools together and all things ready to go
down into the village, roused him.
“Good!” said the sleeper, rising on his elbow. “Two leagues beyond the
summit of the hill?”
“About.”
“About. Good!”
The mender of roads went home, with the dust going on before him according
to the set of the wind, and was soon at the fountain, squeezing himself in
among the lean kine brought there to drink, and appearing even to whisper
to them in his whispering to all the village. When the village had taken
its poor supper, it did not creep to bed, as it usually did, but came out
of doors again, and remained there. A curious contagion of whispering was
upon it, and also, when it gathered together at the fountain in the dark,
another curious contagion of looking expectantly at the sky in one
direction only. Monsieur Gabelle, chief functionary of the place, became
uneasy; went out on his house-top alone, and looked in that direction too;
glanced down from behind his chimneys at the darkening faces by the
fountain below, and sent word to the sacristan who kept the keys of the
church, that there might be need to ring the tocsin by-and-bye.
The night deepened. The trees environing the old chateau, keeping its
solitary state apart, moved in a rising wind, as though they threatened
the pile of building massive and dark in the gloom. Up the two terrace
flights of steps the rain ran wildly, and beat at the great door, like a
swift messenger rousing those within; uneasy rushes of wind went through
the hall, among the old spears and knives, and passed lamenting up the
stairs, and shook the curtains of the bed where the last Marquis had
slept. East, West, North, and South, through the woods, four
heavy-treading, unkempt figures crushed the high grass and cracked the
branches, striding on cautiously to come together in the courtyard. Four
lights broke out there, and moved away in different directions, and all
was black again.
But, not for long. Presently, the chateau began to make itself strangely
visible by some light of its own, as though it were growing luminous.
Then, a flickering streak played behind the architecture of the front,
picking out transparent places, and showing where balustrades, arches, and
windows were. Then it soared higher, and grew broader and brighter. Soon,
from a score of the great windows, flames burst forth, and the stone faces
awakened, stared out of fire.
A faint murmur arose about the house from the few people who were left
there, and there was a saddling of a horse and riding away. There was
spurring and splashing through the darkness, and bridle was drawn in the
space by the village fountain, and the horse in a foam stood at Monsieur
Gabelle’s door. “Help, Gabelle! Help, every one!” The tocsin rang
impatiently, but other help (if that were any) there was none. The mender
of roads, and two hundred and fifty particular friends, stood with folded
arms at the fountain, looking at the pillar of fire in the sky. “It must
be forty feet high,” said they, grimly; and never moved.
The rider from the chateau, and the horse in a foam, clattered away
through the village, and galloped up the stony steep, to the prison on the
crag. At the gate, a group of officers were looking at the fire; removed
from them, a group of soldiers. “Help, gentlemen—officers! The
chateau is on fire; valuable objects may be saved from the flames by
timely aid! Help, help!” The officers looked towards the soldiers who
looked at the fire; gave no orders; and answered, with shrugs and biting
of lips, “It must burn.”
As the rider rattled down the hill again and through the street, the
village was illuminating. The mender of roads, and the two hundred and
fifty particular friends, inspired as one man and woman by the idea of
lighting up, had darted into their houses, and were putting candles in
every dull little pane of glass. The general scarcity of everything,
occasioned candles to be borrowed in a rather peremptory manner of
Monsieur Gabelle; and in a moment of reluctance and hesitation on that
functionary’s part, the mender of roads, once so submissive to authority,
had remarked that carriages were good to make bonfires with, and that
post-horses would roast.
The chateau was left to itself to flame and burn. In the roaring and
raging of the conflagration, a red-hot wind, driving straight from the
infernal regions, seemed to be blowing the edifice away. With the rising
and falling of the blaze, the stone faces showed as if they were in
torment. When great masses of stone and timber fell, the face with the two
dints in the nose became obscured: anon struggled out of the smoke again,
as if it were the face of the cruel Marquis, burning at the stake and
contending with the fire.
The chateau burned; the nearest trees, laid hold of by the fire, scorched
and shrivelled; trees at a distance, fired by the four fierce figures,
begirt the blazing edifice with a new forest of smoke. Molten lead and
iron boiled in the marble basin of the fountain; the water ran dry; the
extinguisher tops of the towers vanished like ice before the heat, and
trickled down into four rugged wells of flame. Great rents and splits
branched out in the solid walls, like crystallisation; stupefied birds
wheeled about and dropped into the furnace; four fierce figures trudged
away, East, West, North, and South, along the night-enshrouded roads,
guided by the beacon they had lighted, towards their next destination. The
illuminated village had seized hold of the tocsin, and, abolishing the
lawful ringer, rang for joy.
Not only that; but the village, light-headed with famine, fire, and
bell-ringing, and bethinking itself that Monsieur Gabelle had to do with
the collection of rent and taxes—though it was but a small
instalment of taxes, and no rent at all, that Gabelle had got in those
latter days—became impatient for an interview with him, and,
surrounding his house, summoned him to come forth for personal conference.
Whereupon, Monsieur Gabelle did heavily bar his door, and retire to hold
counsel with himself. The result of that conference was, that Gabelle
again withdrew himself to his housetop behind his stack of chimneys; this
time resolved, if his door were broken in (he was a small Southern man of
retaliative temperament), to pitch himself head foremost over the parapet,
and crush a man or two below.
Probably, Monsieur Gabelle passed a long night up there, with the distant
chateau for fire and candle, and the beating at his door, combined with
the joy-ringing, for music; not to mention his having an ill-omened lamp
slung across the road before his posting-house gate, which the village
showed a lively inclination to displace in his favour. A trying suspense,
to be passing a whole summer night on the brink of the black ocean, ready
to take that plunge into it upon which Monsieur Gabelle had resolved! But,
the friendly dawn appearing at last, and the rush-candles of the village
guttering out, the people happily dispersed, and Monsieur Gabelle came
down bringing his life with him for that while.
Within a hundred miles, and in the light of other fires, there were other
functionaries less fortunate, that night and other nights, whom the rising
sun found hanging across once-peaceful streets, where they had been born
and bred; also, there were other villagers and townspeople less fortunate
than the mender of roads and his fellows, upon whom the functionaries and
soldiery turned with success, and whom they strung up in their turn. But,
the fierce figures were steadily wending East, West, North, and South, be
that as it would; and whosoever hung, fire burned. The altitude of the
gallows that would turn to water and quench it, no functionary, by any
stretch of mathematics, was able to calculate successfully.
CHAPTER XXIV.<br />Drawn to the Loadstone Rock
In such risings of fire and risings of sea—the firm earth shaken by
the rushes of an angry ocean which had now no ebb, but was always on the
flow, higher and higher, to the terror and wonder of the beholders on the
shore—three years of tempest were consumed. Three more birthdays of
little Lucie had been woven by the golden thread into the peaceful tissue
of the life of her home.
Many a night and many a day had its inmates listened to the echoes in the
corner, with hearts that failed them when they heard the thronging feet.
For, the footsteps had become to their minds as the footsteps of a people,
tumultuous under a red flag and with their country declared in danger,
changed into wild beasts, by terrible enchantment long persisted in.
Monseigneur, as a class, had dissociated himself from the phenomenon of
his not being appreciated: of his being so little wanted in France, as to
incur considerable danger of receiving his dismissal from it, and this
life together. Like the fabled rustic who raised the Devil with infinite
pains, and was so terrified at the sight of him that he could ask the
Enemy no question, but immediately fled; so, Monseigneur, after boldly
reading the Lord’s Prayer backwards for a great number of years, and
performing many other potent spells for compelling the Evil One, no sooner
beheld him in his terrors than he took to his noble heels.
The shining Bull’s Eye of the Court was gone, or it would have been the
mark for a hurricane of national bullets. It had never been a good eye to
see with—had long had the mote in it of Lucifer’s pride,
Sardanapalus’s luxury, and a mole’s blindness—but it had dropped out
and was gone. The Court, from that exclusive inner circle to its outermost
rotten ring of intrigue, corruption, and dissimulation, was all gone
together. Royalty was gone; had been besieged in its Palace and
“suspended,” when the last tidings came over.
The August of the year one thousand seven hundred and ninety-two was come,
and Monseigneur was by this time scattered far and wide.
As was natural, the head-quarters and great gathering-place of
Monseigneur, in London, was Tellson’s Bank. Spirits are supposed to haunt
the places where their bodies most resorted, and Monseigneur without a
guinea haunted the spot where his guineas used to be. Moreover, it was the
spot to which such French intelligence as was most to be relied upon, came
quickest. Again: Tellson’s was a munificent house, and extended great
liberality to old customers who had fallen from their high estate. Again:
those nobles who had seen the coming storm in time, and anticipating
plunder or confiscation, had made provident remittances to Tellson’s, were
always to be heard of there by their needy brethren. To which it must be
added that every new-comer from France reported himself and his tidings at
Tellson’s, almost as a matter of course. For such variety of reasons,
Tellson’s was at that time, as to French intelligence, a kind of High
Exchange; and this was so well known to the public, and the inquiries made
there were in consequence so numerous, that Tellson’s sometimes wrote the
latest news out in a line or so and posted it in the Bank windows, for all
who ran through Temple Bar to read.
On a steaming, misty afternoon, Mr. Lorry sat at his desk, and Charles
Darnay stood leaning on it, talking with him in a low voice. The
penitential den once set apart for interviews with the House, was now the
news-Exchange, and was filled to overflowing. It was within half an hour
or so of the time of closing.
“But, although you are the youngest man that ever lived,” said Charles
Darnay, rather hesitating, “I must still suggest to you—”
“I understand. That I am too old?” said Mr. Lorry.
“Unsettled weather, a long journey, uncertain means of travelling, a
disorganised country, a city that may not be even safe for you.”
“My dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, with cheerful confidence, “you touch
some of the reasons for my going: not for my staying away. It is safe
enough for me; nobody will care to interfere with an old fellow of hard
upon fourscore when there are so many people there much better worth
interfering with. As to its being a disorganised city, if it were not a
disorganised city there would be no occasion to send somebody from our
House here to our House there, who knows the city and the business, of
old, and is in Tellson’s confidence. As to the uncertain travelling, the
long journey, and the winter weather, if I were not prepared to submit
myself to a few inconveniences for the sake of Tellson’s, after all these
years, who ought to be?”
“I wish I were going myself,” said Charles Darnay, somewhat restlessly,
and like one thinking aloud.
“Indeed! You are a pretty fellow to object and advise!” exclaimed Mr.
Lorry. “You wish you were going yourself? And you a Frenchman born? You
are a wise counsellor.”
“My dear Mr. Lorry, it is because I am a Frenchman born, that the thought
(which I did not mean to utter here, however) has passed through my mind
often. One cannot help thinking, having had some sympathy for the
miserable people, and having abandoned something to them,” he spoke here
in his former thoughtful manner, “that one might be listened to, and might
have the power to persuade to some restraint. Only last night, after you
had left us, when I was talking to Lucie—”
“When you were talking to Lucie,” Mr. Lorry repeated. “Yes. I wonder you
are not ashamed to mention the name of Lucie! Wishing you were going to
France at this time of day!”
“However, I am not going,” said Charles Darnay, with a smile. “It is more
to the purpose that you say you are.”
“And I am, in plain reality. The truth is, my dear Charles,” Mr. Lorry
glanced at the distant House, and lowered his voice, “you can have no
conception of the difficulty with which our business is transacted, and of
the peril in which our books and papers over yonder are involved. The Lord
above knows what the compromising consequences would be to numbers of
people, if some of our documents were seized or destroyed; and they might
be, at any time, you know, for who can say that Paris is not set afire
to-day, or sacked to-morrow! Now, a judicious selection from these with
the least possible delay, and the burying of them, or otherwise getting of
them out of harm’s way, is within the power (without loss of precious
time) of scarcely any one but myself, if any one. And shall I hang back,
when Tellson’s knows this and says this—Tellson’s, whose bread I
have eaten these sixty years—because I am a little stiff about the
joints? Why, I am a boy, sir, to half a dozen old codgers here!”
“How I admire the gallantry of your youthful spirit, Mr. Lorry.”
“Tut! Nonsense, sir!—And, my dear Charles,” said Mr. Lorry, glancing
at the House again, “you are to remember, that getting things out of Paris
at this present time, no matter what things, is next to an impossibility.
Papers and precious matters were this very day brought to us here (I speak
in strict confidence; it is not business-like to whisper it, even to you),
by the strangest bearers you can imagine, every one of whom had his head
hanging on by a single hair as he passed the Barriers. At another time,
our parcels would come and go, as easily as in business-like Old England;
but now, everything is stopped.”
“And do you really go to-night?”
“I really go to-night, for the case has become too pressing to admit of
delay.”
“And do you take no one with you?”
“All sorts of people have been proposed to me, but I will have nothing to
say to any of them. I intend to take Jerry. Jerry has been my bodyguard on
Sunday nights for a long time past and I am used to him. Nobody will
suspect Jerry of being anything but an English bull-dog, or of having any
design in his head but to fly at anybody who touches his master.”
“I must say again that I heartily admire your gallantry and youthfulness.”
“I must say again, nonsense, nonsense! When I have executed this little
commission, I shall, perhaps, accept Tellson’s proposal to retire and live
at my ease. Time enough, then, to think about growing old.”
This dialogue had taken place at Mr. Lorry’s usual desk, with Monseigneur
swarming within a yard or two of it, boastful of what he would do to
avenge himself on the rascal-people before long. It was too much the way
of Monseigneur under his reverses as a refugee, and it was much too much
the way of native British orthodoxy, to talk of this terrible Revolution
as if it were the only harvest ever known under the skies that had not
been sown—as if nothing had ever been done, or omitted to be done,
that had led to it—as if observers of the wretched millions in
France, and of the misused and perverted resources that should have made
them prosperous, had not seen it inevitably coming, years before, and had
not in plain words recorded what they saw. Such vapouring, combined with
the extravagant plots of Monseigneur for the restoration of a state of
things that had utterly exhausted itself, and worn out Heaven and earth as
well as itself, was hard to be endured without some remonstrance by any
sane man who knew the truth. And it was such vapouring all about his ears,
like a troublesome confusion of blood in his own head, added to a latent
uneasiness in his mind, which had already made Charles Darnay restless,
and which still kept him so.
Among the talkers, was Stryver, of the King’s Bench Bar, far on his way to
state promotion, and, therefore, loud on the theme: broaching to
Monseigneur, his devices for blowing the people up and exterminating them
from the face of the earth, and doing without them: and for accomplishing
many similar objects akin in their nature to the abolition of eagles by
sprinkling salt on the tails of the race. Him, Darnay heard with a
particular feeling of objection; and Darnay stood divided between going
away that he might hear no more, and remaining to interpose his word, when
the thing that was to be, went on to shape itself out.
The House approached Mr. Lorry, and laying a soiled and unopened letter
before him, asked if he had yet discovered any traces of the person to
whom it was addressed? The House laid the letter down so close to Darnay
that he saw the direction—the more quickly because it was his own
right name. The address, turned into English, ran:
“Very pressing. To Monsieur heretofore the Marquis St. Evrémonde, of
France. Confided to the cares of Messrs. Tellson and Co., Bankers, London,
England.”
On the marriage morning, Doctor Manette had made it his one urgent and
express request to Charles Darnay, that the secret of this name should be—unless
he, the Doctor, dissolved the obligation—kept inviolate between
them. Nobody else knew it to be his name; his own wife had no suspicion of
the fact; Mr. Lorry could have none.
“No,” said Mr. Lorry, in reply to the House; “I have referred it, I think,
to everybody now here, and no one can tell me where this gentleman is to
be found.”
The hands of the clock verging upon the hour of closing the Bank, there
was a general set of the current of talkers past Mr. Lorry’s desk. He held
the letter out inquiringly; and Monseigneur looked at it, in the person of
this plotting and indignant refugee; and Monseigneur looked at it in the
person of that plotting and indignant refugee; and This, That, and The
Other, all had something disparaging to say, in French or in English,
concerning the Marquis who was not to be found.
“Nephew, I believe—but in any case degenerate successor—of the
polished Marquis who was murdered,” said one. “Happy to say, I never knew
him.”
“A craven who abandoned his post,” said another—this Monseigneur had
been got out of Paris, legs uppermost and half suffocated, in a load of
hay—“some years ago.”
“Infected with the new doctrines,” said a third, eyeing the direction
through his glass in passing; “set himself in opposition to the last
Marquis, abandoned the estates when he inherited them, and left them to
the ruffian herd. They will recompense him now, I hope, as he deserves.”
“Hey?” cried the blatant Stryver. “Did he though? Is that the sort of
fellow? Let us look at his infamous name. D—n the fellow!”
Darnay, unable to restrain himself any longer, touched Mr. Stryver on the
shoulder, and said:
“I know the fellow.”
“Do you, by Jupiter?” said Stryver. “I am sorry for it.”
“Why?”
“Why, Mr. Darnay? D’ye hear what he did? Don’t ask, why, in these times.”
“But I do ask why?”
“Then I tell you again, Mr. Darnay, I am sorry for it. I am sorry to hear
you putting any such extraordinary questions. Here is a fellow, who,
infected by the most pestilent and blasphemous code of devilry that ever
was known, abandoned his property to the vilest scum of the earth that
ever did murder by wholesale, and you ask me why I am sorry that a man who
instructs youth knows him? Well, but I’ll answer you. I am sorry because I
believe there is contamination in such a scoundrel. That’s why.”
Mindful of the secret, Darnay with great difficulty checked himself, and
said: “You may not understand the gentleman.”
“I understand how to put in a corner, Mr. Darnay,” said Bully
Stryver, “and I’ll do it. If this fellow is a gentleman, I
understand him. You may tell him so, with my compliments. You may also
tell him, from me, that after abandoning his worldly goods and position to
this butcherly mob, I wonder he is not at the head of them. But, no,
gentlemen,” said Stryver, looking all round, and snapping his fingers, “I
know something of human nature, and I tell you that you’ll never find a
fellow like this fellow, trusting himself to the mercies of such precious
. No, gentlemen; he’ll always show ’em a clean pair of
heels very early in the scuffle, and sneak away.”
With those words, and a final snap of his fingers, Mr. Stryver shouldered
himself into Fleet-street, amidst the general approbation of his hearers.
Mr. Lorry and Charles Darnay were left alone at the desk, in the general
departure from the Bank.
“Will you take charge of the letter?” said Mr. Lorry. “You know where to
deliver it?”
“I do.”
“Will you undertake to explain, that we suppose it to have been addressed
here, on the chance of our knowing where to forward it, and that it has
been here some time?”
“I will do so. Do you start for Paris from here?”
“From here, at eight.”
“I will come back, to see you off.”
Very ill at ease with himself, and with Stryver and most other men, Darnay
made the best of his way into the quiet of the Temple, opened the letter,
and read it. These were its contents:
“Prison of the Abbaye, Paris.
“June 21, 1792. “.
“After having long been in danger of my life at the hands of the village,
I have been seized, with great violence and indignity, and brought a long
journey on foot to Paris. On the road I have suffered a great deal. Nor is
that all; my house has been destroyed—razed to the ground.
“The crime for which I am imprisoned, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, and
for which I shall be summoned before the tribunal, and shall lose my life
(without your so generous help), is, they tell me, treason against the
majesty of the people, in that I have acted against them for an emigrant.
It is in vain I represent that I have acted for them, and not against,
according to your commands. It is in vain I represent that, before the
sequestration of emigrant property, I had remitted the imposts they had
ceased to pay; that I had collected no rent; that I had had recourse to no
process. The only response is, that I have acted for an emigrant, and
where is that emigrant?
“Ah! most gracious Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, where is that
emigrant? I cry in my sleep where is he? I demand of Heaven, will he not
come to deliver me? No answer. Ah Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, I send
my desolate cry across the sea, hoping it may perhaps reach your ears
through the great bank of Tilson known at Paris!
“For the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of your
noble name, I supplicate you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, to succour
and release me. My fault is, that I have been true to you. Oh Monsieur
heretofore the Marquis, I pray you be you true to me!
“From this prison here of horror, whence I every hour tend nearer and
nearer to destruction, I send you, Monsieur heretofore the Marquis, the
assurance of my dolorous and unhappy service.
“Your afflicted,
“Gabelle.”
The latent uneasiness in Darnay’s mind was roused to vigourous life by
this letter. The peril of an old servant and a good one, whose only crime
was fidelity to himself and his family, stared him so reproachfully in the
face, that, as he walked to and fro in the Temple considering what to do,
he almost hid his face from the passersby.
He knew very well, that in his horror of the deed which had culminated the
bad deeds and bad reputation of the old family house, in his resentful
suspicions of his uncle, and in the aversion with which his conscience
regarded the crumbling fabric that he was supposed to uphold, he had acted
imperfectly. He knew very well, that in his love for Lucie, his
renunciation of his social place, though by no means new to his own mind,
had been hurried and incomplete. He knew that he ought to have
systematically worked it out and supervised it, and that he had meant to
do it, and that it had never been done.
The happiness of his own chosen English home, the necessity of being
always actively employed, the swift changes and troubles of the time which
had followed on one another so fast, that the events of this week
annihilated the immature plans of last week, and the events of the week
following made all new again; he knew very well, that to the force of
these circumstances he had yielded:—not without disquiet, but still
without continuous and accumulating resistance. That he had watched the
times for a time of action, and that they had shifted and struggled until
the time had gone by, and the nobility were trooping from France by every
highway and byway, and their property was in course of confiscation and
destruction, and their very names were blotting out, was as well known to
himself as it could be to any new authority in France that might impeach
him for it.
But, he had oppressed no man, he had imprisoned no man; he was so far from
having harshly exacted payment of his dues, that he had relinquished them
of his own will, thrown himself on a world with no favour in it, won his
own private place there, and earned his own bread. Monsieur Gabelle had
held the impoverished and involved estate on written instructions, to
spare the people, to give them what little there was to give—such
fuel as the heavy creditors would let them have in the winter, and such
produce as could be saved from the same grip in the summer—and no
doubt he had put the fact in plea and proof, for his own safety, so that
it could not but appear now.
This favoured the desperate resolution Charles Darnay had begun to make,
that he would go to Paris.
Yes. Like the mariner in the old story, the winds and streams had driven
him within the influence of the Loadstone Rock, and it was drawing him to
itself, and he must go. Everything that arose before his mind drifted him
on, faster and faster, more and more steadily, to the terrible attraction.
His latent uneasiness had been, that bad aims were being worked out in his
own unhappy land by bad instruments, and that he who could not fail to
know that he was better than they, was not there, trying to do something
to stay bloodshed, and assert the claims of mercy and humanity. With this
uneasiness half stifled, and half reproaching him, he had been brought to
the pointed comparison of himself with the brave old gentleman in whom
duty was so strong; upon that comparison (injurious to himself) had
instantly followed the sneers of Monseigneur, which had stung him
bitterly, and those of Stryver, which above all were coarse and galling,
for old reasons. Upon those, had followed Gabelle’s letter: the appeal of
an innocent prisoner, in danger of death, to his justice, honour, and good
name.
His resolution was made. He must go to Paris.
Yes. The Loadstone Rock was drawing him, and he must sail on, until he
struck. He knew of no rock; he saw hardly any danger. The intention with
which he had done what he had done, even although he had left it
incomplete, presented it before him in an aspect that would be gratefully
acknowledged in France on his presenting himself to assert it. Then, that
glorious vision of doing good, which is so often the sanguine mirage of so
many good minds, arose before him, and he even saw himself in the illusion
with some influence to guide this raging Revolution that was running so
fearfully wild.
As he walked to and fro with his resolution made, he considered that
neither Lucie nor her father must know of it until he was gone. Lucie
should be spared the pain of separation; and her father, always reluctant
to turn his thoughts towards the dangerous ground of old, should come to
the knowledge of the step, as a step taken, and not in the balance of
suspense and doubt. How much of the incompleteness of his situation was
referable to her father, through the painful anxiety to avoid reviving old
associations of France in his mind, he did not discuss with himself. But,
that circumstance too, had had its influence in his course.
He walked to and fro, with thoughts very busy, until it was time to return
to Tellson’s and take leave of Mr. Lorry. As soon as he arrived in Paris
he would present himself to this old friend, but he must say nothing of
his intention now.
A carriage with post-horses was ready at the Bank door, and Jerry was
booted and equipped.
“I have delivered that letter,” said Charles Darnay to Mr. Lorry. “I would
not consent to your being charged with any written answer, but perhaps you
will take a verbal one?”
“That I will, and readily,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it is not dangerous.”
“Not at all. Though it is to a prisoner in the Abbaye.”
“What is his name?” said Mr. Lorry, with his open pocket-book in his hand.
“Gabelle.”
“Gabelle. And what is the message to the unfortunate Gabelle in prison?”
“Simply, ‘that he has received the letter, and will come.’”
“Any time mentioned?”
“He will start upon his journey to-morrow night.”
“Any person mentioned?”
“No.”
He helped Mr. Lorry to wrap himself in a number of coats and cloaks, and
went out with him from the warm atmosphere of the old Bank, into the misty
air of Fleet-street. “My love to Lucie, and to little Lucie,” said Mr.
Lorry at parting, “and take precious care of them till I come back.”
Charles Darnay shook his head and doubtfully smiled, as the carriage
rolled away.
That night—it was the fourteenth of August—he sat up late, and
wrote two fervent letters; one was to Lucie, explaining the strong
obligation he was under to go to Paris, and showing her, at length, the
reasons that he had, for feeling confident that he could become involved
in no personal danger there; the other was to the Doctor, confiding Lucie
and their dear child to his care, and dwelling on the same topics with the
strongest assurances. To both, he wrote that he would despatch letters in
proof of his safety, immediately after his arrival.
It was a hard day, that day of being among them, with the first
reservation of their joint lives on his mind. It was a hard matter to
preserve the innocent deceit of which they were profoundly unsuspicious.
But, an affectionate glance at his wife, so happy and busy, made him
resolute not to tell her what impended (he had been half moved to do it,
so strange it was to him to act in anything without her quiet aid), and
the day passed quickly. Early in the evening he embraced her, and her
scarcely less dear namesake, pretending that he would return by-and-bye
(an imaginary engagement took him out, and he had secreted a valise of
clothes ready), and so he emerged into the heavy mist of the heavy
streets, with a heavier heart.
The unseen force was drawing him fast to itself, now, and all the tides
and winds were setting straight and strong towards it. He left his two
letters with a trusty porter, to be delivered half an hour before
midnight, and no sooner; took horse for Dover; and began his journey. “For
the love of Heaven, of justice, of generosity, of the honour of your noble
name!” was the poor prisoner’s cry with which he strengthened his sinking
heart, as he left all that was dear on earth behind him, and floated away
for the Loadstone Rock.
The end of the second book.
Book the Third—the Track of a Storm
CHAPTER I.<br />In Secret
The traveller fared slowly on his way, who fared towards Paris from
England in the autumn of the year one thousand seven hundred and
ninety-two. More than enough of bad roads, bad equipages, and bad horses,
he would have encountered to delay him, though the fallen and unfortunate
King of France had been upon his throne in all his glory; but, the changed
times were fraught with other obstacles than these. Every town-gate and
village taxing-house had its band of citizen-patriots, with their national
muskets in a most explosive state of readiness, who stopped all comers and
goers, cross-questioned them, inspected their papers, looked for their
names in lists of their own, turned them back, or sent them on, or stopped
them and laid them in hold, as their capricious judgment or fancy deemed
best for the dawning Republic One and Indivisible, of Liberty, Equality,
Fraternity, or Death.
A very few French leagues of his journey were accomplished, when Charles
Darnay began to perceive that for him along these country roads there was
no hope of return until he should have been declared a good citizen at
Paris. Whatever might befall now, he must on to his journey’s end. Not a
mean village closed upon him, not a common barrier dropped across the road
behind him, but he knew it to be another iron door in the series that was
barred between him and England. The universal watchfulness so encompassed
him, that if he had been taken in a net, or were being forwarded to his
destination in a cage, he could not have felt his freedom more completely
gone.
This universal watchfulness not only stopped him on the highway twenty
times in a stage, but retarded his progress twenty times in a day, by
riding after him and taking him back, riding before him and stopping him
by anticipation, riding with him and keeping him in charge. He had been
days upon his journey in France alone, when he went to bed tired out, in a
little town on the high road, still a long way from Paris.
Nothing but the production of the afflicted Gabelle’s letter from his
prison of the Abbaye would have got him on so far. His difficulty at the
guard-house in this small place had been such, that he felt his journey to
have come to a crisis. And he was, therefore, as little surprised as a man
could be, to find himself awakened at the small inn to which he had been
remitted until morning, in the middle of the night.
Awakened by a timid local functionary and three armed patriots in rough
red caps and with pipes in their mouths, who sat down on the bed.
“Emigrant,” said the functionary, “I am going to send you on to Paris,
under an escort.”
“Citizen, I desire nothing more than to get to Paris, though I could
dispense with the escort.”
“Silence!” growled a red-cap, striking at the coverlet with the butt-end
of his musket. “Peace, aristocrat!”
“It is as the good patriot says,” observed the timid functionary. “You are
an aristocrat, and must have an escort—and must pay for it.”
“I have no choice,” said Charles Darnay.
“Choice! Listen to him!” cried the same scowling red-cap. “As if it was
not a favour to be protected from the lamp-iron!”
“It is always as the good patriot says,” observed the functionary. “Rise
and dress yourself, emigrant.”
Darnay complied, and was taken back to the guard-house, where other
patriots in rough red caps were smoking, drinking, and sleeping, by a
watch-fire. Here he paid a heavy price for his escort, and hence he
started with it on the wet, wet roads at three o’clock in the morning.
The escort were two mounted patriots in red caps and tri-coloured
cockades, armed with national muskets and sabres, who rode one on either
side of him.
The escorted governed his own horse, but a loose line was attached to his
bridle, the end of which one of the patriots kept girded round his wrist.
In this state they set forth with the sharp rain driving in their faces:
clattering at a heavy dragoon trot over the uneven town pavement, and out
upon the mire-deep roads. In this state they traversed without change,
except of horses and pace, all the mire-deep leagues that lay between them
and the capital.
They travelled in the night, halting an hour or two after daybreak, and
lying by until the twilight fell. The escort were so wretchedly clothed,
that they twisted straw round their bare legs, and thatched their ragged
shoulders to keep the wet off. Apart from the personal discomfort of being
so attended, and apart from such considerations of present danger as arose
from one of the patriots being chronically drunk, and carrying his musket
very recklessly, Charles Darnay did not allow the restraint that was laid
upon him to awaken any serious fears in his breast; for, he reasoned with
himself that it could have no reference to the merits of an individual
case that was not yet stated, and of representations, confirmable by the
prisoner in the Abbaye, that were not yet made.
But when they came to the town of Beauvais—which they did at
eventide, when the streets were filled with people—he could not
conceal from himself that the aspect of affairs was very alarming. An
ominous crowd gathered to see him dismount of the posting-yard, and many
voices called out loudly, “Down with the emigrant!”
He stopped in the act of swinging himself out of his saddle, and, resuming
it as his safest place, said:
“Emigrant, my friends! Do you not see me here, in France, of my own will?”
“You are a cursed emigrant,” cried a farrier, making at him in a furious
manner through the press, hammer in hand; “and you are a cursed
aristocrat!”
The postmaster interposed himself between this man and the rider’s bridle
(at which he was evidently making), and soothingly said, “Let him be; let
him be! He will be judged at Paris.”
“Judged!” repeated the farrier, swinging his hammer. “Ay! and condemned as
a traitor.” At this the crowd roared approval.
Checking the postmaster, who was for turning his horse’s head to the yard
(the drunken patriot sat composedly in his saddle looking on, with the
line round his wrist), Darnay said, as soon as he could make his voice
heard:
“Friends, you deceive yourselves, or you are deceived. I am not a
traitor.”
“He lies!” cried the smith. “He is a traitor since the decree. His life is
forfeit to the people. His cursed life is not his own!”
At the instant when Darnay saw a rush in the eyes of the crowd, which
another instant would have brought upon him, the postmaster turned his
horse into the yard, the escort rode in close upon his horse’s flanks, and
the postmaster shut and barred the crazy double gates. The farrier struck
a blow upon them with his hammer, and the crowd groaned; but, no more was
done.
“What is this decree that the smith spoke of?” Darnay asked the
postmaster, when he had thanked him, and stood beside him in the yard.
“Truly, a decree for selling the property of emigrants.”
“When passed?”
“On the fourteenth.”
“The day I left England!”
“Everybody says it is but one of several, and that there will be others—if
there are not already—banishing all emigrants, and condemning all to
death who return. That is what he meant when he said your life was not
your own.”
“But there are no such decrees yet?”
“What do I know!” said the postmaster, shrugging his shoulders; “there may
be, or there will be. It is all the same. What would you have?”
They rested on some straw in a loft until the middle of the night, and
then rode forward again when all the town was asleep. Among the many wild
changes observable on familiar things which made this wild ride unreal,
not the least was the seeming rarity of sleep. After long and lonely
spurring over dreary roads, they would come to a cluster of poor cottages,
not steeped in darkness, but all glittering with lights, and would find
the people, in a ghostly manner in the dead of the night, circling hand in
hand round a shrivelled tree of Liberty, or all drawn up together singing
a Liberty song. Happily, however, there was sleep in Beauvais that night
to help them out of it and they passed on once more into solitude and
loneliness: jingling through the untimely cold and wet, among impoverished
fields that had yielded no fruits of the earth that year, diversified by
the blackened remains of burnt houses, and by the sudden emergence from
ambuscade, and sharp reining up across their way, of patriot patrols on
the watch on all the roads.
Daylight at last found them before the wall of Paris. The barrier was
closed and strongly guarded when they rode up to it.
“Where are the papers of this prisoner?” demanded a resolute-looking man
in authority, who was summoned out by the guard.
Naturally struck by the disagreeable word, Charles Darnay requested the
speaker to take notice that he was a free traveller and French citizen, in
charge of an escort which the disturbed state of the country had imposed
upon him, and which he had paid for.
“Where,” repeated the same personage, without taking any heed of him
whatever, “are the papers of this prisoner?”
The drunken patriot had them in his cap, and produced them. Casting his
eyes over Gabelle’s letter, the same personage in authority showed some
disorder and surprise, and looked at Darnay with a close attention.
He left escort and escorted without saying a word, however, and went into
the guard-room; meanwhile, they sat upon their horses outside the gate.
Looking about him while in this state of suspense, Charles Darnay observed
that the gate was held by a mixed guard of soldiers and patriots, the
latter far outnumbering the former; and that while ingress into the city
for peasants’ carts bringing in supplies, and for similar traffic and
traffickers, was easy enough, egress, even for the homeliest people, was
very difficult. A numerous medley of men and women, not to mention beasts
and vehicles of various sorts, was waiting to issue forth; but, the
previous identification was so strict, that they filtered through the
barrier very slowly. Some of these people knew their turn for examination
to be so far off, that they lay down on the ground to sleep or smoke,
while others talked together, or loitered about. The red cap and
tri-colour cockade were universal, both among men and women.
When he had sat in his saddle some half-hour, taking note of these things,
Darnay found himself confronted by the same man in authority, who directed
the guard to open the barrier. Then he delivered to the escort, drunk and
sober, a receipt for the escorted, and requested him to dismount. He did
so, and the two patriots, leading his tired horse, turned and rode away
without entering the city.
He accompanied his conductor into a guard-room, smelling of common wine
and tobacco, where certain soldiers and patriots, asleep and awake, drunk
and sober, and in various neutral states between sleeping and waking,
drunkenness and sobriety, were standing and lying about. The light in the
guard-house, half derived from the waning oil-lamps of the night, and half
from the overcast day, was in a correspondingly uncertain condition. Some
registers were lying open on a desk, and an officer of a coarse, dark
aspect, presided over these.
“Citizen Defarge,” said he to Darnay’s conductor, as he took a slip of
paper to write on. “Is this the emigrant Evrémonde?”
“This is the man.”
“Your age, Evrémonde?”
“Thirty-seven.”
“Married, Evrémonde?”
“Yes.”
“Where married?”
“In England.”
“Without doubt. Where is your wife, Evrémonde?”
“In England.”
“Without doubt. You are consigned, Evrémonde, to the prison of La Force.”
“Just Heaven!” exclaimed Darnay. “Under what law, and for what offence?”
The officer looked up from his slip of paper for a moment.
“We have new laws, Evrémonde, and new offences, since you were here.” He
said it with a hard smile, and went on writing.
“I entreat you to observe that I have come here voluntarily, in response
to that written appeal of a fellow-countryman which lies before you. I
demand no more than the opportunity to do so without delay. Is not that my
right?”
“Emigrants have no rights, Evrémonde,” was the stolid reply. The officer
wrote until he had finished, read over to himself what he had written,
sanded it, and handed it to Defarge, with the words “In secret.”
<br />
Defarge motioned with the paper to the prisoner that he must accompany
him. The prisoner obeyed, and a guard of two armed patriots attended them.
<br />
“Is it you,” said Defarge, in a low voice, as they went down the
guardhouse steps and turned into Paris, “who married the daughter of
Doctor Manette, once a prisoner in the Bastille that is no more?”
<br />
“Yes,” replied Darnay, looking at him with surprise.
<br />
“My name is Defarge, and I keep a wine-shop in the Quarter Saint Antoine.
Possibly you have heard of me.”
<br />
“My wife came to your house to reclaim her father? Yes!”
<br />
The word “wife” seemed to serve as a gloomy reminder to Defarge, to say
with sudden impatience, “In the name of that sharp female newly-born, and
called La Guillotine, why did you come to France?”
<br />
“You heard me say why, a minute ago. Do you not believe it is the truth?”
<br />
“A bad truth for you,” said Defarge, speaking with knitted brows, and
looking straight before him.
<br />
“Indeed I am lost here. All here is so unprecedented, so changed, so
sudden and unfair, that I am absolutely lost. Will you render me a little
help?”
<br />
“None.” Defarge spoke, always looking straight before him.
<br />
“Will you answer me a single question?”
<br />
“Perhaps. According to its nature. You can say what it is.”
<br />
“In this prison that I am going to so unjustly, shall I have some free
communication with the world outside?”
<br />
“You will see.”
<br />
“I am not to be buried there, prejudged, and without any means of
presenting my case?”
<br />
“You will see. But, what then? Other people have been similarly buried in
worse prisons, before now.”
<br />
“But never by me, Citizen Defarge.”
<br />
Defarge glanced darkly at him for answer, and walked on in a steady and
set silence. The deeper he sank into this silence, the fainter hope there
was—or so Darnay thought—of his softening in any slight
degree. He, therefore, made haste to say:
<br />
“It is of the utmost importance to me (you know, Citizen, even better than
I, of how much importance), that I should be able to communicate to Mr.
Lorry of Tellson’s Bank, an English gentleman who is now in Paris, the
simple fact, without comment, that I have been thrown into the prison of
La Force. Will you cause that to be done for me?”
<br />
“I will do,” Defarge doggedly rejoined, “nothing for you. My duty is to my
country and the People. I am the sworn servant of both, against you. I
will do nothing for you.”
<br />
Charles Darnay felt it hopeless to entreat him further, and his pride was
touched besides. As they walked on in silence, he could not but see how
used the people were to the spectacle of prisoners passing along the
streets. The very children scarcely noticed him. A few passers turned
their heads, and a few shook their fingers at him as an aristocrat;
otherwise, that a man in good clothes should be going to prison, was no
more remarkable than that a labourer in working clothes should be going to
work. In one narrow, dark, and dirty street through which they passed, an
excited orator, mounted on a stool, was addressing an excited audience on
the crimes against the people, of the king and the royal family. The few
words that he caught from this man’s lips, first made it known to Charles
Darnay that the king was in prison, and that the foreign ambassadors had
one and all left Paris. On the road (except at Beauvais) he had heard
absolutely nothing. The escort and the universal watchfulness had
completely isolated him.
<br />
That he had fallen among far greater dangers than those which had
developed themselves when he left England, he of course knew now. That
perils had thickened about him fast, and might thicken faster and faster
yet, he of course knew now. He could not but admit to himself that he
might not have made this journey, if he could have foreseen the events of
a few days. And yet his misgivings were not so dark as, imagined by the
light of this later time, they would appear. Troubled as the future was,
it was the unknown future, and in its obscurity there was ignorant hope.
The horrible massacre, days and nights long, which, within a few rounds of
the clock, was to set a great mark of blood upon the blessed garnering
time of harvest, was as far out of his knowledge as if it had been a
hundred thousand years away. The “sharp female newly-born, and called La
Guillotine,” was hardly known to him, or to the generality of people, by
name. The frightful deeds that were to be soon done, were probably
unimagined at that time in the brains of the doers. How could they have a
place in the shadowy conceptions of a gentle mind?
<br />
Of unjust treatment in detention and hardship, and in cruel separation
from his wife and child, he foreshadowed the likelihood, or the certainty;
but, beyond this, he dreaded nothing distinctly. With this on his mind,
which was enough to carry into a dreary prison courtyard, he arrived at
the prison of La Force.
<br />
A man with a bloated face opened the strong wicket, to whom Defarge
presented “The Emigrant Evrémonde.”
<br />
“What the Devil! How many more of them!” exclaimed the man with the
bloated face.
<br />
Defarge took his receipt without noticing the exclamation, and withdrew,
with his two fellow-patriots.
<br />
“What the Devil, I say again!” exclaimed the gaoler, left with his wife.
“How many more!”
<br />
The gaoler’s wife, being provided with no answer to the question, merely
replied, “One must have patience, my dear!” Three turnkeys who entered
responsive to a bell she rang, echoed the sentiment, and one added, “For
the love of Liberty;” which sounded in that place like an inappropriate
conclusion.
<br />
The prison of La Force was a gloomy prison, dark and filthy, and with a
horrible smell of foul sleep in it. Extraordinary how soon the noisome
flavour of imprisoned sleep, becomes manifest in all such places that are
ill cared for!
<br />
“In secret, too,” grumbled the gaoler, looking at the written paper. “As
if I was not already full to bursting!”
<br />
He stuck the paper on a file, in an ill-humour, and Charles Darnay awaited
his further pleasure for half an hour: sometimes, pacing to and fro in the
strong arched room: sometimes, resting on a stone seat: in either case
detained to be imprinted on the memory of the chief and his subordinates.
<br />
“Come!” said the chief, at length taking up his keys, “come with me,
emigrant.”
<br />
Through the dismal prison twilight, his new charge accompanied him by
corridor and staircase, many doors clanging and locking behind them, until
they came into a large, low, vaulted chamber, crowded with prisoners of
both sexes. The women were seated at a long table, reading and writing,
knitting, sewing, and embroidering; the men were for the most part
standing behind their chairs, or lingering up and down the room.
<br />
In the instinctive association of prisoners with shameful crime and
disgrace, the new-comer recoiled from this company. But the crowning
unreality of his long unreal ride, was, their all at once rising to
receive him, with every refinement of manner known to the time, and with
all the engaging graces and courtesies of life.
<br />
So strangely clouded were these refinements by the prison manners and
gloom, so spectral did they become in the inappropriate squalor and misery
through which they were seen, that Charles Darnay seemed to stand in a
company of the dead. Ghosts all! The ghost of beauty, the ghost of
stateliness, the ghost of elegance, the ghost of pride, the ghost of
frivolity, the ghost of wit, the ghost of youth, the ghost of age, all
waiting their dismissal from the desolate shore, all turning on him eyes
that were changed by the death they had died in coming there.
<br />
It struck him motionless. The gaoler standing at his side, and the other
gaolers moving about, who would have been well enough as to appearance in
the ordinary exercise of their functions, looked so extravagantly coarse
contrasted with sorrowing mothers and blooming daughters who were there—with
the apparitions of the coquette, the young beauty, and the mature woman
delicately bred—that the inversion of all experience and likelihood
which the scene of shadows presented, was heightened to its utmost.
Surely, ghosts all. Surely, the long unreal ride some progress of disease
that had brought him to these gloomy shades!
<br />
“In the name of the assembled companions in misfortune,” said a gentleman
of courtly appearance and address, coming forward, “I have the honour of
giving you welcome to La Force, and of condoling with you on the calamity
that has brought you among us. May it soon terminate happily! It would be
an impertinence elsewhere, but it is not so here, to ask your name and
condition?”
<br />
Charles Darnay roused himself, and gave the required information, in words
as suitable as he could find.
<br />
“But I hope,” said the gentleman, following the chief gaoler with his
eyes, who moved across the room, “that you are not in secret?”
<br />
“I do not understand the meaning of the term, but I have heard them say
so.”
<br />
“Ah, what a pity! We so much regret it! But take courage; several members
of our society have been in secret, at first, and it has lasted but a
short time.” Then he added, raising his voice, “I grieve to inform the
society—in secret.”
<br />
There was a murmur of commiseration as Charles Darnay crossed the room to
a grated door where the gaoler awaited him, and many voices—among
which, the soft and compassionate voices of women were conspicuous—gave
him good wishes and encouragement. He turned at the grated door, to render
the thanks of his heart; it closed under the gaoler’s hand; and the
apparitions vanished from his sight forever.
<br />
The wicket opened on a stone staircase, leading upward. When they had
ascended forty steps (the prisoner of half an hour already counted them),
the gaoler opened a low black door, and they passed into a solitary cell.
It struck cold and damp, but was not dark.
<br />
“Yours,” said the gaoler.
<br />
“Why am I confined alone?”
<br />
“How do I know!”
<br />
“I can buy pen, ink, and paper?”
<br />
“Such are not my orders. You will be visited, and can ask then. At
present, you may buy your food, and nothing more.”
<br />
There were in the cell, a chair, a table, and a straw mattress. As the
gaoler made a general inspection of these objects, and of the four walls,
before going out, a wandering fancy wandered through the mind of the
prisoner leaning against the wall opposite to him, that this gaoler was so
unwholesomely bloated, both in face and person, as to look like a man who
had been drowned and filled with water. When the gaoler was gone, he
thought in the same wandering way, “Now am I left, as if I were dead.”
Stopping then, to look down at the mattress, he turned from it with a sick
feeling, and thought, “And here in these crawling creatures is the first
condition of the body after death.”
<br />
“Five paces by four and a half, five paces by four and a half, five paces
by four and a half.” The prisoner walked to and fro in his cell, counting
its measurement, and the roar of the city arose like muffled drums with a
wild swell of voices added to them. “He made shoes, he made shoes, he made
shoes.” The prisoner counted the measurement again, and paced faster, to
draw his mind with him from that latter repetition. “The ghosts that
vanished when the wicket closed. There was one among them, the appearance
of a lady dressed in black, who was leaning in the embrasure of a window,
and she had a light shining upon her golden hair, and she looked like * *
* * Let us ride on again, for God’s sake, through the illuminated villages
with the people all awake! * * * * He made shoes, he made shoes, he made
shoes. * * * * Five paces by four and a half.” With such scraps tossing
and rolling upward from the depths of his mind, the prisoner walked faster
and faster, obstinately counting and counting; and the roar of the city
changed to this extent—that it still rolled in like muffled drums,
but with the wail of voices that he knew, in the swell that rose above
them.
CHAPTER II.<br />The Grindstone
Tellson’s Bank, established in the Saint Germain Quarter of Paris, was in
a wing of a large house, approached by a courtyard and shut off from the
street by a high wall and a strong gate. The house belonged to a great
nobleman who had lived in it until he made a flight from the troubles, in
his own cook’s dress, and got across the borders. A mere beast of the
chase flying from hunters, he was still in his metempsychosis no other
than the same Monseigneur, the preparation of whose chocolate for whose
lips had once occupied three strong men besides the cook in question.
Monseigneur gone, and the three strong men absolving themselves from the
sin of having drawn his high wages, by being more than ready and willing
to cut his throat on the altar of the dawning Republic one and indivisible
of Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death, Monseigneur’s house had been
first sequestrated, and then confiscated. For, all things moved so fast,
and decree followed decree with that fierce precipitation, that now upon
the third night of the autumn month of September, patriot emissaries of
the law were in possession of Monseigneur’s house, and had marked it with
the tri-colour, and were drinking brandy in its state apartments.
A place of business in London like Tellson’s place of business in Paris,
would soon have driven the House out of its mind and into the Gazette.
For, what would staid British responsibility and respectability have said
to orange-trees in boxes in a Bank courtyard, and even to a Cupid over the
counter? Yet such things were. Tellson’s had whitewashed the Cupid, but he
was still to be seen on the ceiling, in the coolest linen, aiming (as he
very often does) at money from morning to night. Bankruptcy must
inevitably have come of this young Pagan, in Lombard-street, London, and
also of a curtained alcove in the rear of the immortal boy, and also of a
looking-glass let into the wall, and also of clerks not at all old, who
danced in public on the slightest provocation. Yet, a French Tellson’s
could get on with these things exceedingly well, and, as long as the times
held together, no man had taken fright at them, and drawn out his money.
What money would be drawn out of Tellson’s henceforth, and what would lie
there, lost and forgotten; what plate and jewels would tarnish in
Tellson’s hiding-places, while the depositors rusted in prisons, and when
they should have violently perished; how many accounts with Tellson’s
never to be balanced in this world, must be carried over into the next; no
man could have said, that night, any more than Mr. Jarvis Lorry could,
though he thought heavily of these questions. He sat by a newly-lighted
wood fire (the blighted and unfruitful year was prematurely cold), and on
his honest and courageous face there was a deeper shade than the pendent
lamp could throw, or any object in the room distortedly reflect—a
shade of horror.
He occupied rooms in the Bank, in his fidelity to the House of which he
had grown to be a part, like strong root-ivy. It chanced that they derived
a kind of security from the patriotic occupation of the main building, but
the true-hearted old gentleman never calculated about that. All such
circumstances were indifferent to him, so that he did his duty. On the
opposite side of the courtyard, under a colonnade, was extensive standing—for
carriages—where, indeed, some carriages of Monseigneur yet stood.
Against two of the pillars were fastened two great flaring flambeaux, and
in the light of these, standing out in the open air, was a large
grindstone: a roughly mounted thing which appeared to have hurriedly been
brought there from some neighbouring smithy, or other workshop. Rising and
looking out of window at these harmless objects, Mr. Lorry shivered, and
retired to his seat by the fire. He had opened, not only the glass window,
but the lattice blind outside it, and he had closed both again, and he
shivered through his frame.
From the streets beyond the high wall and the strong gate, there came the
usual night hum of the city, with now and then an indescribable ring in
it, weird and unearthly, as if some unwonted sounds of a terrible nature
were going up to Heaven.
“Thank God,” said Mr. Lorry, clasping his hands, “that no one near and
dear to me is in this dreadful town to-night. May He have mercy on all who
are in danger!”
Soon afterwards, the bell at the great gate sounded, and he thought, “They
have come back!” and sat listening. But, there was no loud irruption into
the courtyard, as he had expected, and he heard the gate clash again, and
all was quiet.
The nervousness and dread that were upon him inspired that vague
uneasiness respecting the Bank, which a great change would naturally
awaken, with such feelings roused. It was well guarded, and he got up to
go among the trusty people who were watching it, when his door suddenly
opened, and two figures rushed in, at sight of which he fell back in
amazement.
Lucie and her father! Lucie with her arms stretched out to him, and with
that old look of earnestness so concentrated and intensified, that it
seemed as though it had been stamped upon her face expressly to give force
and power to it in this one passage of her life.
“What is this?” cried Mr. Lorry, breathless and confused. “What is the
matter? Lucie! Manette! What has happened? What has brought you here? What
is it?”
With the look fixed upon him, in her paleness and wildness, she panted out
in his arms, imploringly, “O my dear friend! My husband!”
“Your husband, Lucie?”
“Charles.”
“What of Charles?”
“Here.
“Here, in Paris?”
“Has been here some days—three or four—I don’t know how many—I
can’t collect my thoughts. An errand of generosity brought him here
unknown to us; he was stopped at the barrier, and sent to prison.”
The old man uttered an irrepressible cry. Almost at the same moment, the
bell of the great gate rang again, and a loud noise of feet and voices came
pouring into the courtyard.
“What is that noise?” said the Doctor, turning towards the window.
“Don’t look!” cried Mr. Lorry. “Don’t look out! Manette, for your life,
don’t touch the blind!”
The Doctor turned, with his hand upon the fastening of the window, and
said, with a cool, bold smile:
“My dear friend, I have a charmed life in this city. I have been a
Bastille prisoner. There is no patriot in Paris—in Paris? In France—who,
knowing me to have been a prisoner in the Bastille, would touch me, except
to overwhelm me with embraces, or carry me in triumph. My old pain has
given me a power that has brought us through the barrier, and gained us
news of Charles there, and brought us here. I knew it would be so; I knew
I could help Charles out of all danger; I told Lucie so.—What is
that noise?” His hand was again upon the window.
“Don’t look!” cried Mr. Lorry, absolutely desperate. “No, Lucie, my dear,
nor you!” He got his arm round her, and held her. “Don’t be so terrified,
my love. I solemnly swear to you that I know of no harm having happened to
Charles; that I had no suspicion even of his being in this fatal place.
What prison is he in?”
“La Force!”
“La Force! Lucie, my child, if ever you were brave and serviceable in your
life—and you were always both—you will compose yourself now,
to do exactly as I bid you; for more depends upon it than you can think,
or I can say. There is no help for you in any action on your part
to-night; you cannot possibly stir out. I say this, because what I must
bid you to do for Charles’s sake, is the hardest thing to do of all. You
must instantly be obedient, still, and quiet. You must let me put you in a
room at the back here. You must leave your father and me alone for two
minutes, and as there are Life and Death in the world you must not delay.”
“I will be submissive to you. I see in your face that you know I can do
nothing else than this. I know you are true.”
The old man kissed her, and hurried her into his room, and turned the key;
then, came hurrying back to the Doctor, and opened the window and partly
opened the blind, and put his hand upon the Doctor’s arm, and looked out
with him into the courtyard.
Looked out upon a throng of men and women: not enough in number, or near
enough, to fill the courtyard: not more than forty or fifty in all. The
people in possession of the house had let them in at the gate, and they
had rushed in to work at the grindstone; it had evidently been set up
there for their purpose, as in a convenient and retired spot.
But, such awful workers, and such awful work!
The grindstone had a double handle, and, turning at it madly were two men,
whose faces, as their long hair flapped back when the whirlings of the
grindstone brought their faces up, were more horrible and cruel than the
visages of the wildest savages in their most barbarous disguise. False
eyebrows and false moustaches were stuck upon them, and their hideous
countenances were all bloody and sweaty, and all awry with howling, and
all staring and glaring with beastly excitement and want of sleep. As
these ruffians turned and turned, their matted locks now flung forward
over their eyes, now flung backward over their necks, some women held wine
to their mouths that they might drink; and what with dropping blood, and
what with dropping wine, and what with the stream of sparks struck out of
the stone, all their wicked atmosphere seemed gore and fire. The eye could
not detect one creature in the group free from the smear of blood.
Shouldering one another to get next at the sharpening-stone, were men
stripped to the waist, with the stain all over their limbs and bodies; men
in all sorts of rags, with the stain upon those rags; men devilishly set
off with spoils of women’s lace and silk and ribbon, with the stain dyeing
those trifles through and through. Hatchets, knives, bayonets, swords, all
brought to be sharpened, were all red with it. Some of the hacked swords
were tied to the wrists of those who carried them, with strips of linen
and fragments of dress: ligatures various in kind, but all deep of the one
colour. And as the frantic wielders of these weapons snatched them from
the stream of sparks and tore away into the streets, the same red hue was
red in their frenzied eyes;—eyes which any unbrutalised beholder
would have given twenty years of life, to petrify with a well-directed
gun.
All this was seen in a moment, as the vision of a drowning man, or of any
human creature at any very great pass, could see a world if it were there.
They drew back from the window, and the Doctor looked for explanation in
his friend’s ashy face.
“They are,” Mr. Lorry whispered the words, glancing fearfully round at the
locked room, “murdering the prisoners. If you are sure of what you say; if
you really have the power you think you have—as I believe you have—make
yourself known to these devils, and get taken to La Force. It may be too
late, I don’t know, but let it not be a minute later!”
Doctor Manette pressed his hand, hastened bareheaded out of the room, and
was in the courtyard when Mr. Lorry regained the blind.
His streaming white hair, his remarkable face, and the impetuous
confidence of his manner, as he put the weapons aside like water, carried
him in an instant to the heart of the concourse at the stone. For a few
moments there was a pause, and a hurry, and a murmur, and the
unintelligible sound of his voice; and then Mr. Lorry saw him, surrounded
by all, and in the midst of a line of twenty men long, all linked shoulder
to shoulder, and hand to shoulder, hurried out with cries of—“Live
the Bastille prisoner! Help for the Bastille prisoner’s kindred in La
Force! Room for the Bastille prisoner in front there! Save the prisoner
Evrémonde at La Force!” and a thousand answering shouts.
He closed the lattice again with a fluttering heart, closed the window and
the curtain, hastened to Lucie, and told her that her father was assisted
by the people, and gone in search of her husband. He found her child and
Miss Pross with her; but, it never occurred to him to be surprised by
their appearance until a long time afterwards, when he sat watching them
in such quiet as the night knew.
Lucie had, by that time, fallen into a stupor on the floor at his feet,
clinging to his hand. Miss Pross had laid the child down on his own bed,
and her head had gradually fallen on the pillow beside her pretty charge.
O the long, long night, with the moans of the poor wife! And O the long,
long night, with no return of her father and no tidings!
Twice more in the darkness the bell at the great gate sounded, and the
irruption was repeated, and the grindstone whirled and spluttered. “What
is it?” cried Lucie, affrighted. “Hush! The soldiers’ swords are sharpened
there,” said Mr. Lorry. “The place is national property now, and used as a
kind of armoury, my love.”
Twice more in all; but, the last spell of work was feeble and fitful. Soon
afterwards the day began to dawn, and he softly detached himself from the
clasping hand, and cautiously looked out again. A man, so besmeared that
he might have been a sorely wounded soldier creeping back to consciousness
on a field of slain, was rising from the pavement by the side of the
grindstone, and looking about him with a vacant air. Shortly, this
worn-out murderer descried in the imperfect light one of the carriages of
Monseigneur, and, staggering to that gorgeous vehicle, climbed in at the
door, and shut himself up to take his rest on its dainty cushions.
The great grindstone, Earth, had turned when Mr. Lorry looked out again,
and the sun was red on the courtyard. But, the lesser grindstone stood
alone there in the calm morning air, with a red upon it that the sun had
never given, and would never take away.
CHAPTER III.<br />The Shadow
One of the first considerations which arose in the business mind of Mr.
Lorry when business hours came round, was this:—that he had no right
to imperil Tellson’s by sheltering the wife of an emigrant prisoner under
the Bank roof. His own possessions, safety, life, he would have hazarded
for Lucie and her child, without a moment’s demur; but the great trust he
held was not his own, and as to that business charge he was a strict man
of business.
At first, his mind reverted to Defarge, and he thought of finding out the
wine-shop again and taking counsel with its master in reference to the
safest dwelling-place in the distracted state of the city. But, the same
consideration that suggested him, repudiated him; he lived in the most
violent Quarter, and doubtless was influential there, and deep in its
dangerous workings.
Noon coming, and the Doctor not returning, and every minute’s delay
tending to compromise Tellson’s, Mr. Lorry advised with Lucie. She said
that her father had spoken of hiring a lodging for a short term, in that
Quarter, near the Banking-house. As there was no business objection to
this, and as he foresaw that even if it were all well with Charles, and he
were to be released, he could not hope to leave the city, Mr. Lorry went
out in quest of such a lodging, and found a suitable one, high up in a
removed by-street where the closed blinds in all the other windows of a
high melancholy square of buildings marked deserted homes.
To this lodging he at once removed Lucie and her child, and Miss Pross:
giving them what comfort he could, and much more than he had himself. He
left Jerry with them, as a figure to fill a doorway that would bear
considerable knocking on the head, and returned to his own occupations. A
disturbed and doleful mind he brought to bear upon them, and slowly and
heavily the day lagged on with him.
It wore itself out, and wore him out with it, until the Bank closed. He
was again alone in his room of the previous night, considering what to do
next, when he heard a foot upon the stair. In a few moments, a man stood
in his presence, who, with a keenly observant look at him, addressed him
by his name.
“Your servant,” said Mr. Lorry. “Do you know me?”
He was a strongly made man with dark curling hair, from forty-five to
fifty years of age. For answer he repeated, without any change of
emphasis, the words:
“Do you know me?”
“I have seen you somewhere.”
“Perhaps at my wine-shop?”
Much interested and agitated, Mr. Lorry said: “You come from Doctor
Manette?”
“Yes. I come from Doctor Manette.”
“And what says he? What does he send me?”
Defarge gave into his anxious hand, an open scrap of paper. It bore the
words in the Doctor’s writing:
“Charles is safe, but I cannot safely leave this place yet.
I have obtained the favour that the bearer has a short note
from Charles to his wife. Let the bearer see his wife.”
It was dated from La Force, within an hour.
“Will you accompany me,” said Mr. Lorry, joyfully relieved after reading
this note aloud, “to where his wife resides?”
“Yes,” returned Defarge.
Scarcely noticing as yet, in what a curiously reserved and mechanical way
Defarge spoke, Mr. Lorry put on his hat and they went down into the
courtyard. There, they found two women; one, knitting.
“Madame Defarge, surely!” said Mr. Lorry, who had left her in exactly the
same attitude some seventeen years ago.
“It is she,” observed her husband.
“Does Madame go with us?” inquired Mr. Lorry, seeing that she moved as
they moved.
“Yes. That she may be able to recognise the faces and know the persons. It
is for their safety.”
Beginning to be struck by Defarge’s manner, Mr. Lorry looked dubiously at
him, and led the way. Both the women followed; the second woman being The
Vengeance.
They passed through the intervening streets as quickly as they might,
ascended the staircase of the new domicile, were admitted by Jerry, and
found Lucie weeping, alone. She was thrown into a transport by the tidings
Mr. Lorry gave her of her husband, and clasped the hand that delivered his
note—little thinking what it had been doing near him in the night,
and might, but for a chance, have done to him.
“,—Take courage. I am well, and your father has
influence around me. You cannot answer this.
Kiss our child for me.”
That was all the writing. It was so much, however, to her who received it,
that she turned from Defarge to his wife, and kissed one of the hands that
knitted. It was a passionate, loving, thankful, womanly action, but the
hand made no response—dropped cold and heavy, and took to its
knitting again.
There was something in its touch that gave Lucie a check. She stopped in
the act of putting the note in her bosom, and, with her hands yet at her
neck, looked terrified at Madame Defarge. Madame Defarge met the lifted
eyebrows and forehead with a cold, impassive stare.
“My dear,” said Mr. Lorry, striking in to explain; “there are frequent
risings in the streets; and, although it is not likely they will ever
trouble you, Madame Defarge wishes to see those whom she has the power to
protect at such times, to the end that she may know them—that she
may identify them. I believe,” said Mr. Lorry, rather halting in his
reassuring words, as the stony manner of all the three impressed itself
upon him more and more, “I state the case, Citizen Defarge?”
Defarge looked gloomily at his wife, and gave no other answer than a gruff
sound of acquiescence.
“You had better, Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, doing all he could to propitiate,
by tone and manner, “have the dear child here, and our good Pross. Our
good Pross, Defarge, is an English lady, and knows no French.”
The lady in question, whose rooted conviction that she was more than a
match for any foreigner, was not to be shaken by distress and, danger,
appeared with folded arms, and observed in English to The Vengeance, whom
her eyes first encountered, “Well, I am sure, Boldface! I hope
are pretty well!” She also bestowed a British cough on Madame Defarge;
but, neither of the two took much heed of her.
“Is that his child?” said Madame Defarge, stopping in her work for the
first time, and pointing her knitting-needle at little Lucie as if it were
the finger of Fate.
“Yes, madame,” answered Mr. Lorry; “this is our poor prisoner’s darling
daughter, and only child.”
The shadow attendant on Madame Defarge and her party seemed to fall so
threatening and dark on the child, that her mother instinctively kneeled
on the ground beside her, and held her to her breast. The shadow attendant
on Madame Defarge and her party seemed then to fall, threatening and dark,
on both the mother and the child.
“It is enough, my husband,” said Madame Defarge. “I have seen them. We may
go.”
But, the suppressed manner had enough of menace in it—not visible
and presented, but indistinct and withheld—to alarm Lucie into
saying, as she laid her appealing hand on Madame Defarge’s dress:
“You will be good to my poor husband. You will do him no harm. You will
help me to see him if you can?”
“Your husband is not my business here,” returned Madame Defarge, looking
down at her with perfect composure. “It is the daughter of your father who
is my business here.”
“For my sake, then, be merciful to my husband. For my child’s sake! She
will put her hands together and pray you to be merciful. We are more
afraid of you than of these others.”
Madame Defarge received it as a compliment, and looked at her husband.
Defarge, who had been uneasily biting his thumb-nail and looking at her,
collected his face into a sterner expression.
“What is it that your husband says in that little letter?” asked Madame
Defarge, with a lowering smile. “Influence; he says something touching
influence?”
“That my father,” said Lucie, hurriedly taking the paper from her breast,
but with her alarmed eyes on her questioner and not on it, “has much
influence around him.”
“Surely it will release him!” said Madame Defarge. “Let it do so.”
“As a wife and mother,” cried Lucie, most earnestly, “I implore you to
have pity on me and not to exercise any power that you possess, against my
innocent husband, but to use it in his behalf. O sister-woman, think of
me. As a wife and mother!”
Madame Defarge looked, coldly as ever, at the suppliant, and said, turning
to her friend The Vengeance:
“The wives and mothers we have been used to see, since we were as little
as this child, and much less, have not been greatly considered? We have
known husbands and fathers laid in prison and kept from them,
often enough? All our lives, we have seen our sister-women suffer, in
themselves and in their children, poverty, nakedness, hunger, thirst,
sickness, misery, oppression and neglect of all kinds?”
“We have seen nothing else,” returned The Vengeance.
“We have borne this a long time,” said Madame Defarge, turning her eyes
again upon Lucie. “Judge you! Is it likely that the trouble of one wife
and mother would be much to us now?”
She resumed her knitting and went out. The Vengeance followed. Defarge
went last, and closed the door.
“Courage, my dear Lucie,” said Mr. Lorry, as he raised her. “Courage,
courage! So far all goes well with us—much, much better than it has
of late gone with many poor souls. Cheer up, and have a thankful heart.”
“I am not thankless, I hope, but that dreadful woman seems to throw a
shadow on me and on all my hopes.”
“Tut, tut!” said Mr. Lorry; “what is this despondency in the brave little
breast? A shadow indeed! No substance in it, Lucie.”
But the shadow of the manner of these Defarges was dark upon himself, for
all that, and in his secret mind it troubled him greatly.
CHAPTER IV.<br />Calm in Storm
Doctor Manette did not return until the morning of the fourth day of his
absence. So much of what had happened in that dreadful time as could be
kept from the knowledge of Lucie was so well concealed from her, that not
until long afterwards, when France and she were far apart, did she know
that eleven hundred defenceless prisoners of both sexes and all ages had
been killed by the populace; that four days and nights had been darkened
by this deed of horror; and that the air around her had been tainted by
the slain. She only knew that there had been an attack upon the prisons,
that all political prisoners had been in danger, and that some had been
dragged out by the crowd and murdered.
To Mr. Lorry, the Doctor communicated under an injunction of secrecy on
which he had no need to dwell, that the crowd had taken him through a
scene of carnage to the prison of La Force. That, in the prison he had
found a self-appointed Tribunal sitting, before which the prisoners were
brought singly, and by which they were rapidly ordered to be put forth to
be massacred, or to be released, or (in a few cases) to be sent back to
their cells. That, presented by his conductors to this Tribunal, he had
announced himself by name and profession as having been for eighteen years
a secret and unaccused prisoner in the Bastille; that, one of the body so
sitting in judgment had risen and identified him, and that this man was
Defarge.
That, hereupon he had ascertained, through the registers on the table,
that his son-in-law was among the living prisoners, and had pleaded hard
to the Tribunal—of whom some members were asleep and some awake,
some dirty with murder and some clean, some sober and some not—for
his life and liberty. That, in the first frantic greetings lavished on
himself as a notable sufferer under the overthrown system, it had been
accorded to him to have Charles Darnay brought before the lawless Court,
and examined. That, he seemed on the point of being at once released, when
the tide in his favour met with some unexplained check (not intelligible
to the Doctor), which led to a few words of secret conference. That, the
man sitting as President had then informed Doctor Manette that the
prisoner must remain in custody, but should, for his sake, be held
inviolate in safe custody. That, immediately, on a signal, the prisoner
was removed to the interior of the prison again; but, that he, the Doctor,
had then so strongly pleaded for permission to remain and assure himself
that his son-in-law was, through no malice or mischance, delivered to the
concourse whose murderous yells outside the gate had often drowned the
proceedings, that he had obtained the permission, and had remained in that
Hall of Blood until the danger was over.
The sights he had seen there, with brief snatches of food and sleep by
intervals, shall remain untold. The mad joy over the prisoners who were
saved, had astounded him scarcely less than the mad ferocity against those
who were cut to pieces. One prisoner there was, he said, who had been
discharged into the street free, but at whom a mistaken savage had thrust
a pike as he passed out. Being besought to go to him and dress the wound,
the Doctor had passed out at the same gate, and had found him in the arms
of a company of Samaritans, who were seated on the bodies of their
victims. With an inconsistency as monstrous as anything in this awful
nightmare, they had helped the healer, and tended the wounded man with the
gentlest solicitude—had made a litter for him and escorted him
carefully from the spot—had then caught up their weapons and plunged
anew into a butchery so dreadful, that the Doctor had covered his eyes
with his hands, and swooned away in the midst of it.
As Mr. Lorry received these confidences, and as he watched the face of his
friend now sixty-two years of age, a misgiving arose within him that such
dread experiences would revive the old danger.
But, he had never seen his friend in his present aspect: he had never at
all known him in his present character. For the first time the Doctor
felt, now, that his suffering was strength and power. For the first time
he felt that in that sharp fire, he had slowly forged the iron which could
break the prison door of his daughter’s husband, and deliver him. “It all
tended to a good end, my friend; it was not mere waste and ruin. As my
beloved child was helpful in restoring me to myself, I will be helpful now
in restoring the dearest part of herself to her; by the aid of Heaven I
will do it!” Thus, Doctor Manette. And when Jarvis Lorry saw the kindled
eyes, the resolute face, the calm strong look and bearing of the man whose
life always seemed to him to have been stopped, like a clock, for so many
years, and then set going again with an energy which had lain dormant
during the cessation of its usefulness, he believed.
Greater things than the Doctor had at that time to contend with, would
have yielded before his persevering purpose. While he kept himself in his
place, as a physician, whose business was with all degrees of mankind,
bond and free, rich and poor, bad and good, he used his personal influence
so wisely, that he was soon the inspecting physician of three prisons, and
among them of La Force. He could now assure Lucie that her husband was no
longer confined alone, but was mixed with the general body of prisoners;
he saw her husband weekly, and brought sweet messages to her, straight
from his lips; sometimes her husband himself sent a letter to her (though
never by the Doctor’s hand), but she was not permitted to write to him:
for, among the many wild suspicions of plots in the prisons, the wildest
of all pointed at emigrants who were known to have made friends or
permanent connections abroad.
This new life of the Doctor’s was an anxious life, no doubt; still, the
sagacious Mr. Lorry saw that there was a new sustaining pride in it.
Nothing unbecoming tinged the pride; it was a natural and worthy one; but
he observed it as a curiosity. The Doctor knew, that up to that time, his
imprisonment had been associated in the minds of his daughter and his
friend, with his personal affliction, deprivation, and weakness. Now that
this was changed, and he knew himself to be invested through that old
trial with forces to which they both looked for Charles’s ultimate safety
and deliverance, he became so far exalted by the change, that he took the
lead and direction, and required them as the weak, to trust to him as the
strong. The preceding relative positions of himself and Lucie were
reversed, yet only as the liveliest gratitude and affection could reverse
them, for he could have had no pride but in rendering some service to her
who had rendered so much to him. “All curious to see,” thought Mr. Lorry,
in his amiably shrewd way, “but all natural and right; so, take the lead,
my dear friend, and keep it; it couldn’t be in better hands.”
But, though the Doctor tried hard, and never ceased trying, to get Charles
Darnay set at liberty, or at least to get him brought to trial, the public
current of the time set too strong and fast for him. The new era began;
the king was tried, doomed, and beheaded; the Republic of Liberty,
Equality, Fraternity, or Death, declared for victory or death against the
world in arms; the black flag waved night and day from the great towers of
Notre Dame; three hundred thousand men, summoned to rise against the
tyrants of the earth, rose from all the varying soils of France, as if the
dragon’s teeth had been sown broadcast, and had yielded fruit equally on
hill and plain, on rock, in gravel, and alluvial mud, under the bright sky
of the South and under the clouds of the North, in fell and forest, in the
vineyards and the olive-grounds and among the cropped grass and the
stubble of the corn, along the fruitful banks of the broad rivers, and in
the sand of the sea-shore. What private solicitude could rear itself
against the deluge of the Year One of Liberty—the deluge rising from
below, not falling from above, and with the windows of Heaven shut, not
opened!
There was no pause, no pity, no peace, no interval of relenting rest, no
measurement of time. Though days and nights circled as regularly as when
time was young, and the evening and morning were the first day, other
count of time there was none. Hold of it was lost in the raging fever of a
nation, as it is in the fever of one patient. Now, breaking the unnatural
silence of a whole city, the executioner showed the people the head of the
king—and now, it seemed almost in the same breath, the head of his
fair wife which had had eight weary months of imprisoned widowhood and
misery, to turn it grey.
And yet, observing the strange law of contradiction which obtains in all
such cases, the time was long, while it flamed by so fast. A revolutionary
tribunal in the capital, and forty or fifty thousand revolutionary
committees all over the land; a law of the Suspected, which struck away
all security for liberty or life, and delivered over any good and innocent
person to any bad and guilty one; prisons gorged with people who had
committed no offence, and could obtain no hearing; these things became the
established order and nature of appointed things, and seemed to be ancient
usage before they were many weeks old. Above all, one hideous figure grew
as familiar as if it had been before the general gaze from the foundations
of the world—the figure of the sharp female called La Guillotine.
It was the popular theme for jests; it was the best cure for headache, it
infallibly prevented the hair from turning grey, it imparted a peculiar
delicacy to the complexion, it was the National Razor which shaved close:
who kissed La Guillotine, looked through the little window and sneezed
into the sack. It was the sign of the regeneration of the human race. It
superseded the Cross. Models of it were worn on breasts from which the
Cross was discarded, and it was bowed down to and believed in where the
Cross was denied.
It sheared off heads so many, that it, and the ground it most polluted,
were a rotten red. It was taken to pieces, like a toy-puzzle for a young
Devil, and was put together again when the occasion wanted it. It hushed
the eloquent, struck down the powerful, abolished the beautiful and good.
Twenty-two friends of high public mark, twenty-one living and one dead, it
had lopped the heads off, in one morning, in as many minutes. The name of
the strong man of Old Scripture had descended to the chief functionary who
worked it; but, so armed, he was stronger than his namesake, and blinder,
and tore away the gates of God’s own Temple every day.
Among these terrors, and the brood belonging to them, the Doctor walked
with a steady head: confident in his power, cautiously persistent in his
end, never doubting that he would save Lucie’s husband at last. Yet the
current of the time swept by, so strong and deep, and carried the time
away so fiercely, that Charles had lain in prison one year and three
months when the Doctor was thus steady and confident. So much more wicked
and distracted had the Revolution grown in that December month, that the
rivers of the South were encumbered with the bodies of the violently
drowned by night, and prisoners were shot in lines and squares under the
southern wintry sun. Still, the Doctor walked among the terrors with a
steady head. No man better known than he, in Paris at that day; no man in
a stranger situation. Silent, humane, indispensable in hospital and
prison, using his art equally among assassins and victims, he was a man
apart. In the exercise of his skill, the appearance and the story of the
Bastille Captive removed him from all other men. He was not suspected or
brought in question, any more than if he had indeed been recalled to life
some eighteen years before, or were a Spirit moving among mortals.
CHAPTER V.<br />The Wood-Sawyer
One year and three months. During all that time Lucie was never sure, from
hour to hour, but that the Guillotine would strike off her husband’s head
next day. Every day, through the stony streets, the tumbrils now jolted
heavily, filled with Condemned. Lovely girls; bright women, brown-haired,
black-haired, and grey; youths; stalwart men and old; gentle born and
peasant born; all red wine for La Guillotine, all daily brought into light
from the dark cellars of the loathsome prisons, and carried to her through
the streets to slake her devouring thirst. Liberty, equality, fraternity,
or death;—the last, much the easiest to bestow, O Guillotine!
If the suddenness of her calamity, and the whirling wheels of the time,
had stunned the Doctor’s daughter into awaiting the result in idle
despair, it would but have been with her as it was with many. But, from
the hour when she had taken the white head to her fresh young bosom in the
garret of Saint Antoine, she had been true to her duties. She was truest
to them in the season of trial, as all the quietly loyal and good will
always be.
As soon as they were established in their new residence, and her father
had entered on the routine of his avocations, she arranged the little
household as exactly as if her husband had been there. Everything had its
appointed place and its appointed time. Little Lucie she taught, as
regularly, as if they had all been united in their English home. The
slight devices with which she cheated herself into the show of a belief
that they would soon be reunited—the little preparations for his
speedy return, the setting aside of his chair and his books—these,
and the solemn prayer at night for one dear prisoner especially, among the
many unhappy souls in prison and the shadow of death—were almost the
only outspoken reliefs of her heavy mind.
She did not greatly alter in appearance. The plain dark dresses, akin to
mourning dresses, which she and her child wore, were as neat and as well
attended to as the brighter clothes of happy days. She lost her colour,
and the old and intent expression was a constant, not an occasional,
thing; otherwise, she remained very pretty and comely. Sometimes, at night
on kissing her father, she would burst into the grief she had repressed
all day, and would say that her sole reliance, under Heaven, was on him.
He always resolutely answered: “Nothing can happen to him without my
knowledge, and I know that I can save him, Lucie.”
They had not made the round of their changed life many weeks, when her
father said to her, on coming home one evening:
“My dear, there is an upper window in the prison, to which Charles can
sometimes gain access at three in the afternoon. When he can get to it—which
depends on many uncertainties and incidents—he might see you in the
street, he thinks, if you stood in a certain place that I can show you.
But you will not be able to see him, my poor child, and even if you could,
it would be unsafe for you to make a sign of recognition.”
“O show me the place, my father, and I will go there every day.”
From that time, in all weathers, she waited there two hours. As the clock
struck two, she was there, and at four she turned resignedly away. When it
was not too wet or inclement for her child to be with her, they went
together; at other times she was alone; but, she never missed a single
day.
It was the dark and dirty corner of a small winding street. The hovel of a
cutter of wood into lengths for burning, was the only house at that end;
all else was wall. On the third day of her being there, he noticed her.
“Good day, citizeness.”
“Good day, citizen.”
This mode of address was now prescribed by decree. It had been established
voluntarily some time ago, among the more thorough patriots; but, was now
law for everybody.
“Walking here again, citizeness?”
“You see me, citizen!”
The wood-sawyer, who was a little man with a redundancy of gesture (he had
once been a mender of roads), cast a glance at the prison, pointed at the
prison, and putting his ten fingers before his face to represent bars,
peeped through them jocosely.
“But it’s not my business,” said he. And went on sawing his wood.
Next day he was looking out for her, and accosted her the moment she
appeared.
“What? Walking here again, citizeness?”
“Yes, citizen.”
“Ah! A child too! Your mother, is it not, my little citizeness?”
“Do I say yes, mamma?” whispered little Lucie, drawing close to her.
“Yes, dearest.”
“Yes, citizen.”
“Ah! But it’s not my business. My work is my business. See my saw! I call
it my Little Guillotine. La, la, la; La, la, la! And off his head comes!”
The billet fell as he spoke, and he threw it into a basket.
“I call myself the Samson of the firewood guillotine. See here again! Loo,
loo, loo; Loo, loo, loo! And off head comes! Now, a child.
Tickle, tickle; Pickle, pickle! And off head comes. All the
family!”
Lucie shuddered as he threw two more billets into his basket, but it was
impossible to be there while the wood-sawyer was at work, and not be in
his sight. Thenceforth, to secure his good will, she always spoke to him
first, and often gave him drink-money, which he readily received.
He was an inquisitive fellow, and sometimes when she had quite forgotten
him in gazing at the prison roof and grates, and in lifting her heart up
to her husband, she would come to herself to find him looking at her, with
his knee on his bench and his saw stopped in its work. “But it’s not my
business!” he would generally say at those times, and would briskly fall
to his sawing again.
In all weathers, in the snow and frost of winter, in the bitter winds of
spring, in the hot sunshine of summer, in the rains of autumn, and again
in the snow and frost of winter, Lucie passed two hours of every day at
this place; and every day on leaving it, she kissed the prison wall. Her
husband saw her (so she learned from her father) it might be once in five
or six times: it might be twice or thrice running: it might be, not for a
week or a fortnight together. It was enough that he could and did see her
when the chances served, and on that possibility she would have waited out
the day, seven days a week.
These occupations brought her round to the December month, wherein her
father walked among the terrors with a steady head. On a lightly-snowing
afternoon she arrived at the usual corner. It was a day of some wild
rejoicing, and a festival. She had seen the houses, as she came along,
decorated with little pikes, and with little red caps stuck upon them;
also, with tricoloured ribbons; also, with the standard inscription
(tricoloured letters were the favourite), Republic One and Indivisible.
Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or Death!
The miserable shop of the wood-sawyer was so small, that its whole surface
furnished very indifferent space for this legend. He had got somebody to
scrawl it up for him, however, who had squeezed Death in with most
inappropriate difficulty. On his house-top, he displayed pike and cap, as
a good citizen must, and in a window he had stationed his saw inscribed as
his “Little Sainte Guillotine”—for the great sharp female was by
that time popularly canonised. His shop was shut and he was not there,
which was a relief to Lucie, and left her quite alone.
But, he was not far off, for presently she heard a troubled movement and a
shouting coming along, which filled her with fear. A moment afterwards,
and a throng of people came pouring round the corner by the prison wall,
in the midst of whom was the wood-sawyer hand in hand with The Vengeance.
There could not be fewer than five hundred people, and they were dancing
like five thousand demons. There was no other music than their own
singing. They danced to the popular Revolution song, keeping a ferocious
time that was like a gnashing of teeth in unison. Men and women danced
together, women danced together, men danced together, as hazard had
brought them together. At first, they were a mere storm of coarse red caps
and coarse woollen rags; but, as they filled the place, and stopped to
dance about Lucie, some ghastly apparition of a dance-figure gone raving
mad arose among them. They advanced, retreated, struck at one another’s
hands, clutched at one another’s heads, spun round alone, caught one
another and spun round in pairs, until many of them dropped. While those
were down, the rest linked hand in hand, and all spun round together: then
the ring broke, and in separate rings of two and four they turned and
turned until they all stopped at once, began again, struck, clutched, and
tore, and then reversed the spin, and all spun round another way. Suddenly
they stopped again, paused, struck out the time afresh, formed into lines
the width of the public way, and, with their heads low down and their
hands high up, swooped screaming off. No fight could have been half so
terrible as this dance. It was so emphatically a fallen sport—a
something, once innocent, delivered over to all devilry—a healthy
pastime changed into a means of angering the blood, bewildering the
senses, and steeling the heart. Such grace as was visible in it, made it
the uglier, showing how warped and perverted all things good by nature
were become. The maidenly bosom bared to this, the pretty almost-child’s
head thus distracted, the delicate foot mincing in this slough of blood
and dirt, were types of the disjointed time.
This was the Carmagnole. As it passed, leaving Lucie frightened and
bewildered in the doorway of the wood-sawyer’s house, the feathery snow
fell as quietly and lay as white and soft, as if it had never been.
“O my father!” for he stood before her when she lifted up the eyes she had
momentarily darkened with her hand; “such a cruel, bad sight.”
“I know, my dear, I know. I have seen it many times. Don’t be frightened!
Not one of them would harm you.”
“I am not frightened for myself, my father. But when I think of my
husband, and the mercies of these people—”
“We will set him above their mercies very soon. I left him climbing to the
window, and I came to tell you. There is no one here to see. You may kiss
your hand towards that highest shelving roof.”
“I do so, father, and I send him my Soul with it!”
“You cannot see him, my poor dear?”
“No, father,” said Lucie, yearning and weeping as she kissed her hand,
“no.”
A footstep in the snow. Madame Defarge. “I salute you, citizeness,” from
the Doctor. “I salute you, citizen.” This in passing. Nothing more. Madame
Defarge gone, like a shadow over the white road.
“Give me your arm, my love. Pass from here with an air of cheerfulness and
courage, for his sake. That was well done;” they had left the spot; “it
shall not be in vain. Charles is summoned for to-morrow.”
“For to-morrow!”
“There is no time to lose. I am well prepared, but there are precautions
to be taken, that could not be taken until he was actually summoned before
the Tribunal. He has not received the notice yet, but I know that he will
presently be summoned for to-morrow, and removed to the Conciergerie; I
have timely information. You are not afraid?”
She could scarcely answer, “I trust in you.”
“Do so, implicitly. Your suspense is nearly ended, my darling; he shall be
restored to you within a few hours; I have encompassed him with every
protection. I must see Lorry.”
He stopped. There was a heavy lumbering of wheels within hearing. They
both knew too well what it meant. One. Two. Three. Three tumbrils faring
away with their dread loads over the hushing snow.
“I must see Lorry,” the Doctor repeated, turning her another way.
The staunch old gentleman was still in his trust; had never left it. He
and his books were in frequent requisition as to property confiscated and
made national. What he could save for the owners, he saved. No better man
living to hold fast by what Tellson’s had in keeping, and to hold his
peace.
A murky red and yellow sky, and a rising mist from the Seine, denoted the
approach of darkness. It was almost dark when they arrived at the Bank.
The stately residence of Monseigneur was altogether blighted and deserted.
Above a heap of dust and ashes in the court, ran the letters: National
Property. Republic One and Indivisible. Liberty, Equality, Fraternity, or
Death!
Who could that be with Mr. Lorry—the owner of the riding-coat upon
the chair—who must not be seen? From whom newly arrived, did he come
out, agitated and surprised, to take his favourite in his arms? To whom
did he appear to repeat her faltering words, when, raising his voice and
turning his head towards the door of the room from which he had issued, he
said: “Removed to the Conciergerie, and summoned for to-morrow?”
CHAPTER VI.<br />Triumph
The dread tribunal of five Judges, Public Prosecutor, and determined Jury,
sat every day. Their lists went forth every evening, and were read out by
the gaolers of the various prisons to their prisoners. The standard
gaoler-joke was, “Come out and listen to the Evening Paper, you inside
there!”
“Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay!”
So at last began the Evening Paper at La Force.
When a name was called, its owner stepped apart into a spot reserved for
those who were announced as being thus fatally recorded. Charles
Evrémonde, called Darnay, had reason to know the usage; he had seen
hundreds pass away so.
His bloated gaoler, who wore spectacles to read with, glanced over them to
assure himself that he had taken his place, and went through the list,
making a similar short pause at each name. There were twenty-three names,
but only twenty were responded to; for one of the prisoners so summoned
had died in gaol and been forgotten, and two had already been guillotined
and forgotten. The list was read, in the vaulted chamber where Darnay had
seen the associated prisoners on the night of his arrival. Every one of
those had perished in the massacre; every human creature he had since
cared for and parted with, had died on the scaffold.
There were hurried words of farewell and kindness, but the parting was
soon over. It was the incident of every day, and the society of La Force
were engaged in the preparation of some games of forfeits and a little
concert, for that evening. They crowded to the grates and shed tears
there; but, twenty places in the projected entertainments had to be
refilled, and the time was, at best, short to the lock-up hour, when the
common rooms and corridors would be delivered over to the great dogs who
kept watch there through the night. The prisoners were far from insensible
or unfeeling; their ways arose out of the condition of the time.
Similarly, though with a subtle difference, a species of fervour or
intoxication, known, without doubt, to have led some persons to brave the
guillotine unnecessarily, and to die by it, was not mere boastfulness, but
a wild infection of the wildly shaken public mind. In seasons of
pestilence, some of us will have a secret attraction to the disease—a
terrible passing inclination to die of it. And all of us have like wonders
hidden in our breasts, only needing circumstances to evoke them.
The passage to the Conciergerie was short and dark; the night in its
vermin-haunted cells was long and cold. Next day, fifteen prisoners were
put to the bar before Charles Darnay’s name was called. All the fifteen
were condemned, and the trials of the whole occupied an hour and a half.
“Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay,” was at length arraigned.
His judges sat upon the Bench in feathered hats; but the rough red cap and
tricoloured cockade was the head-dress otherwise prevailing. Looking at
the Jury and the turbulent audience, he might have thought that the usual
order of things was reversed, and that the felons were trying the honest
men. The lowest, cruelest, and worst populace of a city, never without its
quantity of low, cruel, and bad, were the directing spirits of the scene:
noisily commenting, applauding, disapproving, anticipating, and
precipitating the result, without a check. Of the men, the greater part
were armed in various ways; of the women, some wore knives, some daggers,
some ate and drank as they looked on, many knitted. Among these last, was
one, with a spare piece of knitting under her arm as she worked. She was
in a front row, by the side of a man whom he had never seen since his
arrival at the Barrier, but whom he directly remembered as Defarge. He
noticed that she once or twice whispered in his ear, and that she seemed
to be his wife; but, what he most noticed in the two figures was, that
although they were posted as close to himself as they could be, they never
looked towards him. They seemed to be waiting for something with a dogged
determination, and they looked at the Jury, but at nothing else. Under the
President sat Doctor Manette, in his usual quiet dress. As well as the
prisoner could see, he and Mr. Lorry were the only men there, unconnected
with the Tribunal, who wore their usual clothes, and had not assumed the
coarse garb of the Carmagnole.
Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay, was accused by the public prosecutor as
an emigrant, whose life was forfeit to the Republic, under the decree
which banished all emigrants on pain of Death. It was nothing that the
decree bore date since his return to France. There he was, and there was
the decree; he had been taken in France, and his head was demanded.
“Take off his head!” cried the audience. “An enemy to the Republic!”
The President rang his bell to silence those cries, and asked the prisoner
whether it was not true that he had lived many years in England?
Undoubtedly it was.
Was he not an emigrant then? What did he call himself?
Not an emigrant, he hoped, within the sense and spirit of the law.
Why not? the President desired to know.
Because he had voluntarily relinquished a title that was distasteful to
him, and a station that was distasteful to him, and had left his country—he
submitted before the word emigrant in the present acceptation by the
Tribunal was in use—to live by his own industry in England, rather
than on the industry of the overladen people of France.
What proof had he of this?
He handed in the names of two witnesses; Theophile Gabelle, and Alexandre
Manette.
But he had married in England? the President reminded him.
True, but not an English woman.
A citizeness of France?
Yes. By birth.
Her name and family?
“Lucie Manette, only daughter of Doctor Manette, the good physician who
sits there.”
This answer had a happy effect upon the audience. Cries in exaltation of
the well-known good physician rent the hall. So capriciously were the
people moved, that tears immediately rolled down several ferocious
countenances which had been glaring at the prisoner a moment before, as if
with impatience to pluck him out into the streets and kill him.
On these few steps of his dangerous way, Charles Darnay had set his foot
according to Doctor Manette’s reiterated instructions. The same cautious
counsel directed every step that lay before him, and had prepared every
inch of his road.
The President asked, why had he returned to France when he did, and not
sooner?
He had not returned sooner, he replied, simply because he had no means of
living in France, save those he had resigned; whereas, in England, he
lived by giving instruction in the French language and literature. He had
returned when he did, on the pressing and written entreaty of a French
citizen, who represented that his life was endangered by his absence. He
had come back, to save a citizen’s life, and to bear his testimony, at
whatever personal hazard, to the truth. Was that criminal in the eyes of
the Republic?
The populace cried enthusiastically, “No!” and the President rang his bell
to quiet them. Which it did not, for they continued to cry “No!” until
they left off, of their own will.
The President required the name of that citizen. The accused explained
that the citizen was his first witness. He also referred with confidence
to the citizen’s letter, which had been taken from him at the Barrier, but
which he did not doubt would be found among the papers then before the
President.
The Doctor had taken care that it should be there—had assured him
that it would be there—and at this stage of the proceedings it was
produced and read. Citizen Gabelle was called to confirm it, and did so.
Citizen Gabelle hinted, with infinite delicacy and politeness, that in the
pressure of business imposed on the Tribunal by the multitude of enemies
of the Republic with which it had to deal, he had been slightly overlooked
in his prison of the Abbaye—in fact, had rather passed out of the
Tribunal’s patriotic remembrance—until three days ago; when he had
been summoned before it, and had been set at liberty on the Jury’s
declaring themselves satisfied that the accusation against him was
answered, as to himself, by the surrender of the citizen Evrémonde, called
Darnay.
Doctor Manette was next questioned. His high personal popularity, and the
clearness of his answers, made a great impression; but, as he proceeded,
as he showed that the Accused was his first friend on his release from his
long imprisonment; that, the accused had remained in England, always
faithful and devoted to his daughter and himself in their exile; that, so
far from being in favour with the Aristocrat government there, he had
actually been tried for his life by it, as the foe of England and friend
of the United States—as he brought these circumstances into view,
with the greatest discretion and with the straightforward force of truth
and earnestness, the Jury and the populace became one. At last, when he
appealed by name to Monsieur Lorry, an English gentleman then and there
present, who, like himself, had been a witness on that English trial and
could corroborate his account of it, the Jury declared that they had heard
enough, and that they were ready with their votes if the President were
content to receive them.
At every vote (the Jurymen voted aloud and individually), the populace set
up a shout of applause. All the voices were in the prisoner’s favour, and
the President declared him free.
Then, began one of those extraordinary scenes with which the populace
sometimes gratified their fickleness, or their better impulses towards
generosity and mercy, or which they regarded as some set-off against their
swollen account of cruel rage. No man can decide now to which of these
motives such extraordinary scenes were referable; it is probable, to a
blending of all the three, with the second predominating. No sooner was
the acquittal pronounced, than tears were shed as freely as blood at
another time, and such fraternal embraces were bestowed upon the prisoner
by as many of both sexes as could rush at him, that after his long and
unwholesome confinement he was in danger of fainting from exhaustion; none
the less because he knew very well, that the very same people, carried by
another current, would have rushed at him with the very same intensity, to
rend him to pieces and strew him over the streets.
His removal, to make way for other accused persons who were to be tried,
rescued him from these caresses for the moment. Five were to be tried
together, next, as enemies of the Republic, forasmuch as they had not
assisted it by word or deed. So quick was the Tribunal to compensate
itself and the nation for a chance lost, that these five came down to him
before he left the place, condemned to die within twenty-four hours. The
first of them told him so, with the customary prison sign of Death—a
raised finger—and they all added in words, “Long live the Republic!”
The five had had, it is true, no audience to lengthen their proceedings,
for when he and Doctor Manette emerged from the gate, there was a great
crowd about it, in which there seemed to be every face he had seen in
Court—except two, for which he looked in vain. On his coming out,
the concourse made at him anew, weeping, embracing, and shouting, all by
turns and all together, until the very tide of the river on the bank of
which the mad scene was acted, seemed to run mad, like the people on the
shore.
They put him into a great chair they had among them, and which they had
taken either out of the Court itself, or one of its rooms or passages.
Over the chair they had thrown a red flag, and to the back of it they had
bound a pike with a red cap on its top. In this car of triumph, not even
the Doctor’s entreaties could prevent his being carried to his home on
men’s shoulders, with a confused sea of red caps heaving about him, and
casting up to sight from the stormy deep such wrecks of faces, that he
more than once misdoubted his mind being in confusion, and that he was in
the tumbril on his way to the Guillotine.
In wild dreamlike procession, embracing whom they met and pointing him
out, they carried him on. Reddening the snowy streets with the prevailing
Republican colour, in winding and tramping through them, as they had
reddened them below the snow with a deeper dye, they carried him thus into
the courtyard of the building where he lived. Her father had gone on
before, to prepare her, and when her husband stood upon his feet, she
dropped insensible in his arms.
As he held her to his heart and turned her beautiful head between his face
and the brawling crowd, so that his tears and her lips might come together
unseen, a few of the people fell to dancing. Instantly, all the rest fell
to dancing, and the courtyard overflowed with the Carmagnole. Then, they
elevated into the vacant chair a young woman from the crowd to be carried
as the Goddess of Liberty, and then swelling and overflowing out into the
adjacent streets, and along the river’s bank, and over the bridge, the
Carmagnole absorbed them every one and whirled them away.
After grasping the Doctor’s hand, as he stood victorious and proud before
him; after grasping the hand of Mr. Lorry, who came panting in breathless
from his struggle against the waterspout of the Carmagnole; after kissing
little Lucie, who was lifted up to clasp her arms round his neck; and
after embracing the ever zealous and faithful Pross who lifted her; he
took his wife in his arms, and carried her up to their rooms.
“Lucie! My own! I am safe.”
“O dearest Charles, let me thank God for this on my knees as I have prayed
to Him.”
They all reverently bowed their heads and hearts. When she was again in
his arms, he said to her:
“And now speak to your father, dearest. No other man in all this France
could have done what he has done for me.”
She laid her head upon her father’s breast, as she had laid his poor head
on her own breast, long, long ago. He was happy in the return he had made
her, he was recompensed for his suffering, he was proud of his strength.
“You must not be weak, my darling,” he remonstrated; “don’t tremble so. I
have saved him.”
CHAPTER VII.<br />A Knock at the Door
I have saved him.” It was not another of the dreams in which he had often
come back; he was really here. And yet his wife trembled, and a vague but
heavy fear was upon her.
All the air round was so thick and dark, the people were so passionately
revengeful and fitful, the innocent were so constantly put to death on
vague suspicion and black malice, it was so impossible to forget that many
as blameless as her husband and as dear to others as he was to her, every
day shared the fate from which he had been clutched, that her heart could
not be as lightened of its load as she felt it ought to be. The shadows of
the wintry afternoon were beginning to fall, and even now the dreadful
carts were rolling through the streets. Her mind pursued them, looking for
him among the Condemned; and then she clung closer to his real presence
and trembled more.
Her father, cheering her, showed a compassionate superiority to this
woman’s weakness, which was wonderful to see. No garret, no shoemaking, no
One Hundred and Five, North Tower, now! He had accomplished the task he
had set himself, his promise was redeemed, he had saved Charles. Let them
all lean upon him.
Their housekeeping was of a very frugal kind: not only because that was
the safest way of life, involving the least offence to the people, but
because they were not rich, and Charles, throughout his imprisonment, had
had to pay heavily for his bad food, and for his guard, and towards the
living of the poorer prisoners. Partly on this account, and partly to
avoid a domestic spy, they kept no servant; the citizen and citizeness who
acted as porters at the courtyard gate, rendered them occasional service;
and Jerry (almost wholly transferred to them by Mr. Lorry) had become
their daily retainer, and had his bed there every night.
It was an ordinance of the Republic One and Indivisible of Liberty,
Equality, Fraternity, or Death, that on the door or doorpost of every
house, the name of every inmate must be legibly inscribed in letters of a
certain size, at a certain convenient height from the ground. Mr. Jerry
Cruncher’s name, therefore, duly embellished the doorpost down below; and,
as the afternoon shadows deepened, the owner of that name himself
appeared, from overlooking a painter whom Doctor Manette had employed to
add to the list the name of Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay.
In the universal fear and distrust that darkened the time, all the usual
harmless ways of life were changed. In the Doctor’s little household, as
in very many others, the articles of daily consumption that were wanted
were purchased every evening, in small quantities and at various small
shops. To avoid attracting notice, and to give as little occasion as
possible for talk and envy, was the general desire.
For some months past, Miss Pross and Mr. Cruncher had discharged the
office of purveyors; the former carrying the money; the latter, the
basket. Every afternoon at about the time when the public lamps were
lighted, they fared forth on this duty, and made and brought home such
purchases as were needful. Although Miss Pross, through her long
association with a French family, might have known as much of their
language as of her own, if she had had a mind, she had no mind in that
direction; consequently she knew no more of that “nonsense” (as she was
pleased to call it) than Mr. Cruncher did. So her manner of marketing was
to plump a noun-substantive at the head of a shopkeeper without any
introduction in the nature of an article, and, if it happened not to be
the name of the thing she wanted, to look round for that thing, lay hold
of it, and hold on by it until the bargain was concluded. She always made
a bargain for it, by holding up, as a statement of its just price, one
finger less than the merchant held up, whatever his number might be.
“Now, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose eyes were red with felicity;
“if you are ready, I am.”
Jerry hoarsely professed himself at Miss Pross’s service. He had worn all
his rust off long ago, but nothing would file his spiky head down.
“There’s all manner of things wanted,” said Miss Pross, “and we shall have
a precious time of it. We want wine, among the rest. Nice toasts these
Redheads will be drinking, wherever we buy it.”
“It will be much the same to your knowledge, miss, I should think,”
retorted Jerry, “whether they drink your health or the Old Un’s.”
“Who’s he?” said Miss Pross.
Mr. Cruncher, with some diffidence, explained himself as meaning “Old
Nick’s.”
“Ha!” said Miss Pross, “it doesn’t need an interpreter to explain the
meaning of these creatures. They have but one, and it’s Midnight Murder,
and Mischief.”
“Hush, dear! Pray, pray, be cautious!” cried Lucie.
“Yes, yes, yes, I’ll be cautious,” said Miss Pross; “but I may say among
ourselves, that I do hope there will be no oniony and tobaccoey
smotherings in the form of embracings all round, going on in the streets.
Now, Ladybird, never you stir from that fire till I come back! Take care
of the dear husband you have recovered, and don’t move your pretty head
from his shoulder as you have it now, till you see me again! May I ask a
question, Doctor Manette, before I go?”
“I think you may take that liberty,” the Doctor answered, smiling.
“For gracious sake, don’t talk about Liberty; we have quite enough of
that,” said Miss Pross.
“Hush, dear! Again?” Lucie remonstrated.
“Well, my sweet,” said Miss Pross, nodding her head emphatically, “the
short and the long of it is, that I am a subject of His Most Gracious
Majesty King George the Third;” Miss Pross curtseyed at the name; “and as
such, my maxim is, Confound their politics, Frustrate their knavish
tricks, On him our hopes we fix, God save the King!”
Mr. Cruncher, in an access of loyalty, growlingly repeated the words after
Miss Pross, like somebody at church.
“I am glad you have so much of the Englishman in you, though I wish you
had never taken that cold in your voice,” said Miss Pross, approvingly.
“But the question, Doctor Manette. Is there”—it was the good
creature’s way to affect to make light of anything that was a great
anxiety with them all, and to come at it in this chance manner—“is
there any prospect yet, of our getting out of this place?”
“I fear not yet. It would be dangerous for Charles yet.”
“Heigh-ho-hum!” said Miss Pross, cheerfully repressing a sigh as she
glanced at her darling’s golden hair in the light of the fire, “then we
must have patience and wait: that’s all. We must hold up our heads and
fight low, as my brother Solomon used to say. Now, Mr. Cruncher!—Don’t
you move, Ladybird!”
They went out, leaving Lucie, and her husband, her father, and the child,
by a bright fire. Mr. Lorry was expected back presently from the Banking
House. Miss Pross had lighted the lamp, but had put it aside in a corner,
that they might enjoy the fire-light undisturbed. Little Lucie sat by her
grandfather with her hands clasped through his arm: and he, in a tone not
rising much above a whisper, began to tell her a story of a great and
powerful Fairy who had opened a prison-wall and let out a captive who had
once done the Fairy a service. All was subdued and quiet, and Lucie was
more at ease than she had been.
“What is that?” she cried, all at once.
“My dear!” said her father, stopping in his story, and laying his hand on
hers, “command yourself. What a disordered state you are in! The least
thing—nothing—startles you! , your father’s
daughter!”
“I thought, my father,” said Lucie, excusing herself, with a pale face and
in a faltering voice, “that I heard strange feet upon the stairs.”
“My love, the staircase is as still as Death.”
As he said the word, a blow was struck upon the door.
“Oh father, father. What can this be! Hide Charles. Save him!”
“My child,” said the Doctor, rising, and laying his hand upon her
shoulder, “I saved him. What weakness is this, my dear! Let me
go to the door.”
He took the lamp in his hand, crossed the two intervening outer rooms, and
opened it. A rude clattering of feet over the floor, and four rough men in
red caps, armed with sabres and pistols, entered the room.
“The Citizen Evrémonde, called Darnay,” said the first.
<br />
“Who seeks him?” answered Darnay.
<br />
“I seek him. We seek him. I know you, Evrémonde; I saw you before the
Tribunal to-day. You are again the prisoner of the Republic.”
<br />
The four surrounded him, where he stood with his wife and child clinging
to him.
<br />
“Tell me how and why am I again a prisoner?”
<br />
“It is enough that you return straight to the Conciergerie, and will know
to-morrow. You are summoned for to-morrow.”
<br />
Doctor Manette, whom this visitation had so turned into stone, that he
stood with the lamp in his hand, as if he were a statue made to hold it,
moved after these words were spoken, put the lamp down, and confronting
the speaker, and taking him, not ungently, by the loose front of his red
woollen shirt, said:
<br />
“You know him, you have said. Do you know me?”
<br />
“Yes, I know you, Citizen Doctor.”
<br />
“We all know you, Citizen Doctor,” said the other three.
<br />
He looked abstractedly from one to another, and said, in a lower voice,
after a pause:
<br />
“Will you answer his question to me then? How does this happen?”
<br />
“Citizen Doctor,” said the first, reluctantly, “he has been denounced to
the Section of Saint Antoine. This citizen,” pointing out the second who
had entered, “is from Saint Antoine.”
<br />
The citizen here indicated nodded his head, and added:
<br />
“He is accused by Saint Antoine.”
<br />
“Of what?” asked the Doctor.
<br />
“Citizen Doctor,” said the first, with his former reluctance, “ask no
more. If the Republic demands sacrifices from you, without doubt you as a
good patriot will be happy to make them. The Republic goes before all. The
People is supreme. Evrémonde, we are pressed.”
<br />
“One word,” the Doctor entreated. “Will you tell me who denounced him?”
<br />
“It is against rule,” answered the first; “but you can ask Him of Saint
Antoine here.”
<br />
The Doctor turned his eyes upon that man. Who moved uneasily on his feet,
rubbed his beard a little, and at length said:
<br />
“Well! Truly it is against rule. But he is denounced—and gravely—by
the Citizen and Citizeness Defarge. And by one other.”
<br />
“What other?”
<br />
“Do ask, Citizen Doctor?”
<br />
“Yes.”
<br />
“Then,” said he of Saint Antoine, with a strange look, “you will be
answered to-morrow. Now, I am dumb!”
CHAPTER VIII.<br />A Hand at Cards
Happily unconscious of the new calamity at home, Miss Pross threaded her
way along the narrow streets and crossed the river by the bridge of the
Pont-Neuf, reckoning in her mind the number of indispensable purchases she
had to make. Mr. Cruncher, with the basket, walked at her side. They both
looked to the right and to the left into most of the shops they passed,
had a wary eye for all gregarious assemblages of people, and turned out of
their road to avoid any very excited group of talkers. It was a raw
evening, and the misty river, blurred to the eye with blazing lights and
to the ear with harsh noises, showed where the barges were stationed in
which the smiths worked, making guns for the Army of the Republic. Woe to
the man who played tricks with Army, or got undeserved
promotion in it! Better for him that his beard had never grown, for the
National Razor shaved him close.
Having purchased a few small articles of grocery, and a measure of oil for
the lamp, Miss Pross bethought herself of the wine they wanted. After
peeping into several wine-shops, she stopped at the sign of the Good
Republican Brutus of Antiquity, not far from the National Palace, once
(and twice) the Tuileries, where the aspect of things rather took her
fancy. It had a quieter look than any other place of the same description
they had passed, and, though red with patriotic caps, was not so red as
the rest. Sounding Mr. Cruncher, and finding him of her opinion, Miss
Pross resorted to the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, attended by her
cavalier.
Slightly observant of the smoky lights; of the people, pipe in mouth,
playing with limp cards and yellow dominoes; of the one bare-breasted,
bare-armed, soot-begrimed workman reading a journal aloud, and of the
others listening to him; of the weapons worn, or laid aside to be resumed;
of the two or three customers fallen forward asleep, who in the popular
high-shouldered shaggy black spencer looked, in that attitude, like
slumbering bears or dogs; the two outlandish customers approached the
counter, and showed what they wanted.
As their wine was measuring out, a man parted from another man in a
corner, and rose to depart. In going, he had to face Miss Pross. No sooner
did he face her, than Miss Pross uttered a scream, and clapped her hands.
In a moment, the whole company were on their feet. That somebody was
assassinated by somebody vindicating a difference of opinion was the
likeliest occurrence. Everybody looked to see somebody fall, but only saw
a man and a woman standing staring at each other; the man with all the
outward aspect of a Frenchman and a thorough Republican; the woman,
evidently English.
What was said in this disappointing anti-climax, by the disciples of the
Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, except that it was something very
voluble and loud, would have been as so much Hebrew or Chaldean to Miss
Pross and her protector, though they had been all ears. But, they had no
ears for anything in their surprise. For, it must be recorded, that not
only was Miss Pross lost in amazement and agitation, but, Mr. Cruncher—though
it seemed on his own separate and individual account—was in a state
of the greatest wonder.
<br />
“What is the matter?” said the man who had caused Miss Pross to scream;
speaking in a vexed, abrupt voice (though in a low tone), and in English.
<br />
“Oh, Solomon, dear Solomon!” cried Miss Pross, clapping her hands again.
“After not setting eyes upon you or hearing of you for so long a time, do
I find you here!”
<br />
“Don’t call me Solomon. Do you want to be the death of me?” asked the man,
in a furtive, frightened way.
<br />
“Brother, brother!” cried Miss Pross, bursting into tears. “Have I ever
been so hard with you that you ask me such a cruel question?”
<br />
“Then hold your meddlesome tongue,” said Solomon, “and come out, if you
want to speak to me. Pay for your wine, and come out. Who’s this man?”
<br />
Miss Pross, shaking her loving and dejected head at her by no means
affectionate brother, said through her tears, “Mr. Cruncher.”
<br />
“Let him come out too,” said Solomon. “Does he think me a ghost?”
<br />
Apparently, Mr. Cruncher did, to judge from his looks. He said not a word,
however, and Miss Pross, exploring the depths of her reticule through her
tears with great difficulty paid for her wine. As she did so, Solomon
turned to the followers of the Good Republican Brutus of Antiquity, and
offered a few words of explanation in the French language, which caused
them all to relapse into their former places and pursuits.
<br />
“Now,” said Solomon, stopping at the dark street corner, “what do you
want?”
<br />
“How dreadfully unkind in a brother nothing has ever turned my love away
from!” cried Miss Pross, “to give me such a greeting, and show me no
affection.”
<br />
“There. Confound it! There,” said Solomon, making a dab at Miss Pross’s
lips with his own. “Now are you content?”
<br />
Miss Pross only shook her head and wept in silence.
<br />
“If you expect me to be surprised,” said her brother Solomon, “I am not
surprised; I knew you were here; I know of most people who are here. If
you really don’t want to endanger my existence—which I half believe
you do—go your ways as soon as possible, and let me go mine. I am
busy. I am an official.”
<br />
“My English brother Solomon,” mourned Miss Pross, casting up her
tear-fraught eyes, “that had the makings in him of one of the best and
greatest of men in his native country, an official among foreigners, and
such foreigners! I would almost sooner have seen the dear boy lying in his—”
<br />
“I said so!” cried her brother, interrupting. “I knew it. You want to be
the death of me. I shall be rendered Suspected, by my own sister. Just as
I am getting on!”
<br />
“The gracious and merciful Heavens forbid!” cried Miss Pross. “Far rather
would I never see you again, dear Solomon, though I have ever loved you
truly, and ever shall. Say but one affectionate word to me, and tell me
there is nothing angry or estranged between us, and I will detain you no
longer.”
<br />
Good Miss Pross! As if the estrangement between them had come of any
culpability of hers. As if Mr. Lorry had not known it for a fact, years
ago, in the quiet corner in Soho, that this precious brother had spent her
money and left her!
<br />
He was saying the affectionate word, however, with a far more grudging
condescension and patronage than he could have shown if their relative
merits and positions had been reversed (which is invariably the case, all
the world over), when Mr. Cruncher, touching him on the shoulder, hoarsely
and unexpectedly interposed with the following singular question:
<br />
“I say! Might I ask the favour? As to whether your name is John Solomon,
or Solomon John?”
<br />
The official turned towards him with sudden distrust. He had not
previously uttered a word.
<br />
“Come!” said Mr. Cruncher. “Speak out, you know.” (Which, by the way, was
more than he could do himself.) “John Solomon, or Solomon John? She calls
you Solomon, and she must know, being your sister. And know
you’re John, you know. Which of the two goes first? And regarding that
name of Pross, likewise. That warn’t your name over the water.”
<br />
“What do you mean?”
<br />
“Well, I don’t know all I mean, for I can’t call to mind what your name
was, over the water.”
<br />
“No?”
<br />
“No. But I’ll swear it was a name of two syllables.”
<br />
“Indeed?”
<br />
“Yes. T’other one’s was one syllable. I know you. You was a spy—witness
at the Bailey. What, in the name of the Father of Lies, own father to
yourself, was you called at that time?”
<br />
“Barsad,” said another voice, striking in.
<br />
“That’s the name for a thousand pound!” cried Jerry.
<br />
The speaker who struck in, was Sydney Carton. He had his hands behind him
under the skirts of his riding-coat, and he stood at Mr. Cruncher’s elbow
as negligently as he might have stood at the Old Bailey itself.
<br />
“Don’t be alarmed, my dear Miss Pross. I arrived at Mr. Lorry’s, to his
surprise, yesterday evening; we agreed that I would not present myself
elsewhere until all was well, or unless I could be useful; I present
myself here, to beg a little talk with your brother. I wish you had a
better employed brother than Mr. Barsad. I wish for your sake Mr. Barsad
was not a Sheep of the Prisons.”
<br />
Sheep was a cant word of the time for a spy, under the gaolers. The spy,
who was pale, turned paler, and asked him how he dared—
<br />
“I’ll tell you,” said Sydney. “I lighted on you, Mr. Barsad, coming out of
the prison of the Conciergerie while I was contemplating the walls, an
hour or more ago. You have a face to be remembered, and I remember faces
well. Made curious by seeing you in that connection, and having a reason,
to which you are no stranger, for associating you with the misfortunes of
a friend now very unfortunate, I walked in your direction. I walked into
the wine-shop here, close after you, and sat near you. I had no difficulty
in deducing from your unreserved conversation, and the rumour openly going
about among your admirers, the nature of your calling. And gradually, what
I had done at random, seemed to shape itself into a purpose, Mr. Barsad.”
<br />
“What purpose?” the spy asked.
<br />
“It would be troublesome, and might be dangerous, to explain in the
street. Could you favour me, in confidence, with some minutes of your
company—at the office of Tellson’s Bank, for instance?”
<br />
“Under a threat?”
<br />
“Oh! Did I say that?”
<br />
“Then, why should I go there?”
<br />
“Really, Mr. Barsad, I can’t say, if you can’t.”
<br />
“Do you mean that you won’t say, sir?” the spy irresolutely asked.
<br />
“You apprehend me very clearly, Mr. Barsad. I won’t.”
<br />
Carton’s negligent recklessness of manner came powerfully in aid of his
quickness and skill, in such a business as he had in his secret mind, and
with such a man as he had to do with. His practised eye saw it, and made
the most of it.
<br />
“Now, I told you so,” said the spy, casting a reproachful look at his
sister; “if any trouble comes of this, it’s your doing.”
<br />
“Come, come, Mr. Barsad!” exclaimed Sydney. “Don’t be ungrateful. But for
my great respect for your sister, I might not have led up so pleasantly to
a little proposal that I wish to make for our mutual satisfaction. Do you
go with me to the Bank?”
<br />
“I’ll hear what you have got to say. Yes, I’ll go with you.”
<br />
“I propose that we first conduct your sister safely to the corner of her
own street. Let me take your arm, Miss Pross. This is not a good city, at
this time, for you to be out in, unprotected; and as your escort knows Mr.
Barsad, I will invite him to Mr. Lorry’s with us. Are we ready? Come
then!”
<br />
Miss Pross recalled soon afterwards, and to the end of her life
remembered, that as she pressed her hands on Sydney’s arm and looked up in
his face, imploring him to do no hurt to Solomon, there was a braced
purpose in the arm and a kind of inspiration in the eyes, which not only
contradicted his light manner, but changed and raised the man. She was too
much occupied then with fears for the brother who so little deserved her
affection, and with Sydney’s friendly reassurances, adequately to heed
what she observed.
<br />
They left her at the corner of the street, and Carton led the way to Mr.
Lorry’s, which was within a few minutes’ walk. John Barsad, or Solomon
Pross, walked at his side.
<br />
Mr. Lorry had just finished his dinner, and was sitting before a cheery
little log or two of fire—perhaps looking into their blaze for the
picture of that younger elderly gentleman from Tellson’s, who had looked
into the red coals at the Royal George at Dover, now a good many years
ago. He turned his head as they entered, and showed the surprise with
which he saw a stranger.
<br />
“Miss Pross’s brother, sir,” said Sydney. “Mr. Barsad.”
<br />
“Barsad?” repeated the old gentleman, “Barsad? I have an association with
the name—and with the face.”
<br />
“I told you you had a remarkable face, Mr. Barsad,” observed Carton,
coolly. “Pray sit down.”
<br />
As he took a chair himself, he supplied the link that Mr. Lorry wanted, by
saying to him with a frown, “Witness at that trial.” Mr. Lorry immediately
remembered, and regarded his new visitor with an undisguised look of
abhorrence.
<br />
“Mr. Barsad has been recognised by Miss Pross as the affectionate brother
you have heard of,” said Sydney, “and has acknowledged the relationship. I
pass to worse news. Darnay has been arrested again.”
<br />
Struck with consternation, the old gentleman exclaimed, “What do you tell
me! I left him safe and free within these two hours, and am about to
return to him!”
<br />
“Arrested for all that. When was it done, Mr. Barsad?”
<br />
“Just now, if at all.”
<br />
“Mr. Barsad is the best authority possible, sir,” said Sydney, “and I have
it from Mr. Barsad’s communication to a friend and brother Sheep over a
bottle of wine, that the arrest has taken place. He left the messengers at
the gate, and saw them admitted by the porter. There is no earthly doubt
that he is retaken.”
<br />
Mr. Lorry’s business eye read in the speaker’s face that it was loss of
time to dwell upon the point. Confused, but sensible that something might
depend on his presence of mind, he commanded himself, and was silently
attentive.
<br />
“Now, I trust,” said Sydney to him, “that the name and influence of Doctor
Manette may stand him in as good stead to-morrow—you said he would
be before the Tribunal again to-morrow, Mr. Barsad?—”
<br />
“Yes; I believe so.”
<br />
“—In as good stead to-morrow as to-day. But it may not be so. I own
to you, I am shaken, Mr. Lorry, by Doctor Manette’s not having had the
power to prevent this arrest.”
<br />
“He may not have known of it beforehand,” said Mr. Lorry.
<br />
“But that very circumstance would be alarming, when we remember how
identified he is with his son-in-law.”
<br />
“That’s true,” Mr. Lorry acknowledged, with his troubled hand at his chin,
and his troubled eyes on Carton.
<br />
“In short,” said Sydney, “this is a desperate time, when desperate games
are played for desperate stakes. Let the Doctor play the winning game; I
will play the losing one. No man’s life here is worth purchase. Any one
carried home by the people to-day, may be condemned tomorrow. Now, the
stake I have resolved to play for, in case of the worst, is a friend in
the Conciergerie. And the friend I purpose to myself to win, is Mr.
Barsad.”
<br />
“You need have good cards, sir,” said the spy.
<br />
“I’ll run them over. I’ll see what I hold,—Mr. Lorry, you know what
a brute I am; I wish you’d give me a little brandy.”
<br />
It was put before him, and he drank off a glassful—drank off another
glassful—pushed the bottle thoughtfully away.
<br />
“Mr. Barsad,” he went on, in the tone of one who really was looking over a
hand at cards: “Sheep of the prisons, emissary of Republican committees,
now turnkey, now prisoner, always spy and secret informer, so much the
more valuable here for being English that an Englishman is less open to
suspicion of subornation in those characters than a Frenchman, represents
himself to his employers under a false name. That’s a very good card. Mr.
Barsad, now in the employ of the republican French government, was
formerly in the employ of the aristocratic English government, the enemy
of France and freedom. That’s an excellent card. Inference clear as day in
this region of suspicion, that Mr. Barsad, still in the pay of the
aristocratic English government, is the spy of Pitt, the treacherous foe
of the Republic crouching in its bosom, the English traitor and agent of
all mischief so much spoken of and so difficult to find. That’s a card not
to be beaten. Have you followed my hand, Mr. Barsad?”
<br />
“Not to understand your play,” returned the spy, somewhat uneasily.
<br />
“I play my Ace, Denunciation of Mr. Barsad to the nearest Section
Committee. Look over your hand, Mr. Barsad, and see what you have. Don’t
hurry.”
<br />
He drew the bottle near, poured out another glassful of brandy, and drank
it off. He saw that the spy was fearful of his drinking himself into a fit
state for the immediate denunciation of him. Seeing it, he poured out and
drank another glassful.
<br />
“Look over your hand carefully, Mr. Barsad. Take time.”
<br />
It was a poorer hand than he suspected. Mr. Barsad saw losing cards in it
that Sydney Carton knew nothing of. Thrown out of his honourable
employment in England, through too much unsuccessful hard swearing there—not
because he was not wanted there; our English reasons for vaunting our
superiority to secrecy and spies are of very modern date—he knew
that he had crossed the Channel, and accepted service in France: first, as
a tempter and an eavesdropper among his own countrymen there: gradually,
as a tempter and an eavesdropper among the natives. He knew that under the
overthrown government he had been a spy upon Saint Antoine and Defarge’s
wine-shop; had received from the watchful police such heads of information
concerning Doctor Manette’s imprisonment, release, and history, as should
serve him for an introduction to familiar conversation with the Defarges;
and tried them on Madame Defarge, and had broken down with them signally.
He always remembered with fear and trembling, that that terrible woman had
knitted when he talked with her, and had looked ominously at him as her
fingers moved. He had since seen her, in the Section of Saint Antoine,
over and over again produce her knitted registers, and denounce people
whose lives the guillotine then surely swallowed up. He knew, as every one
employed as he was did, that he was never safe; that flight was
impossible; that he was tied fast under the shadow of the axe; and that in
spite of his utmost tergiversation and treachery in furtherance of the
reigning terror, a word might bring it down upon him. Once denounced, and
on such grave grounds as had just now been suggested to his mind, he
foresaw that the dreadful woman of whose unrelenting character he had seen
many proofs, would produce against him that fatal register, and would
quash his last chance of life. Besides that all secret men are men soon
terrified, here were surely cards enough of one black suit, to justify the
holder in growing rather livid as he turned them over.
<br />
“You scarcely seem to like your hand,” said Sydney, with the greatest
composure. “Do you play?”
<br />
“I think, sir,” said the spy, in the meanest manner, as he turned to Mr.
Lorry, “I may appeal to a gentleman of your years and benevolence, to put
it to this other gentleman, so much your junior, whether he can under any
circumstances reconcile it to his station to play that Ace of which he has
spoken. I admit that am a spy, and that it is considered a
discreditable station—though it must be filled by somebody; but this
gentleman is no spy, and why should he so demean himself as to make
himself one?”
<br />
“I play my Ace, Mr. Barsad,” said Carton, taking the answer on himself,
and looking at his watch, “without any scruple, in a very few minutes.”
<br />
“I should have hoped, gentlemen both,” said the spy, always striving to
hook Mr. Lorry into the discussion, “that your respect for my sister—”
<br />
“I could not better testify my respect for your sister than by finally
relieving her of her brother,” said Sydney Carton.
<br />
“You think not, sir?”
<br />
“I have thoroughly made up my mind about it.”
<br />
The smooth manner of the spy, curiously in dissonance with his
ostentatiously rough dress, and probably with his usual demeanour,
received such a check from the inscrutability of Carton,—who was a
mystery to wiser and honester men than he,—that it faltered here and
failed him. While he was at a loss, Carton said, resuming his former air
of contemplating cards:
<br />
“And indeed, now I think again, I have a strong impression that I have
another good card here, not yet enumerated. That friend and fellow-Sheep,
who spoke of himself as pasturing in the country prisons; who was he?”
<br />
“French. You don’t know him,” said the spy, quickly.
<br />
“French, eh?” repeated Carton, musing, and not appearing to notice him at
all, though he echoed his word. “Well; he may be.”
<br />
“Is, I assure you,” said the spy; “though it’s not important.”
<br />
“Though it’s not important,” repeated Carton, in the same mechanical way—“though
it’s not important—No, it’s not important. No. Yet I know the face.”
<br />
“I think not. I am sure not. It can’t be,” said the spy.
<br />
“It-can’t-be,” muttered Sydney Carton, retrospectively, and idling his
glass (which fortunately was a small one) again. “Can’t-be. Spoke good
French. Yet like a foreigner, I thought?”
<br />
“Provincial,” said the spy.
<br />
“No. Foreign!” cried Carton, striking his open hand on the table, as a
light broke clearly on his mind. “Cly! Disguised, but the same man. We had
that man before us at the Old Bailey.”
<br />
“Now, there you are hasty, sir,” said Barsad, with a smile that gave his
aquiline nose an extra inclination to one side; “there you really give me
an advantage over you. Cly (who I will unreservedly admit, at this
distance of time, was a partner of mine) has been dead several years. I
attended him in his last illness. He was buried in London, at the church
of Saint Pancras-in-the-Fields. His unpopularity with the blackguard
multitude at the moment prevented my following his remains, but I helped
to lay him in his coffin.”
<br />
Here, Mr. Lorry became aware, from where he sat, of a most remarkable
goblin shadow on the wall. Tracing it to its source, he discovered it to
be caused by a sudden extraordinary rising and stiffening of all the risen
and stiff hair on Mr. Cruncher’s head.
<br />
“Let us be reasonable,” said the spy, “and let us be fair. To show you how
mistaken you are, and what an unfounded assumption yours is, I will lay
before you a certificate of Cly’s burial, which I happened to have carried
in my pocket-book,” with a hurried hand he produced and opened it, “ever
since. There it is. Oh, look at it, look at it! You may take it in your
hand; it’s no forgery.”
<br />
Here, Mr. Lorry perceived the reflection on the wall to elongate, and Mr.
Cruncher rose and stepped forward. His hair could not have been more
violently on end, if it had been that moment dressed by the Cow with the
crumpled horn in the house that Jack built.
<br />
Unseen by the spy, Mr. Cruncher stood at his side, and touched him on the
shoulder like a ghostly bailiff.
<br />
“That there Roger Cly, master,” said Mr. Cruncher, with a taciturn and
iron-bound visage. “So put him in his coffin?”
<br />
“I did.”
<br />
“Who took him out of it?”
<br />
Barsad leaned back in his chair, and stammered, “What do you mean?”
<br />
“I mean,” said Mr. Cruncher, “that he warn’t never in it. No! Not he! I’ll
have my head took off, if he was ever in it.”
<br />
The spy looked round at the two gentlemen; they both looked in unspeakable
astonishment at Jerry.
<br />
“I tell you,” said Jerry, “that you buried paving-stones and earth in that
there coffin. Don’t go and tell me that you buried Cly. It was a take in.
Me and two more knows it.”
<br />
“How do you know it?”
<br />
“What’s that to you? Ecod!” growled Mr. Cruncher, “it’s you I have got a
old grudge again, is it, with your shameful impositions upon tradesmen!
I’d catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a guinea.”
<br />
Sydney Carton, who, with Mr. Lorry, had been lost in amazement at this
turn of the business, here requested Mr. Cruncher to moderate and explain
himself.
<br />
“At another time, sir,” he returned, evasively, “the present time is
ill-conwenient for explainin’. What I stand to, is, that he knows well wot
that there Cly was never in that there coffin. Let him say he was, in so
much as a word of one syllable, and I’ll either catch hold of his throat
and choke him for half a guinea;” Mr. Cruncher dwelt upon this as quite a
liberal offer; “or I’ll out and announce him.”
<br />
“Humph! I see one thing,” said Carton. “I hold another card, Mr. Barsad.
Impossible, here in raging Paris, with Suspicion filling the air, for you
to outlive denunciation, when you are in communication with another
aristocratic spy of the same antecedents as yourself, who, moreover, has
the mystery about him of having feigned death and come to life again! A
plot in the prisons, of the foreigner against the Republic. A strong card—a
certain Guillotine card! Do you play?”
<br />
“No!” returned the spy. “I throw up. I confess that we were so unpopular
with the outrageous mob, that I only got away from England at the risk of
being ducked to death, and that Cly was so ferreted up and down, that he
never would have got away at all but for that sham. Though how this man
knows it was a sham, is a wonder of wonders to me.”
<br />
“Never you trouble your head about this man,” retorted the contentious Mr.
Cruncher; “you’ll have trouble enough with giving your attention to that
gentleman. And look here! Once more!”—Mr. Cruncher could not be
restrained from making rather an ostentatious parade of his liberality—“I’d
catch hold of your throat and choke you for half a guinea.”
<br />
The Sheep of the prisons turned from him to Sydney Carton, and said, with
more decision, “It has come to a point. I go on duty soon, and can’t
overstay my time. You told me you had a proposal; what is it? Now, it is
of no use asking too much of me. Ask me to do anything in my office,
putting my head in great extra danger, and I had better trust my life to
the chances of a refusal than the chances of consent. In short, I should
make that choice. You talk of desperation. We are all desperate here.
Remember! I may denounce you if I think proper, and I can swear my way
through stone walls, and so can others. Now, what do you want with me?”
<br />
“Not very much. You are a turnkey at the Conciergerie?”
<br />
“I tell you once for all, there is no such thing as an escape possible,”
said the spy, firmly.
<br />
“Why need you tell me what I have not asked? You are a turnkey at the
Conciergerie?”
<br />
“I am sometimes.”
<br />
“You can be when you choose?”
<br />
“I can pass in and out when I choose.”
<br />
Sydney Carton filled another glass with brandy, poured it slowly out upon
the hearth, and watched it as it dropped. It being all spent, he said,
rising:
<br />
“So far, we have spoken before these two, because it was as well that the
merits of the cards should not rest solely between you and me. Come into
the dark room here, and let us have one final word alone.”
CHAPTER IX.<br />The Game Made
While Sydney Carton and the Sheep of the prisons were in the adjoining
dark room, speaking so low that not a sound was heard, Mr. Lorry looked at
Jerry in considerable doubt and mistrust. That honest tradesman’s manner
of receiving the look, did not inspire confidence; he changed the leg on
which he rested, as often as if he had fifty of those limbs, and were
trying them all; he examined his finger-nails with a very questionable
closeness of attention; and whenever Mr. Lorry’s eye caught his, he was
taken with that peculiar kind of short cough requiring the hollow of a
hand before it, which is seldom, if ever, known to be an infirmity
attendant on perfect openness of character.
“Jerry,” said Mr. Lorry. “Come here.”
Mr. Cruncher came forward sideways, with one of his shoulders in advance
of him.
“What have you been, besides a messenger?”
After some cogitation, accompanied with an intent look at his patron, Mr.
Cruncher conceived the luminous idea of replying, “Agicultooral
character.”
“My mind misgives me much,” said Mr. Lorry, angrily shaking a forefinger
at him, “that you have used the respectable and great house of Tellson’s
as a blind, and that you have had an unlawful occupation of an infamous
description. If you have, don’t expect me to befriend you when you get
back to England. If you have, don’t expect me to keep your secret.
Tellson’s shall not be imposed upon.”
“I hope, sir,” pleaded the abashed Mr. Cruncher, “that a gentleman like
yourself wot I’ve had the honour of odd jobbing till I’m grey at it, would
think twice about harming of me, even if it wos so—I don’t say it
is, but even if it wos. And which it is to be took into account that if it
wos, it wouldn’t, even then, be all o’ one side. There’d be two sides to
it. There might be medical doctors at the present hour, a picking up their
guineas where a honest tradesman don’t pick up his fardens—fardens!
no, nor yet his half fardens—half fardens! no, nor yet his quarter—a
banking away like smoke at Tellson’s, and a cocking their medical eyes at
that tradesman on the sly, a going in and going out to their own carriages—ah!
equally like smoke, if not more so. Well, that ’ud be imposing, too, on
Tellson’s. For you cannot sarse the goose and not the gander. And here’s
Mrs. Cruncher, or leastways wos in the Old England times, and would be
to-morrow, if cause given, a floppin’ again the business to that degree as
is ruinating—stark ruinating! Whereas them medical doctors’ wives
don’t flop—catch ’em at it! Or, if they flop, their floppings goes
in favour of more patients, and how can you rightly have one without
t’other? Then, wot with undertakers, and wot with parish clerks, and wot
with sextons, and wot with private watchmen (all awaricious and all in
it), a man wouldn’t get much by it, even if it wos so. And wot little a
man did get, would never prosper with him, Mr. Lorry. He’d never have no
good of it; he’d want all along to be out of the line, if he, could see
his way out, being once in—even if it wos so.”
“Ugh!” cried Mr. Lorry, rather relenting, nevertheless, “I am shocked at
the sight of you.”
“Now, what I would humbly offer to you, sir,” pursued Mr. Cruncher, “even
if it wos so, which I don’t say it is—”
“Don’t prevaricate,” said Mr. Lorry.
“No, I will , sir,” returned Mr. Crunches as if nothing were
further from his thoughts or practice—“which I don’t say it is—wot
I would humbly offer to you, sir, would be this. Upon that there stool, at
that there Bar, sets that there boy of mine, brought up and growed up to
be a man, wot will errand you, message you, general-light-job you, till
your heels is where your head is, if such should be your wishes. If it wos
so, which I still don’t say it is (for I will not prewaricate to you,
sir), let that there boy keep his father’s place, and take care of his
mother; don’t blow upon that boy’s father—do not do it, sir—and
let that father go into the line of the reg’lar diggin’, and make amends
for what he would have undug—if it wos so—by diggin’ of ’em in
with a will, and with conwictions respectin’ the futur’ keepin’ of ’em
safe. That, Mr. Lorry,” said Mr. Cruncher, wiping his forehead with his
arm, as an announcement that he had arrived at the peroration of his
discourse, “is wot I would respectfully offer to you, sir. A man don’t see
all this here a goin’ on dreadful round him, in the way of Subjects
without heads, dear me, plentiful enough fur to bring the price down to
porterage and hardly that, without havin’ his serious thoughts of things.
And these here would be mine, if it wos so, entreatin’ of you fur to bear
in mind that wot I said just now, I up and said in the good cause when I
might have kep’ it back.”
“That at least is true,” said Mr. Lorry. “Say no more now. It may be that
I shall yet stand your friend, if you deserve it, and repent in action—not
in words. I want no more words.”
Mr. Cruncher knuckled his forehead, as Sydney Carton and the spy returned
from the dark room. “Adieu, Mr. Barsad,” said the former; “our arrangement
thus made, you have nothing to fear from me.”
He sat down in a chair on the hearth, over against Mr. Lorry. When they
were alone, Mr. Lorry asked him what he had done?
“Not much. If it should go ill with the prisoner, I have ensured access to
him, once.”
Mr. Lorry’s countenance fell.
“It is all I could do,” said Carton. “To propose too much, would be to put
this man’s head under the axe, and, as he himself said, nothing worse
could happen to him if he were denounced. It was obviously the weakness of
the position. There is no help for it.”
“But access to him,” said Mr. Lorry, “if it should go ill before the
Tribunal, will not save him.”
“I never said it would.”
Mr. Lorry’s eyes gradually sought the fire; his sympathy with his darling,
and the heavy disappointment of his second arrest, gradually weakened
them; he was an old man now, overborne with anxiety of late, and his tears
fell.
“You are a good man and a true friend,” said Carton, in an altered voice.
“Forgive me if I notice that you are affected. I could not see my father
weep, and sit by, careless. And I could not respect your sorrow more, if
you were my father. You are free from that misfortune, however.”
Though he said the last words, with a slip into his usual manner, there
was a true feeling and respect both in his tone and in his touch, that Mr.
Lorry, who had never seen the better side of him, was wholly unprepared
for. He gave him his hand, and Carton gently pressed it.
“To return to poor Darnay,” said Carton. “Don’t tell Her of this
interview, or this arrangement. It would not enable Her to go to see him.
She might think it was contrived, in case of the worse, to convey to him
the means of anticipating the sentence.”
Mr. Lorry had not thought of that, and he looked quickly at Carton to see
if it were in his mind. It seemed to be; he returned the look, and
evidently understood it.
“She might think a thousand things,” Carton said, “and any of them would
only add to her trouble. Don’t speak of me to her. As I said to you when I
first came, I had better not see her. I can put my hand out, to do any
little helpful work for her that my hand can find to do, without that. You
are going to her, I hope? She must be very desolate to-night.”
“I am going now, directly.”
“I am glad of that. She has such a strong attachment to you and reliance
on you. How does she look?”
“Anxious and unhappy, but very beautiful.”
“Ah!”
It was a long, grieving sound, like a sigh—almost like a sob. It
attracted Mr. Lorry’s eyes to Carton’s face, which was turned to the fire.
A light, or a shade (the old gentleman could not have said which), passed
from it as swiftly as a change will sweep over a hill-side on a wild
bright day, and he lifted his foot to put back one of the little flaming
logs, which was tumbling forward. He wore the white riding-coat and
top-boots, then in vogue, and the light of the fire touching their light
surfaces made him look very pale, with his long brown hair, all untrimmed,
hanging loose about him. His indifference to fire was sufficiently
remarkable to elicit a word of remonstrance from Mr. Lorry; his boot was
still upon the hot embers of the flaming log, when it had broken under the
weight of his foot.
“I forgot it,” he said.
Mr. Lorry’s eyes were again attracted to his face. Taking note of the
wasted air which clouded the naturally handsome features, and having the
expression of prisoners’ faces fresh in his mind, he was strongly reminded
of that expression.
“And your duties here have drawn to an end, sir?” said Carton, turning to
him.
“Yes. As I was telling you last night when Lucie came in so unexpectedly,
I have at length done all that I can do here. I hoped to have left them in
perfect safety, and then to have quitted Paris. I have my Leave to Pass. I
was ready to go.”
They were both silent.
“Yours is a long life to look back upon, sir?” said Carton, wistfully.
“I am in my seventy-eighth year.”
“You have been useful all your life; steadily and constantly occupied;
trusted, respected, and looked up to?”
“I have been a man of business, ever since I have been a man. Indeed, I
may say that I was a man of business when a boy.”
“See what a place you fill at seventy-eight. How many people will miss you
when you leave it empty!”
“A solitary old bachelor,” answered Mr. Lorry, shaking his head. “There is
nobody to weep for me.”
“How can you say that? Wouldn’t She weep for you? Wouldn’t her child?”
“Yes, yes, thank God. I didn’t quite mean what I said.”
“It a thing to thank God for; is it not?”
“Surely, surely.”
“If you could say, with truth, to your own solitary heart, to-night, ‘I
have secured to myself the love and attachment, the gratitude or respect,
of no human creature; I have won myself a tender place in no regard; I
have done nothing good or serviceable to be remembered by!’ your
seventy-eight years would be seventy-eight heavy curses; would they not?”
“You say truly, Mr. Carton; I think they would be.”
Sydney turned his eyes again upon the fire, and, after a silence of a few
moments, said:
“I should like to ask you:—Does your childhood seem far off? Do the
days when you sat at your mother’s knee, seem days of very long ago?”
Responding to his softened manner, Mr. Lorry answered:
“Twenty years back, yes; at this time of my life, no. For, as I draw
closer and closer to the end, I travel in the circle, nearer and nearer to
the beginning. It seems to be one of the kind smoothings and preparings of
the way. My heart is touched now, by many remembrances that had long
fallen asleep, of my pretty young mother (and I so old!), and by many
associations of the days when what we call the World was not so real with
me, and my faults were not confirmed in me.”
“I understand the feeling!” exclaimed Carton, with a bright flush. “And
you are the better for it?”
“I hope so.”
Carton terminated the conversation here, by rising to help him on with his
outer coat; “But you,” said Mr. Lorry, reverting to the theme, “you are
young.”
“Yes,” said Carton. “I am not old, but my young way was never the way to
age. Enough of me.”
“And of me, I am sure,” said Mr. Lorry. “Are you going out?”
“I’ll walk with you to her gate. You know my vagabond and restless habits.
If I should prowl about the streets a long time, don’t be uneasy; I shall
reappear in the morning. You go to the Court to-morrow?”
“Yes, unhappily.”
“I shall be there, but only as one of the crowd. My Spy will find a place
for me. Take my arm, sir.”
Mr. Lorry did so, and they went down-stairs and out in the streets. A few
minutes brought them to Mr. Lorry’s destination. Carton left him there;
but lingered at a little distance, and turned back to the gate again when
it was shut, and touched it. He had heard of her going to the prison every
day. “She came out here,” he said, looking about him, “turned this way,
must have trod on these stones often. Let me follow in her steps.”
It was ten o’clock at night when he stood before the prison of La Force,
where she had stood hundreds of times. A little wood-sawyer, having closed
his shop, was smoking his pipe at his shop-door.
“Good night, citizen,” said Sydney Carton, pausing in going by; for, the
man eyed him inquisitively.
“Good night, citizen.”
“How goes the Republic?”
“You mean the Guillotine. Not ill. Sixty-three to-day. We shall mount to a
hundred soon. Samson and his men complain sometimes, of being exhausted.
Ha, ha, ha! He is so droll, that Samson. Such a Barber!”
“Do you often go to see him—”
“Shave? Always. Every day. What a barber! You have seen him at work?”
“Never.”
“Go and see him when he has a good batch. Figure this to yourself,
citizen; he shaved the sixty-three to-day, in less than two pipes! Less
than two pipes. Word of honour!”
As the grinning little man held out the pipe he was smoking, to explain
how he timed the executioner, Carton was so sensible of a rising desire to
strike the life out of him, that he turned away.
“But you are not English,” said the wood-sawyer, “though you wear English
dress?”
“Yes,” said Carton, pausing again, and answering over his shoulder.
“You speak like a Frenchman.”
“I am an old student here.”
“Aha, a perfect Frenchman! Good night, Englishman.”
“Good night, citizen.”
“But go and see that droll dog,” the little man persisted, calling after
him. “And take a pipe with you!”
Sydney had not gone far out of sight, when he stopped in the middle of the
street under a glimmering lamp, and wrote with his pencil on a scrap of
paper. Then, traversing with the decided step of one who remembered the
way well, several dark and dirty streets—much dirtier than usual,
for the best public thoroughfares remained uncleansed in those times of
terror—he stopped at a chemist’s shop, which the owner was closing
with his own hands. A small, dim, crooked shop, kept in a tortuous,
up-hill thoroughfare, by a small, dim, crooked man.
Giving this citizen, too, good night, as he confronted him at his counter,
he laid the scrap of paper before him. “Whew!” the chemist whistled
softly, as he read it. “Hi! hi! hi!”
Sydney Carton took no heed, and the chemist said:
“For you, citizen?”
“For me.”
“You will be careful to keep them separate, citizen? You know the
consequences of mixing them?”
“Perfectly.”
Certain small packets were made and given to him. He put them, one by one,
in the breast of his inner coat, counted out the money for them, and
deliberately left the shop. “There is nothing more to do,” said he,
glancing upward at the moon, “until to-morrow. I can’t sleep.”
It was not a reckless manner, the manner in which he said these words
aloud under the fast-sailing clouds, nor was it more expressive of
negligence than defiance. It was the settled manner of a tired man, who
had wandered and struggled and got lost, but who at length struck into his
road and saw its end.
Long ago, when he had been famous among his earliest competitors as a
youth of great promise, he had followed his father to the grave. His
mother had died, years before. These solemn words, which had been read at
his father’s grave, arose in his mind as he went down the dark streets,
among the heavy shadows, with the moon and the clouds sailing on high
above him. “I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that
believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever
liveth and believeth in me, shall never die.”
In a city dominated by the axe, alone at night, with natural sorrow rising
in him for the sixty-three who had been that day put to death, and for
to-morrow’s victims then awaiting their doom in the prisons, and still of
to-morrow’s and to-morrow’s, the chain of association that brought the
words home, like a rusty old ship’s anchor from the deep, might have been
easily found. He did not seek it, but repeated them and went on.
With a solemn interest in the lighted windows where the people were going
to rest, forgetful through a few calm hours of the horrors surrounding
them; in the towers of the churches, where no prayers were said, for the
popular revulsion had even travelled that length of self-destruction from
years of priestly impostors, plunderers, and profligates; in the distant
burial-places, reserved, as they wrote upon the gates, for Eternal Sleep;
in the abounding gaols; and in the streets along which the sixties rolled
to a death which had become so common and material, that no sorrowful
story of a haunting Spirit ever arose among the people out of all the
working of the Guillotine; with a solemn interest in the whole life and
death of the city settling down to its short nightly pause in fury; Sydney
Carton crossed the Seine again for the lighter streets.
Few coaches were abroad, for riders in coaches were liable to be
suspected, and gentility hid its head in red nightcaps, and put on heavy
shoes, and trudged. But, the theatres were all well filled, and the people
poured cheerfully out as he passed, and went chatting home. At one of the
theatre doors, there was a little girl with a mother, looking for a way
across the street through the mud. He carried the child over, and before
the timid arm was loosed from his neck asked her for a kiss.
“I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord: he that believeth in
me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and
believeth in me, shall never die.”
Now, that the streets were quiet, and the night wore on, the words were in
the echoes of his feet, and were in the air. Perfectly calm and steady, he
sometimes repeated them to himself as he walked; but, he heard them
always.
The night wore out, and, as he stood upon the bridge listening to the
water as it splashed the river-walls of the Island of Paris, where the
picturesque confusion of houses and cathedral shone bright in the light of
the moon, the day came coldly, looking like a dead face out of the sky.
Then, the night, with the moon and the stars, turned pale and died, and
for a little while it seemed as if Creation were delivered over to Death’s
dominion.
But, the glorious sun, rising, seemed to strike those words, that burden
of the night, straight and warm to his heart in its long bright rays. And
looking along them, with reverently shaded eyes, a bridge of light
appeared to span the air between him and the sun, while the river sparkled
under it.
The strong tide, so swift, so deep, and certain, was like a congenial
friend, in the morning stillness. He walked by the stream, far from the
houses, and in the light and warmth of the sun fell asleep on the bank.
When he awoke and was afoot again, he lingered there yet a little longer,
watching an eddy that turned and turned purposeless, until the stream
absorbed it, and carried it on to the sea.—“Like me.”
A trading-boat, with a sail of the softened colour of a dead leaf, then
glided into his view, floated by him, and died away. As its silent track
in the water disappeared, the prayer that had broken up out of his heart
for a merciful consideration of all his poor blindnesses and errors, ended
in the words, “I am the resurrection and the life.”
Mr. Lorry was already out when he got back, and it was easy to surmise
where the good old man was gone. Sydney Carton drank nothing but a little
coffee, ate some bread, and, having washed and changed to refresh himself,
went out to the place of trial.
The court was all astir and a-buzz, when the black sheep—whom many
fell away from in dread—pressed him into an obscure corner among the
crowd. Mr. Lorry was there, and Doctor Manette was there. She was there,
sitting beside her father.
When her husband was brought in, she turned a look upon him, so
sustaining, so encouraging, so full of admiring love and pitying
tenderness, yet so courageous for his sake, that it called the healthy
blood into his face, brightened his glance, and animated his heart. If
there had been any eyes to notice the influence of her look, on Sydney
Carton, it would have been seen to be the same influence exactly.
Before that unjust Tribunal, there was little or no order of procedure,
ensuring to any accused person any reasonable hearing. There could have
been no such Revolution, if all laws, forms, and ceremonies, had not first
been so monstrously abused, that the suicidal vengeance of the Revolution
was to scatter them all to the winds.
Every eye was turned to the jury. The same determined patriots and good
republicans as yesterday and the day before, and to-morrow and the day
after. Eager and prominent among them, one man with a craving face, and
his fingers perpetually hovering about his lips, whose appearance gave
great satisfaction to the spectators. A life-thirsting, cannibal-looking,
bloody-minded juryman, the Jacques Three of St. Antoine. The whole jury,
as a jury of dogs empannelled to try the deer.
Every eye then turned to the five judges and the public prosecutor. No
favourable leaning in that quarter to-day. A fell, uncompromising,
murderous business-meaning there. Every eye then sought some other eye in
the crowd, and gleamed at it approvingly; and heads nodded at one another,
before bending forward with a strained attention.
Charles Evrémonde, called Darnay. Released yesterday. Reaccused and
retaken yesterday. Indictment delivered to him last night. Suspected and
Denounced enemy of the Republic, Aristocrat, one of a family of tyrants,
one of a race proscribed, for that they had used their abolished
privileges to the infamous oppression of the people. Charles Evrémonde,
called Darnay, in right of such proscription, absolutely Dead in Law.
To this effect, in as few or fewer words, the Public Prosecutor.
The President asked, was the Accused openly denounced or secretly?
“Openly, President.”
“By whom?”
“Three voices. Ernest Defarge, wine-vendor of St. Antoine.”
“Good.”
“Thérèse Defarge, his wife.”
“Good.”
“Alexandre Manette, physician.”
A great uproar took place in the court, and in the midst of it, Doctor
Manette was seen, pale and trembling, standing where he had been seated.
“President, I indignantly protest to you that this is a forgery and a
fraud. You know the accused to be the husband of my daughter. My daughter,
and those dear to her, are far dearer to me than my life. Who and where is
the false conspirator who says that I denounce the husband of my child!”
“Citizen Manette, be tranquil. To fail in submission to the authority of
the Tribunal would be to put yourself out of Law. As to what is dearer to
you than life, nothing can be so dear to a good citizen as the Republic.”
Loud acclamations hailed this rebuke. The President rang his bell, and
with warmth resumed.
“If the Republic should demand of you the sacrifice of your child herself,
you would have no duty but to sacrifice her. Listen to what is to follow.
In the meanwhile, be silent!”
Frantic acclamations were again raised. Doctor Manette sat down, with his
eyes looking around, and his lips trembling; his daughter drew closer to
him. The craving man on the jury rubbed his hands together, and restored
the usual hand to his mouth.
Defarge was produced, when the court was quiet enough to admit of his
being heard, and rapidly expounded the story of the imprisonment, and of
his having been a mere boy in the Doctor’s service, and of the release,
and of the state of the prisoner when released and delivered to him. This
short examination followed, for the court was quick with its work.
“You did good service at the taking of the Bastille, citizen?”
“I believe so.”
Here, an excited woman screeched from the crowd: “You were one of the best
patriots there. Why not say so? You were a cannonier that day there, and
you were among the first to enter the accursed fortress when it fell.
Patriots, I speak the truth!”
It was The Vengeance who, amidst the warm commendations of the audience,
thus assisted the proceedings. The President rang his bell; but, The
Vengeance, warming with encouragement, shrieked, “I defy that bell!”
wherein she was likewise much commended.
“Inform the Tribunal of what you did that day within the Bastille,
citizen.”
“I knew,” said Defarge, looking down at his wife, who stood at the bottom
of the steps on which he was raised, looking steadily up at him; “I knew
that this prisoner, of whom I speak, had been confined in a cell known as
One Hundred and Five, North Tower. I knew it from himself. He knew himself
by no other name than One Hundred and Five, North Tower, when he made
shoes under my care. As I serve my gun that day, I resolve, when the place
shall fall, to examine that cell. It falls. I mount to the cell, with a
fellow-citizen who is one of the Jury, directed by a gaoler. I examine it,
very closely. In a hole in the chimney, where a stone has been worked out
and replaced, I find a written paper. This is that written paper. I have
made it my business to examine some specimens of the writing of Doctor
Manette. This is the writing of Doctor Manette. I confide this paper, in
the writing of Doctor Manette, to the hands of the President.”
“Let it be read.”
In a dead silence and stillness—the prisoner under trial looking
lovingly at his wife, his wife only looking from him to look with
solicitude at her father, Doctor Manette keeping his eyes fixed on the
reader, Madame Defarge never taking hers from the prisoner, Defarge never
taking his from his feasting wife, and all the other eyes there intent
upon the Doctor, who saw none of them—the paper was read, as
follows.
CHAPTER X.<br />The Substance of the Shadow
I, Alexandre Manette, unfortunate physician, native of Beauvais, and
afterwards resident in Paris, write this melancholy paper in my doleful
cell in the Bastille, during the last month of the year, 1767. I write it
at stolen intervals, under every difficulty. I design to secrete it in the
wall of the chimney, where I have slowly and laboriously made a place of
concealment for it. Some pitying hand may find it there, when I and my
sorrows are dust.
“These words are formed by the rusty iron point with which I write with
difficulty in scrapings of soot and charcoal from the chimney, mixed with
blood, in the last month of the tenth year of my captivity. Hope has quite
departed from my breast. I know from terrible warnings I have noted in
myself that my reason will not long remain unimpaired, but I solemnly
declare that I am at this time in the possession of my right mind—that
my memory is exact and circumstantial—and that I write the truth as
I shall answer for these my last recorded words, whether they be ever read
by men or not, at the Eternal Judgment-seat.
“One cloudy moonlight night, in the third week of December (I think the
twenty-second of the month) in the year 1757, I was walking on a retired
part of the quay by the Seine for the refreshment of the frosty air, at an
hour’s distance from my place of residence in the Street of the School of
Medicine, when a carriage came along behind me, driven very fast. As I
stood aside to let that carriage pass, apprehensive that it might
otherwise run me down, a head was put out at the window, and a voice
called to the driver to stop.
“The carriage stopped as soon as the driver could rein in his horses, and
the same voice called to me by my name. I answered. The carriage was then
so far in advance of me that two gentlemen had time to open the door and
alight before I came up with it.
“I observed that they were both wrapped in cloaks, and appeared to conceal
themselves. As they stood side by side near the carriage door, I also
observed that they both looked of about my own age, or rather younger, and
that they were greatly alike, in stature, manner, voice, and (as far as I
could see) face too.
“‘You are Doctor Manette?’ said one.
“I am.”
“‘Doctor Manette, formerly of Beauvais,’ said the other; ‘the young
physician, originally an expert surgeon, who within the last year or two
has made a rising reputation in Paris?’
“‘Gentlemen,’ I returned, ‘I am that Doctor Manette of whom you speak so
graciously.’
“‘We have been to your residence,’ said the first, ‘and not being so
fortunate as to find you there, and being informed that you were probably
walking in this direction, we followed, in the hope of overtaking you.
Will you please to enter the carriage?’
“The manner of both was imperious, and they both moved, as these words
were spoken, so as to place me between themselves and the carriage door.
They were armed. I was not.
“‘Gentlemen,’ said I, ‘pardon me; but I usually inquire who does me the
honour to seek my assistance, and what is the nature of the case to which
I am summoned.’
“The reply to this was made by him who had spoken second. ‘Doctor, your
clients are people of condition. As to the nature of the case, our
confidence in your skill assures us that you will ascertain it for
yourself better than we can describe it. Enough. Will you please to enter
the carriage?’
“I could do nothing but comply, and I entered it in silence. They both
entered after me—the last springing in, after putting up the steps.
The carriage turned about, and drove on at its former speed.
“I repeat this conversation exactly as it occurred. I have no doubt that
it is, word for word, the same. I describe everything exactly as it took
place, constraining my mind not to wander from the task. Where I make the
broken marks that follow here, I leave off for the time, and put my paper
in its hiding-place.
“The carriage left the streets behind, passed the North Barrier, and
emerged upon the country road. At two-thirds of a league from the Barrier—I
did not estimate the distance at that time, but afterwards when I
traversed it—it struck out of the main avenue, and presently stopped
at a solitary house, We all three alighted, and walked, by a damp soft
footpath in a garden where a neglected fountain had overflowed, to the
door of the house. It was not opened immediately, in answer to the ringing
of the bell, and one of my two conductors struck the man who opened it,
with his heavy riding glove, across the face.
<br />
“There was nothing in this action to attract my particular attention, for
I had seen common people struck more commonly than dogs. But, the other of
the two, being angry likewise, struck the man in like manner with his arm;
the look and bearing of the brothers were then so exactly alike, that I
then first perceived them to be twin brothers.
<br />
“From the time of our alighting at the outer gate (which we found locked,
and which one of the brothers had opened to admit us, and had relocked), I
had heard cries proceeding from an upper chamber. I was conducted to this
chamber straight, the cries growing louder as we ascended the stairs, and
I found a patient in a high fever of the brain, lying on a bed.
<br />
“The patient was a woman of great beauty, and young; assuredly not much
past twenty. Her hair was torn and ragged, and her arms were bound to her
sides with sashes and handkerchiefs. I noticed that these bonds were all
portions of a gentleman’s dress. On one of them, which was a fringed scarf
for a dress of ceremony, I saw the armorial bearings of a Noble, and the
letter E.
<br />
“I saw this, within the first minute of my contemplation of the patient;
for, in her restless strivings she had turned over on her face on the edge
of the bed, had drawn the end of the scarf into her mouth, and was in
danger of suffocation. My first act was to put out my hand to relieve her
breathing; and in moving the scarf aside, the embroidery in the corner
caught my sight.
<br />
“I turned her gently over, placed my hands upon her breast to calm her and
keep her down, and looked into her face. Her eyes were dilated and wild,
and she constantly uttered piercing shrieks, and repeated the words, ‘My
husband, my father, and my brother!’ and then counted up to twelve, and
said, ‘Hush!’ For an instant, and no more, she would pause to listen, and
then the piercing shrieks would begin again, and she would repeat the cry,
‘My husband, my father, and my brother!’ and would count up to twelve, and
say, ‘Hush!’ There was no variation in the order, or the manner. There was
no cessation, but the regular moment’s pause, in the utterance of these
sounds.
<br />
“‘How long,’ I asked, ‘has this lasted?’
<br />
“To distinguish the brothers, I will call them the elder and the younger;
by the elder, I mean him who exercised the most authority. It was the
elder who replied, ‘Since about this hour last night.’
<br />
“‘She has a husband, a father, and a brother?’
<br />
“‘A brother.’
<br />
“‘I do not address her brother?’
<br />
“He answered with great contempt, ‘No.’
<br />
“‘She has some recent association with the number twelve?’
<br />
“The younger brother impatiently rejoined, ‘With twelve o’clock?’
<br />
“‘See, gentlemen,’ said I, still keeping my hands upon her breast, ‘how
useless I am, as you have brought me! If I had known what I was coming to
see, I could have come provided. As it is, time must be lost. There are no
medicines to be obtained in this lonely place.’
<br />
“The elder brother looked to the younger, who said haughtily, ‘There is a
case of medicines here;’ and brought it from a closet, and put it on the
table.
“I opened some of the bottles, smelt them, and put the stoppers to my
lips. If I had wanted to use anything save narcotic medicines that were
poisons in themselves, I would not have administered any of those.
<br />
“‘Do you doubt them?’ asked the younger brother.
<br />
“‘You see, monsieur, I am going to use them,’ I replied, and said no more.
<br />
“I made the patient swallow, with great difficulty, and after many
efforts, the dose that I desired to give. As I intended to repeat it after
a while, and as it was necessary to watch its influence, I then sat down
by the side of the bed. There was a timid and suppressed woman in
attendance (wife of the man down-stairs), who had retreated into a corner.
The house was damp and decayed, indifferently furnished—evidently,
recently occupied and temporarily used. Some thick old hangings had been
nailed up before the windows, to deaden the sound of the shrieks. They
continued to be uttered in their regular succession, with the cry, ‘My
husband, my father, and my brother!’ the counting up to twelve, and
‘Hush!’ The frenzy was so violent, that I had not unfastened the bandages
restraining the arms; but, I had looked to them, to see that they were not
painful. The only spark of encouragement in the case, was, that my hand
upon the sufferer’s breast had this much soothing influence, that for
minutes at a time it tranquillised the figure. It had no effect upon the
cries; no pendulum could be more regular.
<br />
“For the reason that my hand had this effect (I assume), I had sat by the
side of the bed for half an hour, with the two brothers looking on, before
the elder said:
<br />
“‘There is another patient.’
<br />
“I was startled, and asked, ‘Is it a pressing case?’
<br />
“‘You had better see,’ he carelessly answered; and took up a light.
“The other patient lay in a back room across a second staircase, which was
a species of loft over a stable. There was a low plastered ceiling to a
part of it; the rest was open, to the ridge of the tiled roof, and there
were beams across. Hay and straw were stored in that portion of the place,
fagots for firing, and a heap of apples in sand. I had to pass through
that part, to get at the other. My memory is circumstantial and unshaken.
I try it with these details, and I see them all, in this my cell in the
Bastille, near the close of the tenth year of my captivity, as I saw them
all that night.
<br />
“On some hay on the ground, with a cushion thrown under his head, lay a
handsome peasant boy—a boy of not more than seventeen at the most.
He lay on his back, with his teeth set, his right hand clenched on his
breast, and his glaring eyes looking straight upward. I could not see
where his wound was, as I kneeled on one knee over him; but, I could see
that he was dying of a wound from a sharp point.
<br />
“‘I am a doctor, my poor fellow,’ said I. ‘Let me examine it.’
<br />
“‘I do not want it examined,’ he answered; ‘let it be.’
<br />
“It was under his hand, and I soothed him to let me move his hand away.
The wound was a sword-thrust, received from twenty to twenty-four hours
before, but no skill could have saved him if it had been looked to without
delay. He was then dying fast. As I turned my eyes to the elder brother, I
saw him looking down at this handsome boy whose life was ebbing out, as if
he were a wounded bird, or hare, or rabbit; not at all as if he were a
fellow-creature.
<br />
“‘How has this been done, monsieur?’ said I.
<br />
“‘A crazed young common dog! A serf! Forced my brother to draw upon him,
and has fallen by my brother’s sword—like a gentleman.’
<br />
“There was no touch of pity, sorrow, or kindred humanity, in this answer.
The speaker seemed to acknowledge that it was inconvenient to have that
different order of creature dying there, and that it would have been
better if he had died in the usual obscure routine of his vermin kind. He
was quite incapable of any compassionate feeling about the boy, or about
his fate.
<br />
“The boy’s eyes had slowly moved to him as he had spoken, and they now
slowly moved to me.
<br />
“‘Doctor, they are very proud, these Nobles; but we common dogs are proud
too, sometimes. They plunder us, outrage us, beat us, kill us; but we have
a little pride left, sometimes. She—have you seen her, Doctor?’
<br />
“The shrieks and the cries were audible there, though subdued by the
distance. He referred to them, as if she were lying in our presence.
<br />
“I said, ‘I have seen her.’
<br />
“‘She is my sister, Doctor. They have had their shameful rights, these
Nobles, in the modesty and virtue of our sisters, many years, but we have
had good girls among us. I know it, and have heard my father say so. She
was a good girl. She was betrothed to a good young man, too: a tenant of
his. We were all tenants of his—that man’s who stands there. The
other is his brother, the worst of a bad race.’
<br />
“It was with the greatest difficulty that the boy gathered bodily force to
speak; but, his spirit spoke with a dreadful emphasis.
<br />
“‘We were so robbed by that man who stands there, as all we common dogs
are by those superior Beings—taxed by him without mercy, obliged to
work for him without pay, obliged to grind our corn at his mill, obliged
to feed scores of his tame birds on our wretched crops, and forbidden for
our lives to keep a single tame bird of our own, pillaged and plundered to
that degree that when we chanced to have a bit of meat, we ate it in fear,
with the door barred and the shutters closed, that his people should not
see it and take it from us—I say, we were so robbed, and hunted, and
were made so poor, that our father told us it was a dreadful thing to
bring a child into the world, and that what we should most pray for, was,
that our women might be barren and our miserable race die out!’
<br />
“I had never before seen the sense of being oppressed, bursting forth like
a fire. I had supposed that it must be latent in the people somewhere;
but, I had never seen it break out, until I saw it in the dying boy.
<br />
“‘Nevertheless, Doctor, my sister married. He was ailing at that time,
poor fellow, and she married her lover, that she might tend and comfort
him in our cottage—our dog-hut, as that man would call it. She had
not been married many weeks, when that man’s brother saw her and admired
her, and asked that man to lend her to him—for what are husbands
among us! He was willing enough, but my sister was good and virtuous, and
hated his brother with a hatred as strong as mine. What did the two then,
to persuade her husband to use his influence with her, to make her
willing?’
<br />
“The boy’s eyes, which had been fixed on mine, slowly turned to the
looker-on, and I saw in the two faces that all he said was true. The two
opposing kinds of pride confronting one another, I can see, even in this
Bastille; the gentleman’s, all negligent indifference; the peasant’s, all
trodden-down sentiment, and passionate revenge.
<br />
“‘You know, Doctor, that it is among the Rights of these Nobles to harness
us common dogs to carts, and drive us. They so harnessed him and drove
him. You know that it is among their Rights to keep us in their grounds
all night, quieting the frogs, in order that their noble sleep may not be
disturbed. They kept him out in the unwholesome mists at night, and
ordered him back into his harness in the day. But he was not persuaded.
No! Taken out of harness one day at noon, to feed—if he could find
food—he sobbed twelve times, once for every stroke of the bell, and
died on her bosom.’
<br />
“Nothing human could have held life in the boy but his determination to
tell all his wrong. He forced back the gathering shadows of death, as he
forced his clenched right hand to remain clenched, and to cover his wound.
<br />
“‘Then, with that man’s permission and even with his aid, his brother took
her away; in spite of what I know she must have told his brother—and
what that is, will not be long unknown to you, Doctor, if it is now—his
brother took her away—for his pleasure and diversion, for a little
while. I saw her pass me on the road. When I took the tidings home, our
father’s heart burst; he never spoke one of the words that filled it. I
took my young sister (for I have another) to a place beyond the reach of
this man, and where, at least, she will never be vassal. Then,
I tracked the brother here, and last night climbed in—a common dog,
but sword in hand.—Where is the loft window? It was somewhere here?’
<br />
“The room was darkening to his sight; the world was narrowing around him.
I glanced about me, and saw that the hay and straw were trampled over the
floor, as if there had been a struggle.
<br />
“‘She heard me, and ran in. I told her not to come near us till he was
dead. He came in and first tossed me some pieces of money; then struck at
me with a whip. But I, though a common dog, so struck at him as to make
him draw. Let him break into as many pieces as he will, the sword that he
stained with my common blood; he drew to defend himself—thrust at me
with all his skill for his life.’
<br />
“My glance had fallen, but a few moments before, on the fragments of a
broken sword, lying among the hay. That weapon was a gentleman’s. In
another place, lay an old sword that seemed to have been a soldier’s.
<br />
“‘Now, lift me up, Doctor; lift me up. Where is he?’
<br />
“‘He is not here,’ I said, supporting the boy, and thinking that he
referred to the brother.
<br />
“‘He! Proud as these nobles are, he is afraid to see me. Where is the man
who was here? Turn my face to him.’
<br />
“I did so, raising the boy’s head against my knee. But, invested for the
moment with extraordinary power, he raised himself completely: obliging me
to rise too, or I could not have still supported him.
<br />
“‘Marquis,’ said the boy, turned to him with his eyes opened wide, and his
right hand raised, ‘in the days when all these things are to be answered
for, I summon you and yours, to the last of your bad race, to answer for
them. I mark this cross of blood upon you, as a sign that I do it. In the
days when all these things are to be answered for, I summon your brother,
the worst of the bad race, to answer for them separately. I mark this
cross of blood upon him, as a sign that I do it.’
<br />
“Twice, he put his hand to the wound in his breast, and with his
forefinger drew a cross in the air. He stood for an instant with the
finger yet raised, and as it dropped, he dropped with it, and I laid him
down dead.
“When I returned to the bedside of the young woman, I found her raving in
precisely the same order of continuity. I knew that this might last for
many hours, and that it would probably end in the silence of the grave.
<br />
“I repeated the medicines I had given her, and I sat at the side of the
bed until the night was far advanced. She never abated the piercing
quality of her shrieks, never stumbled in the distinctness or the order of
her words. They were always ‘My husband, my father, and my brother! One,
two, three, four, five, six, seven, eight, nine, ten, eleven, twelve.
Hush!’
<br />
“This lasted twenty-six hours from the time when I first saw her. I had
come and gone twice, and was again sitting by her, when she began to
falter. I did what little could be done to assist that opportunity, and
by-and-bye she sank into a lethargy, and lay like the dead.
<br />
“It was as if the wind and rain had lulled at last, after a long and
fearful storm. I released her arms, and called the woman to assist me to
compose her figure and the dress she had torn. It was then that I knew her
condition to be that of one in whom the first expectations of being a
mother have arisen; and it was then that I lost the little hope I had had
of her.
<br />
“‘Is she dead?’ asked the Marquis, whom I will still describe as the elder
brother, coming booted into the room from his horse.
<br />
“‘Not dead,’ said I; ‘but like to die.’
<br />
“‘What strength there is in these common bodies!’ he said, looking down at
her with some curiosity.
<br />
“‘There is prodigious strength,’ I answered him, ‘in sorrow and despair.’
<br />
“He first laughed at my words, and then frowned at them. He moved a chair
with his foot near to mine, ordered the woman away, and said in a subdued
voice,
<br />
“‘Doctor, finding my brother in this difficulty with these hinds, I
recommended that your aid should be invited. Your reputation is high, and,
as a young man with your fortune to make, you are probably mindful of your
interest. The things that you see here, are things to be seen, and not
spoken of.’
<br />
“I listened to the patient’s breathing, and avoided answering.
<br />
“‘Do you honour me with your attention, Doctor?’
<br />
“‘Monsieur,’ said I, ‘in my profession, the communications of patients are
always received in confidence.’ I was guarded in my answer, for I was
troubled in my mind with what I had heard and seen.
<br />
“Her breathing was so difficult to trace, that I carefully tried the pulse
and the heart. There was life, and no more. Looking round as I resumed my
seat, I found both the brothers intent upon me.
“I write with so much difficulty, the cold is so severe, I am so fearful
of being detected and consigned to an underground cell and total darkness,
that I must abridge this narrative. There is no confusion or failure in my
memory; it can recall, and could detail, every word that was ever spoken
between me and those brothers.
<br />
“She lingered for a week. Towards the last, I could understand some few
syllables that she said to me, by placing my ear close to her lips. She
asked me where she was, and I told her; who I was, and I told her. It was
in vain that I asked her for her family name. She faintly shook her head
upon the pillow, and kept her secret, as the boy had done.
<br />
“I had no opportunity of asking her any question, until I had told the
brothers she was sinking fast, and could not live another day. Until then,
though no one was ever presented to her consciousness save the woman and
myself, one or other of them had always jealously sat behind the curtain
at the head of the bed when I was there. But when it came to that, they
seemed careless what communication I might hold with her; as if—the
thought passed through my mind—I were dying too.
<br />
“I always observed that their pride bitterly resented the younger
brother’s (as I call him) having crossed swords with a peasant, and that
peasant a boy. The only consideration that appeared to affect the mind of
either of them was the consideration that this was highly degrading to the
family, and was ridiculous. As often as I caught the younger brother’s
eyes, their expression reminded me that he disliked me deeply, for knowing
what I knew from the boy. He was smoother and more polite to me than the
elder; but I saw this. I also saw that I was an incumbrance in the mind of
the elder, too.
<br />
“My patient died, two hours before midnight—at a time, by my watch,
answering almost to the minute when I had first seen her. I was alone with
her, when her forlorn young head drooped gently on one side, and all her
earthly wrongs and sorrows ended.
<br />
“The brothers were waiting in a room down-stairs, impatient to ride away.
I had heard them, alone at the bedside, striking their boots with their
riding-whips, and loitering up and down.
<br />
“‘At last she is dead?’ said the elder, when I went in.
<br />
“‘She is dead,’ said I.
<br />
“‘I congratulate you, my brother,’ were his words as he turned round.
<br />
“He had before offered me money, which I had postponed taking. He now gave
me a rouleau of gold. I took it from his hand, but laid it on the table. I
had considered the question, and had resolved to accept nothing.
<br />
“‘Pray excuse me,’ said I. ‘Under the circumstances, no.’
<br />
“They exchanged looks, but bent their heads to me as I bent mine to them,
and we parted without another word on either side.
“I am weary, weary, weary—worn down by misery. I cannot read what I
have written with this gaunt hand.
<br />
“Early in the morning, the rouleau of gold was left at my door in a little
box, with my name on the outside. From the first, I had anxiously
considered what I ought to do. I decided, that day, to write privately to
the Minister, stating the nature of the two cases to which I had been
summoned, and the place to which I had gone: in effect, stating all the
circumstances. I knew what Court influence was, and what the immunities of
the Nobles were, and I expected that the matter would never be heard of;
but, I wished to relieve my own mind. I had kept the matter a profound
secret, even from my wife; and this, too, I resolved to state in my
letter. I had no apprehension whatever of my real danger; but I was
conscious that there might be danger for others, if others were
compromised by possessing the knowledge that I possessed.
<br />
“I was much engaged that day, and could not complete my letter that night.
I rose long before my usual time next morning to finish it. It was the
last day of the year. The letter was lying before me just completed, when
I was told that a lady waited, who wished to see me.
“I am growing more and more unequal to the task I have set myself. It is
so cold, so dark, my senses are so benumbed, and the gloom upon me is so
dreadful.
<br />
“The lady was young, engaging, and handsome, but not marked for long life.
She was in great agitation. She presented herself to me as the wife of the
Marquis St. Evrémonde. I connected the title by which the boy had
addressed the elder brother, with the initial letter embroidered on the
scarf, and had no difficulty in arriving at the conclusion that I had seen
that nobleman very lately.
<br />
“My memory is still accurate, but I cannot write the words of our
conversation. I suspect that I am watched more closely than I was, and I
know not at what times I may be watched. She had in part suspected, and in
part discovered, the main facts of the cruel story, of her husband’s share
in it, and my being resorted to. She did not know that the girl was dead.
Her hope had been, she said in great distress, to show her, in secret, a
woman’s sympathy. Her hope had been to avert the wrath of Heaven from a
House that had long been hateful to the suffering many.
<br />
“She had reasons for believing that there was a young sister living, and
her greatest desire was, to help that sister. I could tell her nothing but
that there was such a sister; beyond that, I knew nothing. Her inducement
to come to me, relying on my confidence, had been the hope that I could
tell her the name and place of abode. Whereas, to this wretched hour I am
ignorant of both.
“These scraps of paper fail me. One was taken from me, with a warning,
yesterday. I must finish my record to-day.
<br />
“She was a good, compassionate lady, and not happy in her marriage. How
could she be! The brother distrusted and disliked her, and his influence
was all opposed to her; she stood in dread of him, and in dread of her
husband too. When I handed her down to the door, there was a child, a
pretty boy from two to three years old, in her carriage.
<br />
“‘For his sake, Doctor,’ she said, pointing to him in tears, ‘I would do
all I can to make what poor amends I can. He will never prosper in his
inheritance otherwise. I have a presentiment that if no other innocent
atonement is made for this, it will one day be required of him. What I
have left to call my own—it is little beyond the worth of a few
jewels—I will make it the first charge of his life to bestow, with
the compassion and lamenting of his dead mother, on this injured family,
if the sister can be discovered.’
<br />
“She kissed the boy, and said, caressing him, ‘It is for thine own dear
sake. Thou wilt be faithful, little Charles?’ The child answered her
bravely, ‘Yes!’ I kissed her hand, and she took him in her arms, and went
away caressing him. I never saw her more.
<br />
“As she had mentioned her husband’s name in the faith that I knew it, I
added no mention of it to my letter. I sealed my letter, and, not trusting
it out of my own hands, delivered it myself that day.
<br />
“That night, the last night of the year, towards nine o’clock, a man in a
black dress rang at my gate, demanded to see me, and softly followed my
servant, Ernest Defarge, a youth, up-stairs. When my servant came into the
room where I sat with my wife—O my wife, beloved of my heart! My
fair young English wife!—we saw the man, who was supposed to be at
the gate, standing silent behind him.
<br />
“An urgent case in the Rue St. Honore, he said. It would not detain me, he
had a coach in waiting.
<br />
“It brought me here, it brought me to my grave. When I was clear of the
house, a black muffler was drawn tightly over my mouth from behind, and my
arms were pinioned. The two brothers crossed the road from a dark corner,
and identified me with a single gesture. The Marquis took from his pocket
the letter I had written, showed it me, burnt it in the light of a lantern
that was held, and extinguished the ashes with his foot. Not a word was
spoken. I was brought here, I was brought to my living grave.
<br />
“If it had pleased to put it in the hard heart of either of the
brothers, in all these frightful years, to grant me any tidings of my
dearest wife—so much as to let me know by a word whether alive or
dead—I might have thought that He had not quite abandoned them. But,
now I believe that the mark of the red cross is fatal to them, and that
they have no part in His mercies. And them and their descendants, to the
last of their race, I, Alexandre Manette, unhappy prisoner, do this last
night of the year 1767, in my unbearable agony, denounce to the times when
all these things shall be answered for. I denounce them to Heaven and to
earth.”
<br />
A terrible sound arose when the reading of this document was done. A sound
of craving and eagerness that had nothing articulate in it but blood. The
narrative called up the most revengeful passions of the time, and there
was not a head in the nation but must have dropped before it.
<br />
Little need, in presence of that tribunal and that auditory, to show how
the Defarges had not made the paper public, with the other captured
Bastille memorials borne in procession, and had kept it, biding their
time. Little need to show that this detested family name had long been
anathematised by Saint Antoine, and was wrought into the fatal register.
The man never trod ground whose virtues and services would have sustained
him in that place that day, against such denunciation.
<br />
And all the worse for the doomed man, that the denouncer was a well-known
citizen, his own attached friend, the father of his wife. One of the
frenzied aspirations of the populace was, for imitations of the
questionable public virtues of antiquity, and for sacrifices and
self-immolations on the people’s altar. Therefore when the President said
(else had his own head quivered on his shoulders), that the good physician
of the Republic would deserve better still of the Republic by rooting out
an obnoxious family of Aristocrats, and would doubtless feel a sacred glow
and joy in making his daughter a widow and her child an orphan, there was
wild excitement, patriotic fervour, not a touch of human sympathy.
<br />
“Much influence around him, has that Doctor?” murmured Madame Defarge,
smiling to The Vengeance. “Save him now, my Doctor, save him!”
<br />
At every juryman’s vote, there was a roar. Another and another. Roar and
roar.
<br />
Unanimously voted. At heart and by descent an Aristocrat, an enemy of the
Republic, a notorious oppressor of the People. Back to the Conciergerie,
and Death within four-and-twenty hours!
CHAPTER XI.<br />Dusk
The wretched wife of the innocent man thus doomed to die, fell under the
sentence, as if she had been mortally stricken. But, she uttered no sound;
and so strong was the voice within her, representing that it was she of
all the world who must uphold him in his misery and not augment it, that
it quickly raised her, even from that shock.
The Judges having to take part in a public demonstration out of doors, the
Tribunal adjourned. The quick noise and movement of the court’s emptying
itself by many passages had not ceased, when Lucie stood stretching out
her arms towards her husband, with nothing in her face but love and
consolation.
“If I might touch him! If I might embrace him once! O, good citizens, if
you would have so much compassion for us!”
There was but a gaoler left, along with two of the four men who had taken
him last night, and Barsad. The people had all poured out to the show in
the streets. Barsad proposed to the rest, “Let her embrace him then; it is
but a moment.” It was silently acquiesced in, and they passed her over the
seats in the hall to a raised place, where he, by leaning over the dock,
could fold her in his arms.
“Farewell, dear darling of my soul. My parting blessing on my love. We
shall meet again, where the weary are at rest!”
They were her husband’s words, as he held her to his bosom.
“I can bear it, dear Charles. I am supported from above: don’t suffer for
me. A parting blessing for our child.”
“I send it to her by you. I kiss her by you. I say farewell to her by
you.”
“My husband. No! A moment!” He was tearing himself apart from her. “We
shall not be separated long. I feel that this will break my heart
by-and-bye; but I will do my duty while I can, and when I leave her, God
will raise up friends for her, as He did for me.”
Her father had followed her, and would have fallen on his knees to both of
them, but that Darnay put out a hand and seized him, crying:
“No, no! What have you done, what have you done, that you should kneel to
us! We know now, what a struggle you made of old. We know, now what you
underwent when you suspected my descent, and when you knew it. We know
now, the natural antipathy you strove against, and conquered, for her dear
sake. We thank you with all our hearts, and all our love and duty. Heaven
be with you!”
Her father’s only answer was to draw his hands through his white hair, and
wring them with a shriek of anguish.
“It could not be otherwise,” said the prisoner. “All things have worked
together as they have fallen out. It was the always-vain endeavour to
discharge my poor mother’s trust that first brought my fatal presence near
you. Good could never come of such evil, a happier end was not in nature
to so unhappy a beginning. Be comforted, and forgive me. Heaven bless
you!”
As he was drawn away, his wife released him, and stood looking after him
with her hands touching one another in the attitude of prayer, and with a
radiant look upon her face, in which there was even a comforting smile. As
he went out at the prisoners’ door, she turned, laid her head lovingly on
her father’s breast, tried to speak to him, and fell at his feet.
Then, issuing from the obscure corner from which he had never moved,
Sydney Carton came and took her up. Only her father and Mr. Lorry were
with her. His arm trembled as it raised her, and supported her head. Yet,
there was an air about him that was not all of pity—that had a flush
of pride in it.
<br />
“Shall I take her to a coach? I shall never feel her weight.”
<br />
He carried her lightly to the door, and laid her tenderly down in a coach.
Her father and their old friend got into it, and he took his seat beside
the driver.
<br />
When they arrived at the gateway where he had paused in the dark not many
hours before, to picture to himself on which of the rough stones of the
street her feet had trodden, he lifted her again, and carried her up the
staircase to their rooms. There, he laid her down on a couch, where her
child and Miss Pross wept over her.
<br />
“Don’t recall her to herself,” he said, softly, to the latter, “she is
better so. Don’t revive her to consciousness, while she only faints.”
<br />
“Oh, Carton, Carton, dear Carton!” cried little Lucie, springing up and
throwing her arms passionately round him, in a burst of grief. “Now that
you have come, I think you will do something to help mamma, something to
save papa! O, look at her, dear Carton! Can you, of all the people who
love her, bear to see her so?”
<br />
He bent over the child, and laid her blooming cheek against his face. He
put her gently from him, and looked at her unconscious mother.
<br />
“Before I go,” he said, and paused—“I may kiss her?”
<br />
It was remembered afterwards that when he bent down and touched her face
with his lips, he murmured some words. The child, who was nearest to him,
told them afterwards, and told her grandchildren when she was a handsome
old lady, that she heard him say, “A life you love.”
<br />
When he had gone out into the next room, he turned suddenly on Mr. Lorry
and her father, who were following, and said to the latter:
<br />
“You had great influence but yesterday, Doctor Manette; let it at least be
tried. These judges, and all the men in power, are very friendly to you,
and very recognisant of your services; are they not?”
<br />
“Nothing connected with Charles was concealed from me. I had the strongest
assurances that I should save him; and I did.” He returned the answer in
great trouble, and very slowly.
<br />
“Try them again. The hours between this and to-morrow afternoon are few
and short, but try.”
<br />
“I intend to try. I will not rest a moment.”
<br />
“That’s well. I have known such energy as yours do great things before now—though
never,” he added, with a smile and a sigh together, “such great things as
this. But try! Of little worth as life is when we misuse it, it is worth
that effort. It would cost nothing to lay down if it were not.”
<br />
“I will go,” said Doctor Manette, “to the Prosecutor and the President
straight, and I will go to others whom it is better not to name. I will
write too, and—But stay! There is a Celebration in the streets, and
no one will be accessible until dark.”
<br />
“That’s true. Well! It is a forlorn hope at the best, and not much the
forlorner for being delayed till dark. I should like to know how you
speed; though, mind! I expect nothing! When are you likely to have seen
these dread powers, Doctor Manette?”
<br />
“Immediately after dark, I should hope. Within an hour or two from this.”
<br />
“It will be dark soon after four. Let us stretch the hour or two. If I go
to Mr. Lorry’s at nine, shall I hear what you have done, either from our
friend or from yourself?”
<br />
“Yes.”
<br />
“May you prosper!”
<br />
Mr. Lorry followed Sydney to the outer door, and, touching him on the
shoulder as he was going away, caused him to turn.
<br />
“I have no hope,” said Mr. Lorry, in a low and sorrowful whisper.
<br />
“Nor have I.”
<br />
“If any one of these men, or all of these men, were disposed to spare him—which
is a large supposition; for what is his life, or any man’s to them!—I
doubt if they durst spare him after the demonstration in the court.”
<br />
“And so do I. I heard the fall of the axe in that sound.”
<br />
Mr. Lorry leaned his arm upon the door-post, and bowed his face upon it.
<br />
“Don’t despond,” said Carton, very gently; “don’t grieve. I encouraged
Doctor Manette in this idea, because I felt that it might one day be
consolatory to her. Otherwise, she might think ‘his life was wantonly
thrown away or wasted,’ and that might trouble her.”
<br />
“Yes, yes, yes,” returned Mr. Lorry, drying his eyes, “you are right. But
he will perish; there is no real hope.”
<br />
“Yes. He will perish: there is no real hope,” echoed Carton.
<br />
And walked with a settled step, down-stairs.
CHAPTER XII.<br />Darkness
Sydney Carton paused in the street, not quite decided where to go. “At
Tellson’s banking-house at nine,” he said, with a musing face. “Shall I do
well, in the mean time, to show myself? I think so. It is best that these
people should know there is such a man as I here; it is a sound
precaution, and may be a necessary preparation. But care, care, care! Let
me think it out!”
Checking his steps which had begun to tend towards an object, he took a
turn or two in the already darkening street, and traced the thought in his
mind to its possible consequences. His first impression was confirmed. “It
is best,” he said, finally resolved, “that these people should know there
is such a man as I here.” And he turned his face towards Saint Antoine.
Defarge had described himself, that day, as the keeper of a wine-shop in
the Saint Antoine suburb. It was not difficult for one who knew the city
well, to find his house without asking any question. Having ascertained
its situation, Carton came out of those closer streets again, and dined at
a place of refreshment and fell sound asleep after dinner. For the first
time in many years, he had no strong drink. Since last night he had taken
nothing but a little light thin wine, and last night he had dropped the
brandy slowly down on Mr. Lorry’s hearth like a man who had done with it.
It was as late as seven o’clock when he awoke refreshed, and went out into
the streets again. As he passed along towards Saint Antoine, he stopped at
a shop-window where there was a mirror, and slightly altered the
disordered arrangement of his loose cravat, and his coat-collar, and his
wild hair. This done, he went on direct to Defarge’s, and went in.
There happened to be no customer in the shop but Jacques Three, of the
restless fingers and the croaking voice. This man, whom he had seen upon
the Jury, stood drinking at the little counter, in conversation with the
Defarges, man and wife. The Vengeance assisted in the conversation, like a
regular member of the establishment.
As Carton walked in, took his seat and asked (in very indifferent French)
for a small measure of wine, Madame Defarge cast a careless glance at him,
and then a keener, and then a keener, and then advanced to him herself,
and asked him what it was he had ordered.
He repeated what he had already said.
“English?” asked Madame Defarge, inquisitively raising her dark eyebrows.
After looking at her, as if the sound of even a single French word were
slow to express itself to him, he answered, in his former strong foreign
accent. “Yes, madame, yes. I am English!”
Madame Defarge returned to her counter to get the wine, and, as he took up
a Jacobin journal and feigned to pore over it puzzling out its meaning, he
heard her say, “I swear to you, like Evrémonde!”
Defarge brought him the wine, and gave him Good Evening.
“How?”
“Good evening.”
“Oh! Good evening, citizen,” filling his glass. “Ah! and good wine. I
drink to the Republic.”
Defarge went back to the counter, and said, “Certainly, a little like.”
Madame sternly retorted, “I tell you a good deal like.” Jacques Three
pacifically remarked, “He is so much in your mind, see you, madame.” The
amiable Vengeance added, with a laugh, “Yes, my faith! And you are looking
forward with so much pleasure to seeing him once more to-morrow!”
Carton followed the lines and words of his paper, with a slow forefinger,
and with a studious and absorbed face. They were all leaning their arms on
the counter close together, speaking low. After a silence of a few
moments, during which they all looked towards him without disturbing his
outward attention from the Jacobin editor, they resumed their
conversation.
“It is true what madame says,” observed Jacques Three. “Why stop? There is
great force in that. Why stop?”
“Well, well,” reasoned Defarge, “but one must stop somewhere. After all,
the question is still where?”
“At extermination,” said madame.
“Magnificent!” croaked Jacques Three. The Vengeance, also, highly
approved.
“Extermination is good doctrine, my wife,” said Defarge, rather troubled;
“in general, I say nothing against it. But this Doctor has suffered much;
you have seen him to-day; you have observed his face when the paper was
read.”
“I have observed his face!” repeated madame, contemptuously and angrily.
“Yes. I have observed his face. I have observed his face to be not the
face of a true friend of the Republic. Let him take care of his face!”
“And you have observed, my wife,” said Defarge, in a deprecatory manner,
“the anguish of his daughter, which must be a dreadful anguish to him!”
“I have observed his daughter,” repeated madame; “yes, I have observed his
daughter, more times than one. I have observed her to-day, and I have
observed her other days. I have observed her in the court, and I have
observed her in the street by the prison. Let me but lift my finger—!”
She seemed to raise it (the listener’s eyes were always on his paper), and
to let it fall with a rattle on the ledge before her, as if the axe had
dropped.
“The citizeness is superb!” croaked the Juryman.
“She is an Angel!” said The Vengeance, and embraced her.
“As to thee,” pursued madame, implacably, addressing her husband, “if it
depended on thee—which, happily, it does not—thou wouldst
rescue this man even now.”
“No!” protested Defarge. “Not if to lift this glass would do it! But I
would leave the matter there. I say, stop there.”
“See you then, Jacques,” said Madame Defarge, wrathfully; “and see you,
too, my little Vengeance; see you both! Listen! For other crimes as
tyrants and oppressors, I have this race a long time on my register,
doomed to destruction and extermination. Ask my husband, is that so.”
“It is so,” assented Defarge, without being asked.
“In the beginning of the great days, when the Bastille falls, he finds
this paper of to-day, and he brings it home, and in the middle of the
night when this place is clear and shut, we read it, here on this spot, by
the light of this lamp. Ask him, is that so.”
“It is so,” assented Defarge.
“That night, I tell him, when the paper is read through, and the lamp is
burnt out, and the day is gleaming in above those shutters and between
those iron bars, that I have now a secret to communicate. Ask him, is that
so.”
“It is so,” assented Defarge again.
“I communicate to him that secret. I smite this bosom with these two hands
as I smite it now, and I tell him, ‘Defarge, I was brought up among the
fishermen of the sea-shore, and that peasant family so injured by the two
Evrémonde brothers, as that Bastille paper describes, is my family.
Defarge, that sister of the mortally wounded boy upon the ground was my
sister, that husband was my sister’s husband, that unborn child was their
child, that brother was my brother, that father was my father, those dead
are my dead, and that summons to answer for those things descends to me!’
Ask him, is that so.”
“It is so,” assented Defarge once more.
“Then tell Wind and Fire where to stop,” returned madame; “but don’t tell
me.”
Both her hearers derived a horrible enjoyment from the deadly nature of
her wrath—the listener could feel how white she was, without seeing
her—and both highly commended it. Defarge, a weak minority,
interposed a few words for the memory of the compassionate wife of the
Marquis; but only elicited from his own wife a repetition of her last
reply. “Tell the Wind and the Fire where to stop; not me!”
Customers entered, and the group was broken up. The English customer paid
for what he had had, perplexedly counted his change, and asked, as a
stranger, to be directed towards the National Palace. Madame Defarge took
him to the door, and put her arm on his, in pointing out the road. The
English customer was not without his reflections then, that it might be a
good deed to seize that arm, lift it, and strike under it sharp and deep.
But, he went his way, and was soon swallowed up in the shadow of the
prison wall. At the appointed hour, he emerged from it to present himself
in Mr. Lorry’s room again, where he found the old gentleman walking to and
fro in restless anxiety. He said he had been with Lucie until just now,
and had only left her for a few minutes, to come and keep his appointment.
Her father had not been seen, since he quitted the banking-house towards
four o’clock. She had some faint hopes that his mediation might save
Charles, but they were very slight. He had been more than five hours gone:
where could he be?
Mr. Lorry waited until ten; but, Doctor Manette not returning, and he
being unwilling to leave Lucie any longer, it was arranged that he should
go back to her, and come to the banking-house again at midnight. In the
meanwhile, Carton would wait alone by the fire for the Doctor.
He waited and waited, and the clock struck twelve; but Doctor Manette did
not come back. Mr. Lorry returned, and found no tidings of him, and
brought none. Where could he be?
They were discussing this question, and were almost building up some weak
structure of hope on his prolonged absence, when they heard him on the
stairs. The instant he entered the room, it was plain that all was lost.
Whether he had really been to any one, or whether he had been all that
time traversing the streets, was never known. As he stood staring at them,
they asked him no question, for his face told them everything.
“I cannot find it,” said he, “and I must have it. Where is it?”
His head and throat were bare, and, as he spoke with a helpless look
straying all around, he took his coat off, and let it drop on the floor.
“Where is my bench? I have been looking everywhere for my bench, and I
can’t find it. What have they done with my work? Time presses: I must
finish those shoes.”
They looked at one another, and their hearts died within them.
“Come, come!” said he, in a whimpering miserable way; “let me get to work.
Give me my work.”
Receiving no answer, he tore his hair, and beat his feet upon the ground,
like a distracted child.
“Don’t torture a poor forlorn wretch,” he implored them, with a dreadful
cry; “but give me my work! What is to become of us, if those shoes are not
done to-night?”
Lost, utterly lost!
It was so clearly beyond hope to reason with him, or try to restore him,
that—as if by agreement—they each put a hand upon his
shoulder, and soothed him to sit down before the fire, with a promise that
he should have his work presently. He sank into the chair, and brooded
over the embers, and shed tears. As if all that had happened since the
garret time were a momentary fancy, or a dream, Mr. Lorry saw him shrink
into the exact figure that Defarge had had in keeping.
Affected, and impressed with terror as they both were, by this spectacle
of ruin, it was not a time to yield to such emotions. His lonely daughter,
bereft of her final hope and reliance, appealed to them both too strongly.
Again, as if by agreement, they looked at one another with one meaning in
their faces. Carton was the first to speak:
“The last chance is gone: it was not much. Yes; he had better be taken to
her. But, before you go, will you, for a moment, steadily attend to me?
Don’t ask me why I make the stipulations I am going to make, and exact the
promise I am going to exact; I have a reason—a good one.”
“I do not doubt it,” answered Mr. Lorry. “Say on.”
The figure in the chair between them, was all the time monotonously
rocking itself to and fro, and moaning. They spoke in such a tone as they
would have used if they had been watching by a sick-bed in the night.
Carton stooped to pick up the coat, which lay almost entangling his feet.
As he did so, a small case in which the Doctor was accustomed to carry the
lists of his day’s duties, fell lightly on the floor. Carton took it up,
and there was a folded paper in it. “We should look at this!” he said. Mr.
Lorry nodded his consent. He opened it, and exclaimed, “Thank ”
“What is it?” asked Mr. Lorry, eagerly.
“A moment! Let me speak of it in its place. First,” he put his hand in his
coat, and took another paper from it, “that is the certificate which
enables me to pass out of this city. Look at it. You see—Sydney
Carton, an Englishman?”
Mr. Lorry held it open in his hand, gazing in his earnest face.
“Keep it for me until to-morrow. I shall see him to-morrow, you remember,
and I had better not take it into the prison.”
“Why not?”
“I don’t know; I prefer not to do so. Now, take this paper that Doctor
Manette has carried about him. It is a similar certificate, enabling him
and his daughter and her child, at any time, to pass the barrier and the
frontier! You see?”
“Yes!”
“Perhaps he obtained it as his last and utmost precaution against evil,
yesterday. When is it dated? But no matter; don’t stay to look; put it up
carefully with mine and your own. Now, observe! I never doubted until
within this hour or two, that he had, or could have such a paper. It is
good, until recalled. But it may be soon recalled, and, I have reason to
think, will be.”
“They are not in danger?”
“They are in great danger. They are in danger of denunciation by Madame
Defarge. I know it from her own lips. I have overheard words of that
woman’s, to-night, which have presented their danger to me in strong
colours. I have lost no time, and since then, I have seen the spy. He
confirms me. He knows that a wood-sawyer, living by the prison wall, is
under the control of the Defarges, and has been rehearsed by Madame
Defarge as to his having seen Her”—he never mentioned Lucie’s name—“making
signs and signals to prisoners. It is easy to foresee that the pretence
will be the common one, a prison plot, and that it will involve her life—and
perhaps her child’s—and perhaps her father’s—for both have
been seen with her at that place. Don’t look so horrified. You will save
them all.”
“Heaven grant I may, Carton! But how?”
“I am going to tell you how. It will depend on you, and it could depend on
no better man. This new denunciation will certainly not take place until
after to-morrow; probably not until two or three days afterwards; more
probably a week afterwards. You know it is a capital crime, to mourn for,
or sympathise with, a victim of the Guillotine. She and her father would
unquestionably be guilty of this crime, and this woman (the inveteracy of
whose pursuit cannot be described) would wait to add that strength to her
case, and make herself doubly sure. You follow me?”
“So attentively, and with so much confidence in what you say, that for the
moment I lose sight,” touching the back of the Doctor’s chair, “even of
this distress.”
“You have money, and can buy the means of travelling to the seacoast as
quickly as the journey can be made. Your preparations have been completed
for some days, to return to England. Early to-morrow have your horses
ready, so that they may be in starting trim at two o’clock in the
afternoon.”
“It shall be done!”
His manner was so fervent and inspiring, that Mr. Lorry caught the flame,
and was as quick as youth.
“You are a noble heart. Did I say we could depend upon no better man? Tell
her, to-night, what you know of her danger as involving her child and her
father. Dwell upon that, for she would lay her own fair head beside her
husband’s cheerfully.” He faltered for an instant; then went on as before.
“For the sake of her child and her father, press upon her the necessity of
leaving Paris, with them and you, at that hour. Tell her that it was her
husband’s last arrangement. Tell her that more depends upon it than she
dare believe, or hope. You think that her father, even in this sad state,
will submit himself to her; do you not?”
“I am sure of it.”
“I thought so. Quietly and steadily have all these arrangements made in
the courtyard here, even to the taking of your own seat in the carriage.
The moment I come to you, take me in, and drive away.”
“I understand that I wait for you under all circumstances?”
“You have my certificate in your hand with the rest, you know, and will
reserve my place. Wait for nothing but to have my place occupied, and then
for England!”
“Why, then,” said Mr. Lorry, grasping his eager but so firm and steady
hand, “it does not all depend on one old man, but I shall have a young and
ardent man at my side.”
“By the help of Heaven you shall! Promise me solemnly that nothing will
influence you to alter the course on which we now stand pledged to one
another.”
“Nothing, Carton.”
“Remember these words to-morrow: change the course, or delay in it—for
any reason—and no life can possibly be saved, and many lives must
inevitably be sacrificed.”
“I will remember them. I hope to do my part faithfully.”
“And I hope to do mine. Now, good bye!”
Though he said it with a grave smile of earnestness, and though he even
put the old man’s hand to his lips, he did not part from him then. He
helped him so far to arouse the rocking figure before the dying embers, as
to get a cloak and hat put upon it, and to tempt it forth to find where
the bench and work were hidden that it still moaningly besought to have.
He walked on the other side of it and protected it to the courtyard of the
house where the afflicted heart—so happy in the memorable time when
he had revealed his own desolate heart to it—outwatched the awful
night. He entered the courtyard and remained there for a few moments
alone, looking up at the light in the window of her room. Before he went
away, he breathed a blessing towards it, and a Farewell.
CHAPTER XIII.<br />Fifty-two
In the black prison of the Conciergerie, the doomed of the day awaited
their fate. They were in number as the weeks of the year. Fifty-two were
to roll that afternoon on the life-tide of the city to the boundless
everlasting sea. Before their cells were quit of them, new occupants were
appointed; before their blood ran into the blood spilled yesterday, the
blood that was to mingle with theirs to-morrow was already set apart.
Two score and twelve were told off. From the farmer-general of seventy,
whose riches could not buy his life, to the seamstress of twenty, whose
poverty and obscurity could not save her. Physical diseases, engendered in
the vices and neglects of men, will seize on victims of all degrees; and
the frightful moral disorder, born of unspeakable suffering, intolerable
oppression, and heartless indifference, smote equally without distinction.
Charles Darnay, alone in a cell, had sustained himself with no flattering
delusion since he came to it from the Tribunal. In every line of the
narrative he had heard, he had heard his condemnation. He had fully
comprehended that no personal influence could possibly save him, that he
was virtually sentenced by the millions, and that units could avail him
nothing.
Nevertheless, it was not easy, with the face of his beloved wife fresh
before him, to compose his mind to what it must bear. His hold on life was
strong, and it was very, very hard, to loosen; by gradual efforts and
degrees unclosed a little here, it clenched the tighter there; and when he
brought his strength to bear on that hand and it yielded, this was closed
again. There was a hurry, too, in all his thoughts, a turbulent and heated
working of his heart, that contended against resignation. If, for a
moment, he did feel resigned, then his wife and child who had to live
after him, seemed to protest and to make it a selfish thing.
But, all this was at first. Before long, the consideration that there was
no disgrace in the fate he must meet, and that numbers went the same road
wrongfully, and trod it firmly every day, sprang up to stimulate him. Next
followed the thought that much of the future peace of mind enjoyable by
the dear ones, depended on his quiet fortitude. So, by degrees he calmed
into the better state, when he could raise his thoughts much higher, and
draw comfort down.
Before it had set in dark on the night of his condemnation, he had
travelled thus far on his last way. Being allowed to purchase the means of
writing, and a light, he sat down to write until such time as the prison
lamps should be extinguished.
He wrote a long letter to Lucie, showing her that he had known nothing of
her father’s imprisonment, until he had heard of it from herself, and that
he had been as ignorant as she of his father’s and uncle’s responsibility
for that misery, until the paper had been read. He had already explained
to her that his concealment from herself of the name he had relinquished,
was the one condition—fully intelligible now—that her father
had attached to their betrothal, and was the one promise he had still
exacted on the morning of their marriage. He entreated her, for her
father’s sake, never to seek to know whether her father had become
oblivious of the existence of the paper, or had had it recalled to him
(for the moment, or for good), by the story of the Tower, on that old
Sunday under the dear old plane-tree in the garden. If he had preserved
any definite remembrance of it, there could be no doubt that he had
supposed it destroyed with the Bastille, when he had found no mention of
it among the relics of prisoners which the populace had discovered there,
and which had been described to all the world. He besought her—though
he added that he knew it was needless—to console her father, by
impressing him through every tender means she could think of, with the
truth that he had done nothing for which he could justly reproach himself,
but had uniformly forgotten himself for their joint sakes. Next to her
preservation of his own last grateful love and blessing, and her
overcoming of her sorrow, to devote herself to their dear child, he
adjured her, as they would meet in Heaven, to comfort her father.
To her father himself, he wrote in the same strain; but, he told her
father that he expressly confided his wife and child to his care. And he
told him this, very strongly, with the hope of rousing him from any
despondency or dangerous retrospect towards which he foresaw he might be
tending.
To Mr. Lorry, he commended them all, and explained his worldly affairs.
That done, with many added sentences of grateful friendship and warm
attachment, all was done. He never thought of Carton. His mind was so full
of the others, that he never once thought of him.
He had time to finish these letters before the lights were put out. When
he lay down on his straw bed, he thought he had done with this world.
But, it beckoned him back in his sleep, and showed itself in shining
forms. Free and happy, back in the old house in Soho (though it had
nothing in it like the real house), unaccountably released and light of
heart, he was with Lucie again, and she told him it was all a dream, and
he had never gone away. A pause of forgetfulness, and then he had even
suffered, and had come back to her, dead and at peace, and yet there was
no difference in him. Another pause of oblivion, and he awoke in the
sombre morning, unconscious where he was or what had happened, until it
flashed upon his mind, “this is the day of my death!”
Thus, had he come through the hours, to the day when the fifty-two heads
were to fall. And now, while he was composed, and hoped that he could meet
the end with quiet heroism, a new action began in his waking thoughts,
which was very difficult to master.
He had never seen the instrument that was to terminate his life. How high
it was from the ground, how many steps it had, where he would be stood,
how he would be touched, whether the touching hands would be dyed red,
which way his face would be turned, whether he would be the first, or
might be the last: these and many similar questions, in nowise directed by
his will, obtruded themselves over and over again, countless times.
Neither were they connected with fear: he was conscious of no fear.
Rather, they originated in a strange besetting desire to know what to do
when the time came; a desire gigantically disproportionate to the few
swift moments to which it referred; a wondering that was more like the
wondering of some other spirit within his, than his own.
The hours went on as he walked to and fro, and the clocks struck the
numbers he would never hear again. Nine gone for ever, ten gone for ever,
eleven gone for ever, twelve coming on to pass away. After a hard contest
with that eccentric action of thought which had last perplexed him, he had
got the better of it. He walked up and down, softly repeating their names
to himself. The worst of the strife was over. He could walk up and down,
free from distracting fancies, praying for himself and for them.
Twelve gone for ever.
He had been apprised that the final hour was Three, and he knew he would
be summoned some time earlier, inasmuch as the tumbrils jolted heavily and
slowly through the streets. Therefore, he resolved to keep Two before his
mind, as the hour, and so to strengthen himself in the interval that he
might be able, after that time, to strengthen others.
Walking regularly to and fro with his arms folded on his breast, a very
different man from the prisoner, who had walked to and fro at La Force, he
heard One struck away from him, without surprise. The hour had measured
like most other hours. Devoutly thankful to Heaven for his recovered
self-possession, he thought, “There is but another now,” and turned to
walk again.
Footsteps in the stone passage outside the door. He stopped.
The key was put in the lock, and turned. Before the door was opened, or as
it opened, a man said in a low voice, in English: “He has never seen me
here; I have kept out of his way. Go you in alone; I wait near. Lose no
time!”
The door was quickly opened and closed, and there stood before him face to
face, quiet, intent upon him, with the light of a smile on his features,
and a cautionary finger on his lip, Sydney Carton.
There was something so bright and remarkable in his look, that, for the
first moment, the prisoner misdoubted him to be an apparition of his own
imagining. But, he spoke, and it was his voice; he took the prisoner’s
hand, and it was his real grasp.
“Of all the people upon earth, you least expected to see me?” he said.
“I could not believe it to be you. I can scarcely believe it now. You are
not”—the apprehension came suddenly into his mind—“a
prisoner?”
“No. I am accidentally possessed of a power over one of the keepers here,
and in virtue of it I stand before you. I come from her—your wife,
dear Darnay.”
The prisoner wrung his hand.
“I bring you a request from her.”
“What is it?”
“A most earnest, pressing, and emphatic entreaty, addressed to you in the
most pathetic tones of the voice so dear to you, that you well remember.”
The prisoner turned his face partly aside.
“You have no time to ask me why I bring it, or what it means; I have no
time to tell you. You must comply with it—take off those boots you
wear, and draw on these of mine.”
There was a chair against the wall of the cell, behind the prisoner.
Carton, pressing forward, had already, with the speed of lightning, got
him down into it, and stood over him, barefoot.
“Draw on these boots of mine. Put your hands to them; put your will to
them. Quick!”
“Carton, there is no escaping from this place; it never can be done. You
will only die with me. It is madness.”
“It would be madness if I asked you to escape; but do I? When I ask you to
pass out at that door, tell me it is madness and remain here. Change that
cravat for this of mine, that coat for this of mine. While you do it, let
me take this ribbon from your hair, and shake out your hair like this of
mine!”
With wonderful quickness, and with a strength both of will and action,
that appeared quite supernatural, he forced all these changes upon him.
The prisoner was like a young child in his hands.
“Carton! Dear Carton! It is madness. It cannot be accomplished, it never
can be done, it has been attempted, and has always failed. I implore you
not to add your death to the bitterness of mine.”
“Do I ask you, my dear Darnay, to pass the door? When I ask that, refuse.
There are pen and ink and paper on this table. Is your hand steady enough
to write?”
“It was when you came in.”
“Steady it again, and write what I shall dictate. Quick, friend, quick!”
Pressing his hand to his bewildered head, Darnay sat down at the table.
Carton, with his right hand in his breast, stood close beside him.
“Write exactly as I speak.”
“To whom do I address it?”
“To no one.” Carton still had his hand in his breast.
“Do I date it?”
“No.”
The prisoner looked up, at each question. Carton, standing over him with
his hand in his breast, looked down.
“‘If you remember,’” said Carton, dictating, “‘the words that passed
between us, long ago, you will readily comprehend this when you see it.
You do remember them, I know. It is not in your nature to forget them.’”
He was drawing his hand from his breast; the prisoner chancing to look up
in his hurried wonder as he wrote, the hand stopped, closing upon
something.
“Have you written ‘forget them’?” Carton asked.
“I have. Is that a weapon in your hand?”
“No; I am not armed.”
“What is it in your hand?”
“You shall know directly. Write on; there are but a few words more.” He
dictated again. “‘I am thankful that the time has come, when I can prove
them. That I do so is no subject for regret or grief.’” As he said these
words with his eyes fixed on the writer, his hand slowly and softly moved
down close to the writer’s face.
The pen dropped from Darnay’s fingers on the table, and he looked about
him vacantly.
“What vapour is that?” he asked.
“Vapour?”
“Something that crossed me?”
“I am conscious of nothing; there can be nothing here. Take up the pen and
finish. Hurry, hurry!”
As if his memory were impaired, or his faculties disordered, the prisoner
made an effort to rally his attention. As he looked at Carton with clouded
eyes and with an altered manner of breathing, Carton—his hand again
in his breast—looked steadily at him.
“Hurry, hurry!”
The prisoner bent over the paper, once more.
“‘If it had been otherwise;’” Carton’s hand was again watchfully and
softly stealing down; “‘I never should have used the longer opportunity.
If it had been otherwise;’” the hand was at the prisoner’s face; “‘I
should but have had so much the more to answer for. If it had been
otherwise—’” Carton looked at the pen and saw it was trailing off
into unintelligible signs.
Carton’s hand moved back to his breast no more. The prisoner sprang up
with a reproachful look, but Carton’s hand was close and firm at his
nostrils, and Carton’s left arm caught him round the waist. For a few
seconds he faintly struggled with the man who had come to lay down his
life for him; but, within a minute or so, he was stretched insensible on
the ground.
Quickly, but with hands as true to the purpose as his heart was, Carton
dressed himself in the clothes the prisoner had laid aside, combed back
his hair, and tied it with the ribbon the prisoner had worn. Then, he
softly called, “Enter there! Come in!” and the Spy presented himself.
“You see?” said Carton, looking up, as he kneeled on one knee beside the
insensible figure, putting the paper in the breast: “is your hazard very
great?”
“Mr. Carton,” the Spy answered, with a timid snap of his fingers, “my
hazard is not , in the thick of business here, if you are true
to the whole of your bargain.”
“Don’t fear me. I will be true to the death.”
“You must be, Mr. Carton, if the tale of fifty-two is to be right. Being
made right by you in that dress, I shall have no fear.”
“Have no fear! I shall soon be out of the way of harming you, and the rest
will soon be far from here, please God! Now, get assistance and take me to
the coach.”
“You?” said the Spy nervously.
“Him, man, with whom I have exchanged. You go out at the gate by which you
brought me in?”
“Of course.”
“I was weak and faint when you brought me in, and I am fainter now you
take me out. The parting interview has overpowered me. Such a thing has
happened here, often, and too often. Your life is in your own hands.
Quick! Call assistance!”
“You swear not to betray me?” said the trembling Spy, as he paused for a
last moment.
“Man, man!” returned Carton, stamping his foot; “have I sworn by no solemn
vow already, to go through with this, that you waste the precious moments
now? Take him yourself to the courtyard you know of, place him yourself in
the carriage, show him yourself to Mr. Lorry, tell him yourself to give
him no restorative but air, and to remember my words of last night, and
his promise of last night, and drive away!”
The Spy withdrew, and Carton seated himself at the table, resting his
forehead on his hands. The Spy returned immediately, with two men.
“How, then?” said one of them, contemplating the fallen figure. “So
afflicted to find that his friend has drawn a prize in the lottery of
Sainte Guillotine?”
“A good patriot,” said the other, “could hardly have been more afflicted
if the Aristocrat had drawn a blank.”
They raised the unconscious figure, placed it on a litter they had brought
to the door, and bent to carry it away.
“The time is short, Evrémonde,” said the Spy, in a warning voice.
“I know it well,” answered Carton. “Be careful of my friend, I entreat
you, and leave me.”
“Come, then, my children,” said Barsad. “Lift him, and come away!”
The door closed, and Carton was left alone. Straining his powers of
listening to the utmost, he listened for any sound that might denote
suspicion or alarm. There was none. Keys turned, doors clashed, footsteps
passed along distant passages: no cry was raised, or hurry made, that
seemed unusual. Breathing more freely in a little while, he sat down at
the table, and listened again until the clock struck Two.
Sounds that he was not afraid of, for he divined their meaning, then began
to be audible. Several doors were opened in succession, and finally his
own. A gaoler, with a list in his hand, looked in, merely saying, “Follow
me, Evrémonde!” and he followed into a large dark room, at a distance. It
was a dark winter day, and what with the shadows within, and what with the
shadows without, he could but dimly discern the others who were brought
there to have their arms bound. Some were standing; some seated. Some were
lamenting, and in restless motion; but, these were few. The great majority
were silent and still, looking fixedly at the ground.
As he stood by the wall in a dim corner, while some of the fifty-two were
brought in after him, one man stopped in passing, to embrace him, as
having a knowledge of him. It thrilled him with a great dread of
discovery; but the man went on. A very few moments after that, a young
woman, with a slight girlish form, a sweet spare face in which there was
no vestige of colour, and large widely opened patient eyes, rose from the
seat where he had observed her sitting, and came to speak to him.
“Citizen Evrémonde,” she said, touching him with her cold hand. “I am a
poor little seamstress, who was with you in La Force.”
He murmured for answer: “True. I forget what you were accused of?”
“Plots. Though the just Heaven knows that I am innocent of any. Is it
likely? Who would think of plotting with a poor little weak creature like
me?”
The forlorn smile with which she said it, so touched him, that tears
started from his eyes.
“I am not afraid to die, Citizen Evrémonde, but I have done nothing. I am
not unwilling to die, if the Republic which is to do so much good to us
poor, will profit by my death; but I do not know how that can be, Citizen
Evrémonde. Such a poor weak little creature!”
As the last thing on earth that his heart was to warm and soften to, it
warmed and softened to this pitiable girl.
“I heard you were released, Citizen Evrémonde. I hoped it was true?”
“It was. But, I was again taken and condemned.”
“If I may ride with you, Citizen Evrémonde, will you let me hold your
hand? I am not afraid, but I am little and weak, and it will give me more
courage.”
As the patient eyes were lifted to his face, he saw a sudden doubt in
them, and then astonishment. He pressed the work-worn, hunger-worn young
fingers, and touched his lips.
“Are you dying for him?” she whispered.
“And his wife and child. Hush! Yes.”
“O you will let me hold your brave hand, stranger?”
“Hush! Yes, my poor sister; to the last.”
The same shadows that are falling on the prison, are falling, in that same
hour of the early afternoon, on the Barrier with the crowd about it, when
a coach going out of Paris drives up to be examined.
<br />
“Who goes here? Whom have we within? Papers!”
<br />
The papers are handed out, and read.
<br />
“Alexandre Manette. Physician. French. Which is he?”
<br />
This is he; this helpless, inarticulately murmuring, wandering old man
pointed out.
<br />
“Apparently the Citizen-Doctor is not in his right mind? The
Revolution-fever will have been too much for him?”
<br />
Greatly too much for him.
<br />
“Hah! Many suffer with it. Lucie. His daughter. French. Which is she?”
<br />
This is she.
<br />
“Apparently it must be. Lucie, the wife of Evrémonde; is it not?”
<br />
It is.
<br />
“Hah! Evrémonde has an assignation elsewhere. Lucie, her child. English.
This is she?”
<br />
She and no other.
<br />
“Kiss me, child of Evrémonde. Now, thou hast kissed a good Republican;
something new in thy family; remember it! Sydney Carton. Advocate.
English. Which is he?”
<br />
He lies here, in this corner of the carriage. He, too, is pointed out.
<br />
“Apparently the English advocate is in a swoon?”
<br />
It is hoped he will recover in the fresher air. It is represented that he
is not in strong health, and has separated sadly from a friend who is
under the displeasure of the Republic.
<br />
“Is that all? It is not a great deal, that! Many are under the displeasure
of the Republic, and must look out at the little window. Jarvis Lorry.
Banker. English. Which is he?”
<br />
“I am he. Necessarily, being the last.”
<br />
It is Jarvis Lorry who has replied to all the previous questions. It is
Jarvis Lorry who has alighted and stands with his hand on the coach door,
replying to a group of officials. They leisurely walk round the carriage
and leisurely mount the box, to look at what little luggage it carries on
the roof; the country-people hanging about, press nearer to the coach
doors and greedily stare in; a little child, carried by its mother, has
its short arm held out for it, that it may touch the wife of an aristocrat
who has gone to the Guillotine.
<br />
“Behold your papers, Jarvis Lorry, countersigned.”
<br />
“One can depart, citizen?”
<br />
“One can depart. Forward, my postilions! A good journey!”
<br />
“I salute you, citizens.—And the first danger passed!”
<br />
These are again the words of Jarvis Lorry, as he clasps his hands, and
looks upward. There is terror in the carriage, there is weeping, there is
the heavy breathing of the insensible traveller.
<br />
“Are we not going too slowly? Can they not be induced to go faster?” asks
Lucie, clinging to the old man.
<br />
“It would seem like flight, my darling. I must not urge them too much; it
would rouse suspicion.”
<br />
“Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued!”
<br />
“The road is clear, my dearest. So far, we are not pursued.”
<br />
Houses in twos and threes pass by us, solitary farms, ruinous buildings,
dye-works, tanneries, and the like, open country, avenues of leafless
trees. The hard uneven pavement is under us, the soft deep mud is on
either side. Sometimes, we strike into the skirting mud, to avoid the
stones that clatter us and shake us; sometimes, we stick in ruts and
sloughs there. The agony of our impatience is then so great, that in our
wild alarm and hurry we are for getting out and running—hiding—doing
anything but stopping.
<br />
Out of the open country, in again among ruinous buildings, solitary farms,
dye-works, tanneries, and the like, cottages in twos and threes, avenues
of leafless trees. Have these men deceived us, and taken us back by
another road? Is not this the same place twice over? Thank Heaven, no. A
village. Look back, look back, and see if we are pursued! Hush! the
posting-house.
<br />
Leisurely, our four horses are taken out; leisurely, the coach stands in
the little street, bereft of horses, and with no likelihood upon it of
ever moving again; leisurely, the new horses come into visible existence,
one by one; leisurely, the new postilions follow, sucking and plaiting the
lashes of their whips; leisurely, the old postilions count their money,
make wrong additions, and arrive at dissatisfied results. All the time,
our overfraught hearts are beating at a rate that would far outstrip the
fastest gallop of the fastest horses ever foaled.
<br />
At length the new postilions are in their saddles, and the old are left
behind. We are through the village, up the hill, and down the hill, and on
the low watery grounds. Suddenly, the postilions exchange speech with
animated gesticulation, and the horses are pulled up, almost on their
haunches. We are pursued?
<br />
“Ho! Within the carriage there. Speak then!”
<br />
“What is it?” asks Mr. Lorry, looking out at window.
<br />
“How many did they say?”
<br />
“I do not understand you.”
<br />
“—At the last post. How many to the Guillotine to-day?”
<br />
“Fifty-two.”
<br />
“I said so! A brave number! My fellow-citizen here would have it
forty-two; ten more heads are worth having. The Guillotine goes
handsomely. I love it. Hi forward. Whoop!”
<br />
The night comes on dark. He moves more; he is beginning to revive, and to
speak intelligibly; he thinks they are still together; he asks him, by his
name, what he has in his hand. O pity us, kind Heaven, and help us! Look
out, look out, and see if we are pursued.
<br />
The wind is rushing after us, and the clouds are flying after us, and the
moon is plunging after us, and the whole wild night is in pursuit of us;
but, so far, we are pursued by nothing else.
CHAPTER XIV.<br />The Knitting Done
In that same juncture of time when the Fifty-Two awaited their fate Madame
Defarge held darkly ominous council with The Vengeance and Jacques Three
of the Revolutionary Jury. Not in the wine-shop did Madame Defarge confer
with these ministers, but in the shed of the wood-sawyer, erst a mender of
roads. The sawyer himself did not participate in the conference, but
abided at a little distance, like an outer satellite who was not to speak
until required, or to offer an opinion until invited.
“But our Defarge,” said Jacques Three, “is undoubtedly a good Republican?
Eh?”
“There is no better,” the voluble Vengeance protested in her shrill notes,
“in France.”
“Peace, little Vengeance,” said Madame Defarge, laying her hand with a
slight frown on her lieutenant’s lips, “hear me speak. My husband,
fellow-citizen, is a good Republican and a bold man; he has deserved well
of the Republic, and possesses its confidence. But my husband has his
weaknesses, and he is so weak as to relent towards this Doctor.”
“It is a great pity,” croaked Jacques Three, dubiously shaking his head,
with his cruel fingers at his hungry mouth; “it is not quite like a good
citizen; it is a thing to regret.”
“See you,” said madame, “I care nothing for this Doctor, I. He may wear
his head or lose it, for any interest I have in him; it is all one to me.
But, the Evrémonde people are to be exterminated, and the wife and child
must follow the husband and father.”
“She has a fine head for it,” croaked Jacques Three. “I have seen blue
eyes and golden hair there, and they looked charming when Samson held them
up.” Ogre that he was, he spoke like an epicure.
Madame Defarge cast down her eyes, and reflected a little.
“The child also,” observed Jacques Three, with a meditative enjoyment of
his words, “has golden hair and blue eyes. And we seldom have a child
there. It is a pretty sight!”
“In a word,” said Madame Defarge, coming out of her short abstraction, “I
cannot trust my husband in this matter. Not only do I feel, since last
night, that I dare not confide to him the details of my projects; but also
I feel that if I delay, there is danger of his giving warning, and then
they might escape.”
“That must never be,” croaked Jacques Three; “no one must escape. We have
not half enough as it is. We ought to have six score a day.”
“In a word,” Madame Defarge went on, “my husband has not my reason for
pursuing this family to annihilation, and I have not his reason for
regarding this Doctor with any sensibility. I must act for myself,
therefore. Come hither, little citizen.”
The wood-sawyer, who held her in the respect, and himself in the
submission, of mortal fear, advanced with his hand to his red cap.
“Touching those signals, little citizen,” said Madame Defarge, sternly,
“that she made to the prisoners; you are ready to bear witness to them
this very day?”
“Ay, ay, why not!” cried the sawyer. “Every day, in all weathers, from two
to four, always signalling, sometimes with the little one, sometimes
without. I know what I know. I have seen with my eyes.”
He made all manner of gestures while he spoke, as if in incidental
imitation of some few of the great diversity of signals that he had never
seen.
“Clearly plots,” said Jacques Three. “Transparently!”
“There is no doubt of the Jury?” inquired Madame Defarge, letting her eyes
turn to him with a gloomy smile.
“Rely upon the patriotic Jury, dear citizeness. I answer for my
fellow-Jurymen.”
“Now, let me see,” said Madame Defarge, pondering again. “Yet once more!
Can I spare this Doctor to my husband? I have no feeling either way. Can I
spare him?”
“He would count as one head,” observed Jacques Three, in a low voice. “We
really have not heads enough; it would be a pity, I think.”
“He was signalling with her when I saw her,” argued Madame Defarge; “I
cannot speak of one without the other; and I must not be silent, and trust
the case wholly to him, this little citizen here. For, I am not a bad
witness.”
The Vengeance and Jacques Three vied with each other in their fervent
protestations that she was the most admirable and marvellous of witnesses.
The little citizen, not to be outdone, declared her to be a celestial
witness.
“He must take his chance,” said Madame Defarge. “No, I cannot spare him!
You are engaged at three o’clock; you are going to see the batch of to-day
executed.—You?”
The question was addressed to the wood-sawyer, who hurriedly replied in
the affirmative: seizing the occasion to add that he was the most ardent
of Republicans, and that he would be in effect the most desolate of
Republicans, if anything prevented him from enjoying the pleasure of
smoking his afternoon pipe in the contemplation of the droll national
barber. He was so very demonstrative herein, that he might have been
suspected (perhaps was, by the dark eyes that looked contemptuously at him
out of Madame Defarge’s head) of having his small individual fears for his
own personal safety, every hour in the day.
“I,” said madame, “am equally engaged at the same place. After it is over—say
at eight to-night—come you to me, in Saint Antoine, and we will give
information against these people at my Section.”
The wood-sawyer said he would be proud and flattered to attend the
citizeness. The citizeness looking at him, he became embarrassed, evaded
her glance as a small dog would have done, retreated among his wood, and
hid his confusion over the handle of his saw.
Madame Defarge beckoned the Juryman and The Vengeance a little nearer to
the door, and there expounded her further views to them thus:
“She will now be at home, awaiting the moment of his death. She will be
mourning and grieving. She will be in a state of mind to impeach the
justice of the Republic. She will be full of sympathy with its enemies. I
will go to her.”
“What an admirable woman; what an adorable woman!” exclaimed Jacques
Three, rapturously. “Ah, my cherished!” cried The Vengeance; and embraced
her.
“Take you my knitting,” said Madame Defarge, placing it in her
lieutenant’s hands, “and have it ready for me in my usual seat. Keep me my
usual chair. Go you there, straight, for there will probably be a greater
concourse than usual, to-day.”
“I willingly obey the orders of my Chief,” said The Vengeance with
alacrity, and kissing her cheek. “You will not be late?”
“I shall be there before the commencement.”
“And before the tumbrils arrive. Be sure you are there, my soul,” said The
Vengeance, calling after her, for she had already turned into the street,
“before the tumbrils arrive!”
Madame Defarge slightly waved her hand, to imply that she heard, and might
be relied upon to arrive in good time, and so went through the mud, and
round the corner of the prison wall. The Vengeance and the Juryman,
looking after her as she walked away, were highly appreciative of her fine
figure, and her superb moral endowments.
There were many women at that time, upon whom the time laid a dreadfully
disfiguring hand; but, there was not one among them more to be dreaded
than this ruthless woman, now taking her way along the streets. Of a
strong and fearless character, of shrewd sense and readiness, of great
determination, of that kind of beauty which not only seems to impart to
its possessor firmness and animosity, but to strike into others an
instinctive recognition of those qualities; the troubled time would have
heaved her up, under any circumstances. But, imbued from her childhood
with a brooding sense of wrong, and an inveterate hatred of a class,
opportunity had developed her into a tigress. She was absolutely without
pity. If she had ever had the virtue in her, it had quite gone out of her.
It was nothing to her, that an innocent man was to die for the sins of his
forefathers; she saw, not him, but them. It was nothing to her, that his
wife was to be made a widow and his daughter an orphan; that was
insufficient punishment, because they were her natural enemies and her
prey, and as such had no right to live. To appeal to her, was made
hopeless by her having no sense of pity, even for herself. If she had been
laid low in the streets, in any of the many encounters in which she had
been engaged, she would not have pitied herself; nor, if she had been
ordered to the axe to-morrow, would she have gone to it with any softer
feeling than a fierce desire to change places with the man who sent her
there.
Such a heart Madame Defarge carried under her rough robe. Carelessly worn,
it was a becoming robe enough, in a certain weird way, and her dark hair
looked rich under her coarse red cap. Lying hidden in her bosom, was a
loaded pistol. Lying hidden at her waist, was a sharpened dagger. Thus
accoutred, and walking with the confident tread of such a character, and
with the supple freedom of a woman who had habitually walked in her
girlhood, bare-foot and bare-legged, on the brown sea-sand, Madame Defarge
took her way along the streets.
Now, when the journey of the travelling coach, at that very moment waiting
for the completion of its load, had been planned out last night, the
difficulty of taking Miss Pross in it had much engaged Mr. Lorry’s
attention. It was not merely desirable to avoid overloading the coach, but
it was of the highest importance that the time occupied in examining it
and its passengers, should be reduced to the utmost; since their escape
might depend on the saving of only a few seconds here and there. Finally,
he had proposed, after anxious consideration, that Miss Pross and Jerry,
who were at liberty to leave the city, should leave it at three o’clock in
the lightest-wheeled conveyance known to that period. Unencumbered with
luggage, they would soon overtake the coach, and, passing it and preceding
it on the road, would order its horses in advance, and greatly facilitate
its progress during the precious hours of the night, when delay was the
most to be dreaded.
Seeing in this arrangement the hope of rendering real service in that
pressing emergency, Miss Pross hailed it with joy. She and Jerry had
beheld the coach start, had known who it was that Solomon brought, had
passed some ten minutes in tortures of suspense, and were now concluding
their arrangements to follow the coach, even as Madame Defarge, taking her
way through the streets, now drew nearer and nearer to the else-deserted
lodging in which they held their consultation.
“Now what do you think, Mr. Cruncher,” said Miss Pross, whose agitation
was so great that she could hardly speak, or stand, or move, or live:
“what do you think of our not starting from this courtyard? Another
carriage having already gone from here to-day, it might awaken suspicion.”
“My opinion, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “is as you’re right. Likewise
wot I’ll stand by you, right or wrong.”
“I am so distracted with fear and hope for our precious creatures,” said
Miss Pross, wildly crying, “that I am incapable of forming any plan. Are
capable of forming any plan, my dear good Mr. Cruncher?”
“Respectin’ a future spear o’ life, miss,” returned Mr. Cruncher, “I hope
so. Respectin’ any present use o’ this here blessed old head o’ mine, I
think not. Would you do me the favour, miss, to take notice o’ two
promises and wows wot it is my wishes fur to record in this here crisis?”
“Oh, for gracious sake!” cried Miss Pross, still wildly crying, “record
them at once, and get them out of the way, like an excellent man.”
“First,” said Mr. Cruncher, who was all in a tremble, and who spoke with
an ashy and solemn visage, “them poor things well out o’ this, never no
more will I do it, never no more!”
“I am quite sure, Mr. Cruncher,” returned Miss Pross, “that you never will
do it again, whatever it is, and I beg you not to think it necessary to
mention more particularly what it is.”
“No, miss,” returned Jerry, “it shall not be named to you. Second: them
poor things well out o’ this, and never no more will I interfere with Mrs.
Cruncher’s flopping, never no more!”
“Whatever housekeeping arrangement that may be,” said Miss Pross, striving
to dry her eyes and compose herself, “I have no doubt it is best that Mrs.
Cruncher should have it entirely under her own superintendence.—O my
poor darlings!”
“I go so far as to say, miss, moreover,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with a
most alarming tendency to hold forth as from a pulpit—“and let my
words be took down and took to Mrs. Cruncher through yourself—that
wot my opinions respectin’ flopping has undergone a change, and that wot I
only hope with all my heart as Mrs. Cruncher may be a flopping at the
present time.”
“There, there, there! I hope she is, my dear man,” cried the distracted
Miss Pross, “and I hope she finds it answering her expectations.”
“Forbid it,” proceeded Mr. Cruncher, with additional solemnity, additional
slowness, and additional tendency to hold forth and hold out, “as anything
wot I have ever said or done should be wisited on my earnest wishes for
them poor creeturs now! Forbid it as we shouldn’t all flop (if it was
anyways conwenient) to get ’em out o’ this here dismal risk! Forbid it,
miss! Wot I say, for- it!” This was Mr. Cruncher’s conclusion
after a protracted but vain endeavour to find a better one.
And still Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer
and nearer.
“If we ever get back to our native land,” said Miss Pross, “you may rely
upon my telling Mrs. Cruncher as much as I may be able to remember and
understand of what you have so impressively said; and at all events you
may be sure that I shall bear witness to your being thoroughly in earnest
at this dreadful time. Now, pray let us think! My esteemed Mr. Cruncher,
let us think!”
Still, Madame Defarge, pursuing her way along the streets, came nearer and
nearer.
“If you were to go before,” said Miss Pross, “and stop the vehicle and
horses from coming here, and were to wait somewhere for me; wouldn’t that
be best?”
Mr. Cruncher thought it might be best.
“Where could you wait for me?” asked Miss Pross.
Mr. Cruncher was so bewildered that he could think of no locality but
Temple Bar. Alas! Temple Bar was hundreds of miles away, and Madame
Defarge was drawing very near indeed.
“By the cathedral door,” said Miss Pross. “Would it be much out of the
way, to take me in, near the great cathedral door between the two towers?”
“No, miss,” answered Mr. Cruncher.
“Then, like the best of men,” said Miss Pross, “go to the posting-house
straight, and make that change.”
“I am doubtful,” said Mr. Cruncher, hesitating and shaking his head,
“about leaving of you, you see. We don’t know what may happen.”
“Heaven knows we don’t,” returned Miss Pross, “but have no fear for me.
Take me in at the cathedral, at Three o’Clock, or as near it as you can,
and I am sure it will be better than our going from here. I feel certain
of it. There! Bless you, Mr. Cruncher! Think-not of me, but of the lives
that may depend on both of us!”
This exordium, and Miss Pross’s two hands in quite agonised entreaty
clasping his, decided Mr. Cruncher. With an encouraging nod or two, he
immediately went out to alter the arrangements, and left her by herself to
follow as she had proposed.
The having originated a precaution which was already in course of
execution, was a great relief to Miss Pross. The necessity of composing
her appearance so that it should attract no special notice in the streets,
was another relief. She looked at her watch, and it was twenty minutes
past two. She had no time to lose, but must get ready at once.
Afraid, in her extreme perturbation, of the loneliness of the deserted
rooms, and of half-imagined faces peeping from behind every open door in
them, Miss Pross got a basin of cold water and began laving her eyes,
which were swollen and red. Haunted by her feverish apprehensions, she
could not bear to have her sight obscured for a minute at a time by the
dripping water, but constantly paused and looked round to see that there
was no one watching her. In one of those pauses she recoiled and cried
out, for she saw a figure standing in the room.
The basin fell to the ground broken, and the water flowed to the feet of
Madame Defarge. By strange stern ways, and through much staining blood,
those feet had come to meet that water.
Madame Defarge looked coldly at her, and said, “The wife of Evrémonde;
where is she?”
It flashed upon Miss Pross’s mind that the doors were all standing open,
and would suggest the flight. Her first act was to shut them. There were
four in the room, and she shut them all. She then placed herself before
the door of the chamber which Lucie had occupied.
Madame Defarge’s dark eyes followed her through this rapid movement, and
rested on her when it was finished. Miss Pross had nothing beautiful about
her; years had not tamed the wildness, or softened the grimness, of her
appearance; but, she too was a determined woman in her different way, and
she measured Madame Defarge with her eyes, every inch.
“You might, from your appearance, be the wife of Lucifer,” said Miss
Pross, in her breathing. “Nevertheless, you shall not get the better of
me. I am an Englishwoman.”
Madame Defarge looked at her scornfully, but still with something of Miss
Pross’s own perception that they two were at bay. She saw a tight, hard,
wiry woman before her, as Mr. Lorry had seen in the same figure a woman
with a strong hand, in the years gone by. She knew full well that Miss
Pross was the family’s devoted friend; Miss Pross knew full well that
Madame Defarge was the family’s malevolent enemy.
“On my way yonder,” said Madame Defarge, with a slight movement of her
hand towards the fatal spot, “where they reserve my chair and my knitting
for me, I am come to make my compliments to her in passing. I wish to see
her.”
“I know that your intentions are evil,” said Miss Pross, “and you may
depend upon it, I’ll hold my own against them.”
Each spoke in her own language; neither understood the other’s words; both
were very watchful, and intent to deduce from look and manner, what the
unintelligible words meant.
“It will do her no good to keep herself concealed from me at this moment,”
said Madame Defarge. “Good patriots will know what that means. Let me see
her. Go tell her that I wish to see her. Do you hear?”
“If those eyes of yours were bed-winches,” returned Miss Pross, “and I was
an English four-poster, they shouldn’t loose a splinter of me. No, you
wicked foreign woman; I am your match.”
Madame Defarge was not likely to follow these idiomatic remarks in detail;
but, she so far understood them as to perceive that she was set at naught.
“Woman imbecile and pig-like!” said Madame Defarge, frowning. “I take no
answer from you. I demand to see her. Either tell her that I demand to see
her, or stand out of the way of the door and let me go to her!” This, with
an angry explanatory wave of her right arm.
“I little thought,” said Miss Pross, “that I should ever want to
understand your nonsensical language; but I would give all I have, except
the clothes I wear, to know whether you suspect the truth, or any part of
it.”
Neither of them for a single moment released the other’s eyes. Madame
Defarge had not moved from the spot where she stood when Miss Pross first
became aware of her; but, she now advanced one step.
“I am a Briton,” said Miss Pross, “I am desperate. I don’t care an English
Twopence for myself. I know that the longer I keep you here, the greater
hope there is for my Ladybird. I’ll not leave a handful of that dark hair
upon your head, if you lay a finger on me!”
Thus Miss Pross, with a shake of her head and a flash of her eyes between
every rapid sentence, and every rapid sentence a whole breath. Thus Miss
Pross, who had never struck a blow in her life.
But, her courage was of that emotional nature that it brought the
irrepressible tears into her eyes. This was a courage that Madame Defarge
so little comprehended as to mistake for weakness. “Ha, ha!” she laughed,
“you poor wretch! What are you worth! I address myself to that Doctor.”
Then she raised her voice and called out, “Citizen Doctor! Wife of
Evrémonde! Child of Evrémonde! Any person but this miserable fool, answer
the Citizeness Defarge!”
Perhaps the following silence, perhaps some latent disclosure in the
expression of Miss Pross’s face, perhaps a sudden misgiving apart from
either suggestion, whispered to Madame Defarge that they were gone. Three
of the doors she opened swiftly, and looked in.
“Those rooms are all in disorder, there has been hurried packing, there
are odds and ends upon the ground. There is no one in that room behind
you! Let me look.”
“Never!” said Miss Pross, who understood the request as perfectly as
Madame Defarge understood the answer.
“If they are not in that room, they are gone, and can be pursued and
brought back,” said Madame Defarge to herself.
“As long as you don’t know whether they are in that room or not, you are
uncertain what to do,” said Miss Pross to herself; “and you shall not know
that, if I can prevent your knowing it; and know that, or not know that,
you shall not leave here while I can hold you.”
“I have been in the streets from the first, nothing has stopped me, I will
tear you to pieces, but I will have you from that door,” said Madame
Defarge.
“We are alone at the top of a high house in a solitary courtyard, we are
not likely to be heard, and I pray for bodily strength to keep you here,
while every minute you are here is worth a hundred thousand guineas to my
darling,” said Miss Pross.
Madame Defarge made at the door. Miss Pross, on the instinct of the
moment, seized her round the waist in both her arms, and held her tight.
It was in vain for Madame Defarge to struggle and to strike; Miss Pross,
with the vigorous tenacity of love, always so much stronger than hate,
clasped her tight, and even lifted her from the floor in the struggle that
they had. The two hands of Madame Defarge buffeted and tore her face; but,
Miss Pross, with her head down, held her round the waist, and clung to her
with more than the hold of a drowning woman.
Soon, Madame Defarge’s hands ceased to strike, and felt at her encircled
waist. “It is under my arm,” said Miss Pross, in smothered tones, “you
shall not draw it. I am stronger than you, I bless Heaven for it. I hold
you till one or other of us faints or dies!”
Madame Defarge’s hands were at her bosom. Miss Pross looked up, saw what
it was, struck at it, struck out a flash and a crash, and stood alone—blinded
with smoke.
All this was in a second. As the smoke cleared, leaving an awful
stillness, it passed out on the air, like the soul of the furious woman
whose body lay lifeless on the ground.
In the first fright and horror of her situation, Miss Pross passed the
body as far from it as she could, and ran down the stairs to call for
fruitless help. Happily, she bethought herself of the consequences of what
she did, in time to check herself and go back. It was dreadful to go in at
the door again; but, she did go in, and even went near it, to get the
bonnet and other things that she must wear. These she put on, out on the
staircase, first shutting and locking the door and taking away the key.
She then sat down on the stairs a few moments to breathe and to cry, and
then got up and hurried away.
By good fortune she had a veil on her bonnet, or she could hardly have
gone along the streets without being stopped. By good fortune, too, she
was naturally so peculiar in appearance as not to show disfigurement like
any other woman. She needed both advantages, for the marks of gripping
fingers were deep in her face, and her hair was torn, and her dress
(hastily composed with unsteady hands) was clutched and dragged a hundred
ways.
In crossing the bridge, she dropped the door key in the river. Arriving at
the cathedral some few minutes before her escort, and waiting there, she
thought, what if the key were already taken in a net, what if it were
identified, what if the door were opened and the remains discovered, what
if she were stopped at the gate, sent to prison, and charged with murder!
In the midst of these fluttering thoughts, the escort appeared, took her
in, and took her away.
“Is there any noise in the streets?” she asked him.
“The usual noises,” Mr. Cruncher replied; and looked surprised by the
question and by her aspect.
“I don’t hear you,” said Miss Pross. “What do you say?”
It was in vain for Mr. Cruncher to repeat what he said; Miss Pross could
not hear him. “So I’ll nod my head,” thought Mr. Cruncher, amazed, “at all
events she’ll see that.” And she did.
“Is there any noise in the streets now?” asked Miss Pross again,
presently.
Again Mr. Cruncher nodded his head.
“I don’t hear it.”
“Gone deaf in an hour?” said Mr. Cruncher, ruminating, with his mind much
disturbed; “wot’s come to her?”
“I feel,” said Miss Pross, “as if there had been a flash and a crash, and
that crash was the last thing I should ever hear in this life.”
“Blest if she ain’t in a queer condition!” said Mr. Cruncher, more and
more disturbed. “Wot can she have been a takin’, to keep her courage up?
Hark! There’s the roll of them dreadful carts! You can hear that, miss?”
“I can hear,” said Miss Pross, seeing that he spoke to her, “nothing. O,
my good man, there was first a great crash, and then a great stillness,
and that stillness seems to be fixed and unchangeable, never to be broken
any more as long as my life lasts.”
“If she don’t hear the roll of those dreadful carts, now very nigh their
journey’s end,” said Mr. Cruncher, glancing over his shoulder, “it’s my
opinion that indeed she never will hear anything else in this world.”
And indeed she never did.
CHAPTER XV.<br />The Footsteps Die Out For Ever
Along the Paris streets, the death-carts rumble, hollow and harsh. Six
tumbrils carry the day’s wine to La Guillotine. All the devouring and
insatiate Monsters imagined since imagination could record itself, are
fused in the one realisation, Guillotine. And yet there is not in France,
with its rich variety of soil and climate, a blade, a leaf, a root, a
sprig, a peppercorn, which will grow to maturity under conditions more
certain than those that have produced this horror. Crush humanity out of
shape once more, under similar hammers, and it will twist itself into the
same tortured forms. Sow the same seed of rapacious license and oppression
over again, and it will surely yield the same fruit according to its kind.
Six tumbrils roll along the streets. Change these back again to what they
were, thou powerful enchanter, Time, and they shall be seen to be the
carriages of absolute monarchs, the equipages of feudal nobles, the
toilettes of flaring Jezebels, the churches that are not my father’s house
but dens of thieves, the huts of millions of starving peasants! No; the
great magician who majestically works out the appointed order of the
Creator, never reverses his transformations. “If thou be changed into this
shape by the will of God,” say the seers to the enchanted, in the wise
Arabian stories, “then remain so! But, if thou wear this form through mere
passing conjuration, then resume thy former aspect!” Changeless and
hopeless, the tumbrils roll along.
As the sombre wheels of the six carts go round, they seem to plough up a
long crooked furrow among the populace in the streets. Ridges of faces are
thrown to this side and to that, and the ploughs go steadily onward. So
used are the regular inhabitants of the houses to the spectacle, that in
many windows there are no people, and in some the occupation of the hands
is not so much as suspended, while the eyes survey the faces in the
tumbrils. Here and there, the inmate has visitors to see the sight; then
he points his finger, with something of the complacency of a curator or
authorised exponent, to this cart and to this, and seems to tell who sat
here yesterday, and who there the day before.
Of the riders in the tumbrils, some observe these things, and all things
on their last roadside, with an impassive stare; others, with a lingering
interest in the ways of life and men. Some, seated with drooping heads,
are sunk in silent despair; again, there are some so heedful of their
looks that they cast upon the multitude such glances as they have seen in
theatres, and in pictures. Several close their eyes, and think, or try to
get their straying thoughts together. Only one, and he a miserable
creature, of a crazed aspect, is so shattered and made drunk by horror,
that he sings, and tries to dance. Not one of the whole number appeals by
look or gesture, to the pity of the people.
There is a guard of sundry horsemen riding abreast of the tumbrils, and
faces are often turned up to some of them, and they are asked some
question. It would seem to be always the same question, for, it is always
followed by a press of people towards the third cart. The horsemen abreast
of that cart, frequently point out one man in it with their swords. The
leading curiosity is, to know which is he; he stands at the back of the
tumbril with his head bent down, to converse with a mere girl who sits on
the side of the cart, and holds his hand. He has no curiosity or care for
the scene about him, and always speaks to the girl. Here and there in the
long street of St. Honore, cries are raised against him. If they move him
at all, it is only to a quiet smile, as he shakes his hair a little more
loosely about his face. He cannot easily touch his face, his arms being
bound.
On the steps of a church, awaiting the coming-up of the tumbrils, stands
the Spy and prison-sheep. He looks into the first of them: not there. He
looks into the second: not there. He already asks himself, “Has he
sacrificed me?” when his face clears, as he looks into the third.
“Which is Evrémonde?” says a man behind him.
“That. At the back there.”
“With his hand in the girl’s?”
“Yes.”
The man cries, “Down, Evrémonde! To the Guillotine all aristocrats! Down,
Evrémonde!”
“Hush, hush!” the Spy entreats him, timidly.
“And why not, citizen?”
“He is going to pay the forfeit: it will be paid in five minutes more. Let
him be at peace.”
But the man continuing to exclaim, “Down, Evrémonde!” the face of
Evrémonde is for a moment turned towards him. Evrémonde then sees the Spy,
and looks attentively at him, and goes his way.
The clocks are on the stroke of three, and the furrow ploughed among the
populace is turning round, to come on into the place of execution, and
end. The ridges thrown to this side and to that, now crumble in and close
behind the last plough as it passes on, for all are following to the
Guillotine. In front of it, seated in chairs, as in a garden of public
diversion, are a number of women, busily knitting. On one of the fore-most
chairs, stands The Vengeance, looking about for her friend.
“Thérèse!” she cries, in her shrill tones. “Who has seen her? Thérèse
Defarge!”
“She never missed before,” says a knitting-woman of the sisterhood.
“No; nor will she miss now,” cries The Vengeance, petulantly. “Thérèse.”
“Louder,” the woman recommends.
Ay! Louder, Vengeance, much louder, and still she will scarcely hear thee.
Louder yet, Vengeance, with a little oath or so added, and yet it will
hardly bring her. Send other women up and down to seek her, lingering
somewhere; and yet, although the messengers have done dread deeds, it is
questionable whether of their own wills they will go far enough to find
her!
“Bad Fortune!” cries The Vengeance, stamping her foot in the chair, “and
here are the tumbrils! And Evrémonde will be despatched in a wink, and she
not here! See her knitting in my hand, and her empty chair ready for her.
I cry with vexation and disappointment!”
As The Vengeance descends from her elevation to do it, the tumbrils begin
to discharge their loads. The ministers of Sainte Guillotine are robed and
ready. Crash!—A head is held up, and the knitting-women who scarcely
lifted their eyes to look at it a moment ago when it could think and
speak, count One.
The second tumbril empties and moves on; the third comes up. Crash!—And
the knitting-women, never faltering or pausing in their Work, count Two.
The supposed Evrémonde descends, and the seamstress is lifted out next
after him. He has not relinquished her patient hand in getting out, but
still holds it as he promised. He gently places her with her back to the
crashing engine that constantly whirrs up and falls, and she looks into
his face and thanks him.
“But for you, dear stranger, I should not be so composed, for I am
naturally a poor little thing, faint of heart; nor should I have been able
to raise my thoughts to Him who was put to death, that we might have hope
and comfort here to-day. I think you were sent to me by Heaven.”
“Or you to me,” says Sydney Carton. “Keep your eyes upon me, dear child,
and mind no other object.”
“I mind nothing while I hold your hand. I shall mind nothing when I let it
go, if they are rapid.”
“They will be rapid. Fear not!”
The two stand in the fast-thinning throng of victims, but they speak as if
they were alone. Eye to eye, voice to voice, hand to hand, heart to heart,
these two children of the Universal Mother, else so wide apart and
differing, have come together on the dark highway, to repair home
together, and to rest in her bosom.
“Brave and generous friend, will you let me ask you one last question? I
am very ignorant, and it troubles me—just a little.”
“Tell me what it is.”
“I have a cousin, an only relative and an orphan, like myself, whom I love
very dearly. She is five years younger than I, and she lives in a farmer’s
house in the south country. Poverty parted us, and she knows nothing of my
fate—for I cannot write—and if I could, how should I tell her!
It is better as it is.”
“Yes, yes: better as it is.”
“What I have been thinking as we came along, and what I am still thinking
now, as I look into your kind strong face which gives me so much support,
is this:—If the Republic really does good to the poor, and they come
to be less hungry, and in all ways to suffer less, she may live a long
time: she may even live to be old.”
“What then, my gentle sister?”
“Do you think:” the uncomplaining eyes in which there is so much
endurance, fill with tears, and the lips part a little more and tremble:
“that it will seem long to me, while I wait for her in the better land
where I trust both you and I will be mercifully sheltered?”
“It cannot be, my child; there is no Time there, and no trouble there.”
“You comfort me so much! I am so ignorant. Am I to kiss you now? Is the
moment come?”
“Yes.”
She kisses his lips; he kisses hers; they solemnly bless each other. The
spare hand does not tremble as he releases it; nothing worse than a sweet,
bright constancy is in the patient face. She goes next before him—is
gone; the knitting-women count Twenty-Two.
“I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord: he that believeth in
me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and
believeth in me shall never die.”
The murmuring of many voices, the upturning of many faces, the pressing on
of many footsteps in the outskirts of the crowd, so that it swells forward
in a mass, like one great heave of water, all flashes away. Twenty-Three.
They said of him, about the city that night, that it was the peacefullest
man’s face ever beheld there. Many added that he looked sublime and
prophetic.
<br />
One of the most remarkable sufferers by the same axe—a woman—had
asked at the foot of the same scaffold, not long before, to be allowed to
write down the thoughts that were inspiring her. If he had given any
utterance to his, and they were prophetic, they would have been these:
<br />
“I see Barsad, and Cly, Defarge, The Vengeance, the Juryman, the Judge,
long ranks of the new oppressors who have risen on the destruction of the
old, perishing by this retributive instrument, before it shall cease out
of its present use. I see a beautiful city and a brilliant people rising
from this abyss, and, in their struggles to be truly free, in their
triumphs and defeats, through long years to come, I see the evil of this
time and of the previous time of which this is the natural birth,
gradually making expiation for itself and wearing out.
<br />
“I see the lives for which I lay down my life, peaceful, useful,
prosperous and happy, in that England which I shall see no more. I see Her
with a child upon her bosom, who bears my name. I see her father, aged and
bent, but otherwise restored, and faithful to all men in his healing
office, and at peace. I see the good old man, so long their friend, in ten
years’ time enriching them with all he has, and passing tranquilly to his
reward.
<br />
“I see that I hold a sanctuary in their hearts, and in the hearts of their
descendants, generations hence. I see her, an old woman, weeping for me on
the anniversary of this day. I see her and her husband, their course done,
lying side by side in their last earthly bed, and I know that each was not
more honoured and held sacred in the other’s soul, than I was in the souls
of both.
<br />
“I see that child who lay upon her bosom and who bore my name, a man
winning his way up in that path of life which once was mine. I see him
winning it so well, that my name is made illustrious there by the light of
his. I see the blots I threw upon it, faded away. I see him, fore-most of
just judges and honoured men, bringing a boy of my name, with a forehead
that I know and golden hair, to this place—then fair to look upon,
with not a trace of this day’s disfigurement—and I hear him tell the
child my story, with a tender and a faltering voice.
<br />
“It is a far, far better thing that I do, than I have ever done; it is a
far, far better rest that I go to than I have ever known.”
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK